\A. HARVARD UNIVERSITY. LIBRARY MUSEUM OF COMPARATIVE ZOOLOGY. ^A: \A^^V ^V,c,>vX^^HAYi. BULLETIN ♦ ♦ NATURAL HISTORY, Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME V. Contributions to a Knowledge of the Natural History of Illinois. 1897 1901. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, Urbana. 111. -" 19U2. ^^« 24 f909 CONTENTS. PAGE. Article I. — [^lankton Studies. I. Methods and Appara- tus in Use in Plankton Investigations at the Biological Experiment Station of the University of Illinois. Bj C. A. Kofoid (7 Plates.) March, 1897...." 1 Article II. — A Contribution to a Knowledge of North American Fresh- water Ci/clopida'. By Ernest B. Forbes. (13 Plates. ) September, 1897 27 Article III. — The North American Species ot Diapfouius. By Frederick William Schacht. (15 Plates.) December, 1897 97 Article IV — The North American Centropag id (eheXong- ing to the Genera O^pJnrntticum, Lintnocahtnns, and EpificJiufd. By Frederick William Schacht. September, 1898 225 Article V. — Plankton Studies. II. On Pleodorintt illi- noheush^ a New Species from the Plankton of the Illinois River. By C. A. Kofoid. (12 Plates. ) September, 1898 273 Article VI — A List of the Protozoa and Bofifera found in the Illinois River and Adjacent Lakes at Havana. Illinois. By Adolph Hempel. (5 Figures.) .lan- uary, 1899 301 Article VII. — First Supplement to the Check-List of the Corcidcc. ByT.D. A. CocKERELL. February, 1899. 389 Article VIII. — A Statistical Study of the Parnsites of the Unionidw. By H. M. Kelly. May, 1899 399 Article IX — Plankton Studies. III. On Plalndor'nia, a New Genus of the Family Volvocidce, from the Plankton of the Illinois River. By C. A. Ko- foid. ( I Plat i. ) December, 1899 419 Article X. — Notes on Species of North American O/igo- clnffa. III. List f Species found in Illinois, and Descriptions of Illinois Tidjifiridcr Bv Frank Smith. (2 ",ates ) March, 19(0 '.441 Article XI —Notes on Species of North American Oligo- ■ cliccfa. 1 V. On a New Lumbriculid Genus from Florida, with additional Notes on the Nephridial and Circulatory Systems of Mfsoporodrihis nsi/m- nietricHS Smith. By Frank Smith. (1 Plate.) June, 1900 459 Article XII. — The Hirudinea of Illinois. By J Percy Moore. (8 Plates. ) February, 1901 479 OCT 1 1357 BULLETIN Illinois ^tate Laboratory NATURAL HISTORY. Urbana, Illinois VOLUME V. ARTICLE I.—PLAiYKTON STUDIES. /. METHODS AiVD APPARATUS IN USE IN PLANKTON INVESTIGA- TIONS AT THE BIOLOGICAL EXPERIMENT STA- TION OF THE UNIVERSITY OF ILLINOIS. By C. a. KOFOID, Ph. D. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, IKBANA, ILLINOIS. ■'1897. State Laboratory of Natural History. LABORATOKY STAFF. Professor Stephen Alfred Forbes, Pii. D., Director of State Laboratonj and State Entomologist. Chakles AirniiiK Hakt. v rator of Collections. Systematic Entomologist and Oun Frank Smith. A. M., Assistant Zoologist. CllAKLES AtWOOD KOFOID, Ph. D. Superintendent of Biological Station (Jharles Chimstoi'her Ai)a:ms, B. S. Entomological Assistant. Mary Jane Snyi>er. Secretary. Henrv Clinton Forijes, Librarian and Business Agent. Lyuia Moore Hart, Artist. OCT 1 18S7 Article 1. — Plankton Studies. I. Methods and Apparatus m Use in Plankton Investigations at the Biological Experi- ment Station of the University of Illinois. By C. A. Kofoid. Less than ten years ago a new field of biological science was opened Ly the German investigator Hensen, namely, the quantitative examination of the " Plankton." This term was applied to all plants and animals floating free in the water and incapable by their own efforts of materially changing their position. Thus adult fish which l)rave the waves and stem the current would not be included in the plankton, while the passive eggs or the helpless fry would fall within the limits of the definition. Practically, the content of the term plankton as applied to fresh water is the sum total of its minute life, both plant and animal. The scope of our plankton work upon the Illinois Ptiver and its adjacent waters includes a continuous, systematic, and exhaustive examination of the plant and animal life sus- pended in the waters of a river system, with a view to deter- mining its amount and seasonal changes, its local and vertical distribution, its movement and relation to the current, the effect upon it of floods and of drouth, of light and of tempera- ture, the organisms which compose it, their seasonal and cyclic changes, and their mutual interrelations. Added interest arises from the fact that this is the first application of this method of biological investigation to a river system and its related waters. It is the purpose of the present paper to describe the methods and apparatus employed in the plankton work at the Biological Station at Havana, Illinois, during the years 1894- 1896. Both are, as a rule, the result of mutual conference of the various meml)ers of its staff. During the first fifteen months of the existence of the Station the plankton work was in the hands of Professor Frank Smith, and when, on July 1, 1895, the writer assumed charge of this work at the Station he found the oblique haul, described on a subse- 2 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. qiient page, already iiiaiiguratecl and in successful operation. It now devolves upon him to prepare for publication a de- scription of this method, but the credit for devising it and putting it in operation belongs to those from whose hands he received it. The apparatus was used without modification until August 23, 1895, when the detachable bucket was added to the net, and in October of the same year the separa- able carriage was introduced. In May, 1896, the pumping method was substituted for the oblicpie haul in making plank- ton collections. Upon the opening of the Station in April, 1894, the exam- ination of the water by the plankton method was decided upon, and in the early part of June the first regular collections were made. The method of plankton collection ordinarily employed, — as, for example, by Hensen ('87 and '95) in the Baltic and North Seas and in the Atlantic Ocean, by Apstein ('92 and '96) and Zacharias ('93-'96) in the lakes of northern Germany, by lieighard ('94) in Lake St. Clair, and by Ward ('96a) in Lake Michigan, — has been without exception the ver- tical haul, in which the net is lowered to the bottom of the body of water and then raised in a vertical line to the surface, thus filtering a vertical column of water. Difticulties beset the application of this method to the waters at Havana. In the first place all the bodies of water examined at the Station are quite shallow, the majority of the plankton collections being made in less than three meters of water. The river itself is the deepest water in the locality, l)ut at its lowest stage there are only three meters of water in the main channel, where collections are made. This depth is increased at times of flood, the maximum reached in the past three years being 6.1 meters. The shallowness of the water thus practically precludes examination by means of the vertical haul. A second difficulty exists in the unstable nature of the bottom generally found throughout the locality to wliich the operations of the Station are confined. This consists of a soft black mud, composed largely of the detritus of decaying veg- etation and alluvial soil deposited from tlie silt-charged waters at times of flood. It is extremely unstable and upon the least Methods in Plankton Investigations. 3 distiirbance mingles with the water, rendering it impossible to take a clean plankton collection. The soiling of the net and the fouling of the water consequent upon dropping a large plankton net upon the bottom further preclude the vertical haul in the plankton work at Havana. I. THE OBLIQUE-HAUL METHOD. (PLATES I. -III.) The oblique haul was at hrst adopted as the method best suited to the situation. This is accomplished by suspend- ing the net to a carriage which runs upon a rope stretched obliquely from the bottom to the surface of the water. By this means the column of water traversed by the net is increased to an adequate length. It also permits the employ- ment of a net small enough to be easily operated from a row- boat. A short description of this method of plankton collection has been given by Professor Forbes ('94). The parts of the apparatus used in making the oblique haul will now be de- scribed. 1. TJie Quantitative Net (Plates I. and II.). — The net used by us is the modification of the Hensen net suggested by Apstein ('91 and '92) for fresh- water work, and more fully described by him ('96) as the smaller model quantitative net. It consists of three parts : (. 11. c), which are approximated Ijy means of a thuml)-screw (/. s.). By this operation the silk beyond the line rs (Fig. B.) is firmly clamped between the brass band of the net clamp and the head-piece of the l)ucket. The bucket proper (Plate II., Fig. 4 and 5) is a brass cylin- der 5 cm. in height, and of the same diameter inside and out as the head-piece. In the side of the bucket at a height of '2 cm. are cut three windows 'l.h x 3.5 cm. These windows are closed by a band of No. '20 silk held in place by a band clamp, in wliich are windows similar to those in the wall of the bucket. The bucket was constructed from a heavy piece of brass tubing, the bottom (Fig. 4, /;.) l)eing inserted in the following manner. The tube is turned out to the shoulder (Fig. 3, sh.) and heated in a jet of steam, and while still hot the piece of brass from which the bottom (/;.) is finished, is Mct/iods ill Plankton Investigations. 7 inserted upon the shoulder. The shrinking of the tube as it cools holds the bottom firmly in place, and it can then be completed as shown in Fig. 3. At the center of the bottom is the outlet of the bucket, which is reamed to hold the taper- ing plug {p.). Both the plug and the bottom are finished obliquely to a drip-point {d. p.) at one side. This facilitates the removal of the last few drops of the catch from the bucket. The bucket below the bottom of the windows holds about 7 cu. cm. The base {ba.) retains the original thickness (.5 cm.) and its weight adds to the stability of the bucket. Since the drip-point does not project below the base the bucket can be set down, and, owing to the fact that its center of gravity is low, it is not easily overturned. This is a dis- tinct advantage where the work must be done in a small row- boat at the mercy of the waves. The band clamp (Plate II., Fig. 4 and 5, b. <:.) is a sheet of brass 4.5x15.3 cm., and about .1 cm. in thickness. At a distance of .75 cm. from the ends the sheet is bent out at right angles, and a l)rass bar 4.5 X. 75 X. 25 cm. is soldered in the angle thus formed (Plate II., Fig. 4 and 5, pi. and//.'). The band is now bent around the bucket and the ends brought together by means of two screws {sc.) which pass through the (me bar and screw into the other (Plate II., Fig. 5, pi. and//.'). The windows (Fig. 4, w.) can now be cut through l)otli the l)and and the walls of the l)ucket. The pillar (Fig. 5, //.) between the windows adjacent to the ends of the clamp is .5 cm. wider than the other pillars, whose width is about 1 cm. The inner edges of the windows are carefully rounded so as to afford no lodgment for the plankton. It is also a convenience to attach the l)and of silk (Fig. 4, s.) which closes the windows to the side of the bucket l)y means of a thin coat of King's wateri^roof cement. The l)and clamp can then be slipped over the bucket and the silk bound firmly in place by tightening the two screws (Fig. 4 and 5, sc). The base also bears an eye {e.) for the line which fastens the bucket to the carriage at s (Plate III., Fig. 6). The a])ove-descril)ed detachable bucket, devised by the writer, has certain obvious advantages over the Apstein and 8 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural Histpry. Keighard buckets after which it is very hirgely modeled. Its advantages are its stability, the drip-point, and the band clamp, the latter permitting readily the renewal of the silk in the bucket. Previous to the adoption of the bucket just described, the net in which the collections at Havana were made was closed by a circular piece of silk clamped on the end of a brass cylinder screwing into the head-piece (Plate L, Fig. 1, k. p.). The clamp used for this purpose is similar to that employed to fasten the net to the head-piece. (See Plate I., Fig. 1, and Plate II., Fig. 3, ;/. c.) When a collection had been made the silk circle was removed and, with the plank- ton condensed upon it, transferred to the killing fluid. This form of plankton bucket was used by Apstein ('92) on his qualitative plankton net, and was afterwards described by Borgert ('96) for a net to l)e towed behind steam-vessels. c. The head of the net (Plate I., Fig. 1) is a truncated cone, at whose upper and lower ends are rings 10 and 25 cm. in diameter respectively {ii. r. and /. r.). These rings are made of No, 5 (American Standard Gauge) brass wire. The side of the cone {e. b. I.) is made of heavy linen, known in the trade as " butchers' linen." Its lower edge is joined to the silk net at the seam (Plate I., Fig, 1, sin.), where it also meets the cover-strip {c. s.) — a narrow band, made of the same cloth — which extends over the lower ring (/. r.). In the upper edge of the cone is bound a heavy cord [cd.) which, in turn, is fastened to the upper ring {ti. r.) by a series of loops of strong thread (///.). The upper ring and the cone are sup- ported by three equidistant wire stays (zc. s.). These are made of No. 8 l)rass wire and are provided with an eye at each end. The lower eye (/. c.) embraces the lower ring and is held in place by small hips soldered upon each side. The upper eye {u. c.) is attached to the cord {^cd.) by a small cloth strap {st.) and also serves as a point of attachment for a stay- line {s. I.) which runs from the bucket to the lower end of the wire stay {iv. s.) to which it is fastened, passing from this to the upper eye (//. e.) and then to the draw-line (Plate III., Fig. 6, d. /.). Methods ill Plankton Investigations. 9 2. The Carriage (Plate III., Fig. 6 and 7). — The carriage for the plankton net is a wooden bar, 100x5x2 cm. It bears upon one edge two ceiling pulleys (Fig. 6,/. and /.'), through which passes the carriage rope {c. r.). In order that there may be no tendency on the part of the carriage to tioat, two bars of lead (/.) are inserted in its lower edge, so that it naturally assumes a position upon the lower side of the rope. The carriage is so constructed that it may be separated along the line a b e, thus freeing the net from the fixed carriage rope. Its two parts are held together by two Hat brass hooks {h.) which enter the staples {s.). The net and the lines per- taining thereto are attached to the removable part of the carriage at four points {w, .»■, y, z) at which screw-eyes are inserted, the attachment l)eing made by means of small metal snaps {sn.). At the anterior end of the carriage a stay-line {s. I. 4), coming from the end of the draw line {d. /.), is fast- ened to the screw-eye tv. Upon this line comes the main stress when the carriage is drawn along the rope. The upper- most of the three stay-lines of the net {s. I. 1) bears a snap which is fastened to the screw-eye x at the lower anterior corner of the carriage. This makes it certain that the plane of the mouth of the net will be kept perpendicular to the line of progress of the carriage. A snap at y binds the net to the carriage and another at z supports the bucket. 3. Accessory Apparatns (Plate III.). — The stay- and draw- lines are of braided linen. The latter is about thirty-hve meters in length and is carried on a hand-reel. It is knotted at inter- vals of one meter to a point thirty meters from the opening of the plankton net. The carriage rope is a five-sixteenths inch braided rope known in the trade as " sash cord." It does not kink in handling, and if once thoroughly seasoned is subject to little change when wet and cannot easily be stretched. This roiie is about forty meters in length and is marked by colored threads at a point exactly thirty meters (Plate III., Fig. 7, m.) from the opening of the net. The location of the end knot (Fig. 6, k.) is marked in a similar manner. Three sharpened stakes (Fig. 7, b. s., m. s., and e. s.), the 10 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. brace-, main-, and end-stakes, respectively three, four and one half, and five meters in length, complete the apparatus nec- essary for making an oblique haul. 4. Operation of the Oblique Hani (Plate III.). — In this operation two persons are required, an oarsman to handle the skiff and an operator for the apparatus. The method of pro- cedure is as follows. The brace rope (Fig. 7, b. r.) is fastened near the lower end of the brace stake {b. s.) and the latter is then set as firmly as desired. The main stake (;//. s.) is then put in place and the brace rope is tied to it. Next, the carriage rope (e. r.) is fastened to the main stake {m. 5.) at a point 5 to 8 meters distant from the thirty-meter knot {m). The boat is then rowed away in line with the two stakes and the carriage rope is unreeled until the end is reached, when it is run through the pulleys (Fig. 6,/. and p.') of the upper part of the carriage. The end knot {k.) is then tied and fastened to the rear pulley (/.') by the release thread (///.). The carriage rope is next tied to the lower part of the end stake (Fig. 7, e. s.), and at a point just in front of the anterior pulley {p.) it is bound to the end stake l)y the release line (r. /.). The lower part of the carriage with the suspended plankton net can now be attached to the upper j)art, and the end stake is ready to be placed. When the end stake is set, the carriage line (Fig. 7, e. r.) runs obliquely from the release line to the surface of the water at the main stake. The net occupies the position n. (Fig. 7), and having l)een lowered vertically does not strain any water in its descent. After placing the end stake the skiff is rowed to the main stake as the draw-line (Fig. 1 ,d.l.) of the carriage is unreeled. A quick jerk upon the carriage rope snaps the release line (/-. /.) on the end stake, and the slack in the carriage rope can l)e taken up at the main stake. Tha carriage rope and net now take the position e. r.' and n.' (Fig. 7), and the thirty-meter knot jn is at the surface of the water. Everything is now in readiness for making the catch. At the signal the release thread {th.) which binds the rear pulley to the end knot is broken by a quick pull upon the draw-line. The carriage l)earing the plankton net is drawn up the oblique rope the distance of thirty meters in one minute Mctliods in Plankton Investigations. 11 by the operator, who reguhites the speed hy the meter knots on the draw-line and the counting of the oarsman, one count being given every other second by the watch. By this method a uniform velocity for the x)lankton net at all parts of its ascent and in different hauls is assured, and a very important source of error in the vertical haul, as it is usually made, is avoided. The oblique haul is not so comi^licated as it may perhaps seem to the reader. With a little practice the whole operation may be completed in less than twenty minutes. Whenever a current is present in the body of water exam- ined, it has been our custom to make the oblique haul across the current, thus eliminating, so far as may be, its effect upon the coefficient or straining capacity of the net. In water in which there is little or no current it is of advantage, in work- ing in a skiff, to set the apparatus "with the wind." In waters a})ounding in vegetation, channels of the length and width requisite for making the oblique haul were opened from time to time by cutting out and removing the rank growth of aquatic plants. 5. Difficulties eneountered. — Certain difficulties attended the operation of the oblique haul. Owing to the turbidity of the water, in many situations it was practically impossible to place the apparatus so as to avoid vegetation. Whenever the plankton net or the ropes strike a submerged plant, a cloud of flocculent debris is set free in the water and the collection is fouled. It was only with the greatest labor that channels could be kept open in the vegetation, for its rapid growth and its shifting by the wind soon closed any opening that had been made. Again, the manipulation of the apparatus in rough weather is somewhat difficult, the waves at times tear- ing loose the stakes before the completion of the collection. At periods of high water the strong current and the increased depth made it impossible to set the apparatus or keep it in place. This necessitated the substitution of a series of ver- tical hauls from a floating boat for the customary oblique method of collection. The plankton at Havana is subject to extreme local and seasonal variations, not only in volume but also in composi- 12 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. tion. For example, at one time Cladocera predominate and at another diatoms are present in vast numbers, and at still another rotifers constitute practically the whole of the plank- ton. Observations upon the operation of the net in the midst of these fluctuations awakened the suspicion that the amount of water actually strained was sul)ject to considerable varia- tion, dependent, among other causes, upon the amount and, more especially, the composition of the plankton. If the plankton were constant in quantity, kind, and distribution, the error arising from the progressive clogging of the net as it traverses the thirty meters would be distributed alike in all of the catches, and they would still l)e comparable ; but the exist- ence of the fluctuations in the plankton just noted and the consequent variation in the amount of water strained, con- stitute an important source of error in any deductions based upon comparisons of catches made under these variable con- ditions. This source of error is present in the vertical as well as in the oblique haul. Furthermore, change in the silk itself consequent upon use adds to the errors due to the fact that the collection is "made by drawing the net tJirongh the water. A series of field experiments (to be described in a later paper) upon the progressive clogging of the net and the coefficient of various plankton nets, in a wide range of season and situation, have abundantly justified our abandonment of the system of collection in which the net is draivn through the water for one in which a known quantity of water is put through the net. II. THE PUMPING METHOD. For many years the biological examination of potable water has been conducted by straining or filtering water delivered through service pipes at the faucet by pressure due to the use of a pump. Giesbrecht ('96) describes the collection of Copepoda in the Eed Sea by Krjimer, who strained the water delivered by the ship's pump to the bath-tub of an ocean steamer. Cleve ('96), at the suggestion of Dr. John Murray, collected plankton on board a steamer in the North Sea by attaching a silk net to the pump when the deck was washed. Methods ill Plankton luvcstio^ations. 13 Previous to this, Henseii ('87) used the steam pump for putting known amounts of surface water through the filtering net. Hensen's quantitative work was, however, based upon collections made l)y vertical hauls of the plankton net. Peck ('96), in his work upon the marine plankton of Buzzard's Bay, obtained water for examination by the Sedgwiek-Eafter method (see Batter, '92, and Twenty-third Annual Eeport of the State Board of Health of Massachusetts for 1891, pp. 395-4*21) by means of a steam-pump connected with a two- inch hose which was lowered to the desired depth. Beyond these instances no other applications of the pump to the col- lection of plankton have come to my notice, and there appears to be no record of its use in (juantitative work by the Hensen method. The impossibility of using the vertical haul in shallow waters, the difficulties in the operation of the oblique haul, and especially the error involved in the variable coefficient of the net, have led to the adoption of the pumping method in the plankton work at Havana. 1. The PiiDip (Plates V. and YL). — The pump we use is a double acting force-pump, known in the trade as a "Thresher Tank Pump." It is worked by an upright handle, and has two cylinders, each 6x9 inches, and throws an almost contin- uous stream. Its capacity is one cubic meter of water per six hundred strokes, provided that the water is delivered to the net without elevation. The stroke is of definite length and its action is regular, the rate employed being one stroke per sec- ond. The pump is provided with 20 feet of 2 -inch spiral- wound suction hose, terminating in a fuiniel 20 cm. in diam- eter. The mouth of the funnel is covered with a linen net of ^-inch mesh to prevent the entrance of stray bits of vegeta- tion, and the end of the hose is weighted to insure its sink- ing readily. It was found necessary to paint all exposed iron in the water chambers of the pump with a thin coat of asphal- tum to prevent the formation of rust scales. Before the pump was put in use for regular plankton col-, lections, tests were made of the straining capacity of the silk under the impact of the current from the discharge hose. It 14 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. was found that when the water was delivered from a 1-inch hose into the phmkton net and the filtrate refiltered in a second net of the same silk (No. 20), a considerable quantity of the more minute forms, Rot if era and Protozoa, were forced through the meshes of the first net. This led to the adoption of the li-inch discharge hose, and of a net devised by the writer to reduce the force of the discharge, to protect the silk from direct contact with the current, and to equalize the pressure upon the filtering surface. 2. TJic Net (Plate IV., Fig. 8-10).— The net consists of the cover with its accessories and the net proper, the two being so constructed as to be readily separable. From the under side of the conical copper top to which the hose is attached hangs the silk net. When in use the net is supported in a wooden frame, which also serves as a float. The rim fits into the circular central opening and rests upon a projecting ledge of the frame (Fig. 8, //.) in such a maimer that the silk does not come in contact with the wood. The frame is so proportioned that the net projects about 8 cm. above the level of the water. Experience has demonstrated that even when the water is full of silt or the plankton is very abundant this elevation is sufficient to provide for filtration without forcing the water into the net Ijy the pump. In ordi- nary circumstances the water does not rise more than 2-4 cm. above the level of the water in which the net is sub- merged. Thus practically the whole straining surface is under water. Two turn Imttoiis (/. h.) hold the net firmly in place so that it cannot l)e dislodged by the action of the waves when the water is rough. The cover (Plate IV., Fig. 8, eov.) is an obtuse cone of sheet copper, 38 cm. in diameter and 20 cm. on the side. The apex bears a curved connector {coii.) upon which the Ij-inch hose can be slipped. The cover is beaded for rigidity, and carries two handles (//.) for lifting the net from the frame. After the water enters the net two devices are employed to check the force of the discharge. The first is an inner copper cone (/. r.), with diameter of 13 cm. and side of 10, placed in the axis of the net immediately below the orifice of Methods in r/aiikto/i I'lvcstigatioiis. 15 the connector. The cone is suspended from the top l)y means of three stays {st.), and sheds the water centrifugally against an inner net (/. //.) of No. 1'2 silk. This net is hung from a ring (;-. /.) fixed to the under surface of the cover hy three supports, one of which (/. s.) swings upon the pivot (/.) and permits the removal of the net. The inner net conforms to the proportions of the outer net but is only 27 cm. in diameter at the top. At its apex is an opening 8 cm. in diameter, through which plankton caught on the sides can he washed into the lower part of the outer net. To secure rigidity the margin of the cover is provided with a projecting horizontal wing (ic), to which is attached the foot (Plate lY., Fig. 8-10,/.). This in cross-section is L-shaped, extending obliquely downward and outward, the ol)lique and horizontal ai'ms being respectively 'IS) and .75 cm. in length. The foot fits into a circular trough [tr.) 1-1. 2 -5 cm. in width and 2.75 in height. The inner wall (Fig. 9, 10, /. zc.) of the trough is parallel to the oblique face of the foot, against which it rests when the cover is in place. The cover is held in the trough by means of four turn clamps (Fig. 9, c), which are fastened by straps (str.) upon the outer wall (o. zc.) of the trough. When the clamps are released and swing to the posi- tion c' , the cover can be removed, and the upper margin of the outer net (Fig. 9, o. u.) can be folded over the inner wall of the trough. When, now, the cover is replaced, the net is firmly clamped between the oldique face of the foot and the inner wall of the trough. (Cf. Fig. 9 and 10.) This method of attachment permits the ready removal of tlie net for the purpose of drying the silk, and at the same time insures a tight joint. The net is made of the customary No. 20 silk and meas- ures 92 cm. on the side. The ui)per l)order is faced upon the outer surface for (5 cm. and upon the imier for 2 cm. with butchers' linen, so that the wear in the fastening of the net falls upon the linen, while the silk only is exposed to the water to l)e filtered (Fig. 10). To insure the uniform placing of the margin of the net in the fastening, a heavy cord (c(L) is sewed in the l)order, against wliicli the angle of the foot 16 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. rests when placed in position. The phmkton l)nc-ket, with its method of attachment to the net, is simihir to that described for the vertical net. 3. The Method of Operating the Pnvip. — The pump is carried in a suitable row-l)oat, and the suction hose is operated from the stern by one person while a second attends to the pump and the net (Plate YI.). In the choice of a location and in the position of the boat, due regard must ])e had to the direction of the wind and the current, if any, so that no fil- tered water may reenter the pump. In our work in the lakes it has l)een our custom to tie the l)oat to poles set for this purpose ; l)ut in the river the l)oat has l)een allowed to drift with the current in order to make the collection, so far as may be, from the same body of water. After the depth is ascer- tained the suction hose is lowered to within a foot of the l)ottom, the pump is thor(nighly rinsed, and while still tilled with bottom water the discharge hose is connected with the net. As the pumping progresses the funnel is raised at regu- lar intervals ; for example, every tenth stroke, the interval and the distance raised varying, however, with the total depth of the water to l)e traversed. Since the pump is filled with bottom water when i)umping l)egins, it is necessary to shorten the first interval by the numl)er of strokes required to fill the pump and to correspondingly lengthen the last one. In this manner a vertical column of water of the desired volume may be pumped through the net. In addition to the vertical catch we have followed the custom of making one from bottom water and another from surface water. After the requisite luimber of strokes of the pump have l)een made the hose is disconnected and the net removed from the frame and thoroughly rinsed down. The catch is concentrated in the bucket and trans- ferred to the bottle of alcohol or formalin. The pumping method has been successfully employed in freezing weather l)y attaching a foot-warmer to the side of the pump and encasing the whole in a wrapping of felt paper. The foot-warmer burns a cake of specially prepared coal, and will keep the pump warm during a day's work of ten hours. A special drain-cock (not shown in Plate V.) provides for the Methods in Phxnktoii Investigations. 17 removal of all water from the cylinders when the pump is not in use. 4. Advantages of the Pumping Method. — As compared with methods dependent upon hauling the plankton net through the water, several points of advantage are to l)e found in the pumping method. It is more accurate, since the actual volume of water strained can l)e determined, and the changes in the coefficient of the net due to seasonal and local varia- tions in the quantity and composition of the plankton and to alterations in the silk of the net with use are to a very large degree eliminated. The method is also widely applicahle : as water may be drawn from any desired level, it may be applied to the proldem of vertical distril)ution ; and it may l)e used in very shallow water, in the midst of vegetation, in creeks, in strong currents, under the ice — in fact, in a wide variety of situations from which the vertical or oblicpie hauls are wholly excluded or to which they are ^vith difficulty applied. Again, no matter how poor the water may be in plankton, it is always possible to strain an amount sufficient to furnish enough plank- ton for measurement. The method is also a comparatively rapid one, requiring for a plankton collection only al)out one third of the time consumed in making the ol)lique haul. The pumping method is thus admirably adapted to the situation with which we deal at Havana, i. e., shallow water and an abundance of vegetation. It is not, however, limited in its applicability to such situations, l)ut with the help of a steam-vessel and a steam-pump it is capal)le of application to larger and deeper bodies of water. III. PRESERVATION AND EXAMINATION OF THE PLANKTON. 1. Preservation. — The living plankton is transferred di- rectly from the bucket of the net to a wide-mouth two-ounce bottle, and the sides of the bucket are rinsed down thoroughly with a spray of V\^ formalin to insure the complete removal of all of the catch. Enough strong alcohol is then added to the l)ottle to make a grade of al)out 75^^;'. Surface and bot- tom collections are usually preserved in 1% formalin, or in 75%' alcohol after killing in picro-sulplmric acid. The bottles are all labeled with a gummed slip bearing the accessions' is Illinois State Laboratory of Natural / list or y. ('atalos"ue iiTiml)ei", (lesio;nati()ii of the catch (whether surface, bottom, vertical, or ([uaHtative), station, kilHng agent, and (hvte. For convenience in handhng they are then arranged chronoh)gically in racks, each hohling six l)ottles. Data lihmks l)earing the catalogue numl)er are filled out for each station examination. The locality, date, time of day, the condition of the sky, the direction and force of the wind, the stage of the river and the amount and directi(m of its change in the twenty-four hours preceding, the depth of the water, its turltidity (measured l)y means of a porcelain disk), the disturbance of the surface, the temperature of the air and that of the water at surface aiul l)ottom, the current, the kind of vegetation and distance from it, the manner of collection and means of preservation of the catches made, — all are matters of regular record, together with any other data peculiar to the collection which could possildy interest the student of the plankton. 2. Quantitative Exaiiiination. — The quantitative exam- ination of all of the plankton collecti(ms made at Havana has been undertaken by the writer. Determination of the quan- tity of the plankton by both the volumetric and enumerative methods is necessary, owing to the presence, especially in flood waters, of a large amount of silt. The gravimetric or weighing method suggested Ijy Zacharias ('95) is, as Ward ('96) has suggested, objectionable on account of the unknown and presumaldy variable amount of water or alcohol present in the still moist plankton. Many of the planktons at Havana taken in silt-laden waters contain a considerable amount of mineral and earthy matter. This constitutes a further objection to the application of the gravimetric method to our (collections. A combination of the gravimetric and volumetric method has l)een suggested l)y Ward ('91)), in which plankton of known volume is dried to a constant weight, l)urned, the ash weighed and afterwards digested in concentrated HCl, and the residue then washed, dried, and w^eighed. The amounts of organic matter, of soluble salts (calcareous), and of silicious matter can then be determined, and thus correc- tions for sand-laden planktons can be approximately com- puted. It is evident that this method cannot be applied to ]\h'tJiO(h ill Plankton fi/vcstiaiatioiis. \\) planktons rich in diatoms nor to the silt-laden planktons from Havana, for a large part of the silt is debris of organic origin, and the method above descril)ed does not differentiate the organic material of the plankton from that of the silt. For the quantitative investigation of these silt-laden planktons we are thus practically limited to the enumerative method with such incidental hel}) as may l)e derived from volumetric determination. The voliiinctric dctcnin)iatioii has taken two forms, the settling and the centrifugal methods. The former as used by us is the same as that employed by Eeighard ('94) and Ward ('96a). The i)lankton is transferred to graduated tubes and is allowed to stand twenty-four hours, when the amount of the plankton settled at the bottom of the fluid, is read by the graduations upon the tube. The tul)es used are the carbon tubes employed l)y chemists in the Eggert color test for the estimation of carbon in steel. Our tubes in most frequent use contain 25 and 50 cul)ic centimeters respectively, are about twelve millimeters in inside diameter, and are graduated to tenths of a cul)ic centimeter. For very small planktons another tube, containing only ten cubic centimeters and measuring six millimeters in inside diameter, was used. After a series of measurements in the tubes above descrilied it became evident that a considerable error was involved in the method. Piepeated measurements of the same plankton in the same tube, after standing twenty-four hours, revealed a considerable variation in the volume, as high as 30*'„ in some instances. Furthermore, planktons do hot settle to an equal density. Those comi)osed of Rotifcra or small Cladocera (as Cliydonts) pack closely, while others containing filamentous forms, as Oscillaria or Fragillaria, and those in whicli the larger Entomostraca are predominant, settle very loosely. Thus the determination of the volume of the plankton l)y the settling method does not give a uniform test of the amount of plankton present. Furthermore, the process is a tedious one, especially when large numbers of catches are to be handled. The centrifugal machine (Plate VII.) was finally hit upon as affording the best . solution of the difticulties presented in 20 Illinois State Laboratorv of Nntiiral flistoi-y. the settling metliod. In our machine we have utilized the douhle arms, aluminum shields, and percentage tubes of the Purdy Electric Centrifuge. The tubes contain 15 cubic cm., are graduated to tenths of a cubic em., and the conical tips permit the measurement of small planktons with accuracy. The arms are l)oriie upon an upright shaft which is driven by a system of gears turned by means of a crank handle, one turn of the crank giving 24 revolutions of the vertical shaft. The direction and the speed are thus easily controlled by the operator. The machine is clamped firmly to a table when in operation. All parts of the machine, except those from the Purdy Centrifuge, were devised by Professor W. H. VanDer- voort, of the College of Engineering, and were constructed in the University shops. Planktons are subjected to '2,000 revo- lutions in two minutes, the motion at first being slow and frequently reversed. The practical limit of compression l)y this machine is thus reached, and successive measurements of the same planktons show that its action is (juite uniform. The average amount of compression in a wide range of planktons is about 50'\^, the volume by the centrifuge method ranging from 30"o to 70"y of that obtained by the settling method. No discussion is needed to prove that the more perfect the compression the more accurate are the volu- metric determinations of the plankton. In this lies the main argument for the use of the centrifuge in quantitative plank- ton work. It also permits rapid work and is easily manipu- lated. Our machine was completed in January, 1896, and this is, I l)elieve, the first application of the centrifugal machine to quantitative plankton work. Cori ('96) has de- vised a simple centrifugal machine for precipitation purposes in zoological work, but it does not seem to be fitted for quan- titative determination of plankton. The machine employed by us was also in use for the precipi- tation of living plankton from the water when Dolley's paper ('96) was received describing a large and powerful centrifuge, "the planktonokrit," devised for the same work. It is only by means of some such machine as this that a complete exami- nation of the contents of the water is possible. Methods ill Plankton Invostiij^ations. '2i The cnnincrative or counting DictJiod involves a recogni- tion of all of the different organisms composing the plank- ton and the enumeration of the individuals of each spe- cies present in a part or the whole of the catch. The number present under a square meter of surface or in a cuhic meter of water can then be computed. This work is the basis of the discussion of the seasonal range, local distribution, and interrelations of the components of the plankton. The method of counting at present employed l)y us is that described by Eafter ('9"2) as a part of the Sedgwick-Eafter method of microscopical examination of potable Avaters. This method was employed by Professor J. I. Peck ('9(5), and I am indebted to him for many kind suggestions on its use. The apparatus consists of a brass cell, 20x50 mm. and 1 mm. in depth, cemented upon a glass slide, a 1 -cubic-cm. pipette, a mechan- ical stage, and an area- stop for the eyepiece. After the plankton to l)e examined is diluted to the desired degree and thoroughly stirred, one cul)ic centimeter is transferred with the pipette to the cell, in which one cul)ic millimeter underlies each square millimeter of the cover-glass. By means of the mechanical stage any desired cubic millimeter of the cell can be placed in the center of the field. The area-stop is a circle of black paper to be placed in the eyepiece, which cuts off all the field except that visible through a square opening at its center. This opening should be of such a size that with the objective employed for the counting work exactly one stpiare millimeter of the cell is subject to inspection. Ordinarily the counting of from ten to twenty squares suffices for a fair test of the occurrence of organisms in plank- ton; l)ut in the work upon the richly diversified plankton at Havana Ave have found it necessary to increase the numl)er to fifty or even one hundred for the commoner and smaller species, while for the larger and the rarer forms a great part or even the whole of the catch must be examined. Uebana, Illinois, November 23, 1896. 22 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. BIBLIOGRAPHY. Apstein, C. '91. Ueber die quantitative BestiQiiuung des Plankton im Siiss- wasser. In Zacliarias's ''Die Tier- und Pflanzenwelt des Siisswas- sers." Bd. 1 1 .. pp. 255-294. Leipzig-. '92. Das Plankton des Siisswassers und seine quantitative Bestira- niung. Schrift d. Xaturw. Ver. f. Schlesw.-Holstein, Bd. IX., Heft 2, pp. 267-273. '96, Das Siisswasserplankton, Methode und Resultate der quantita- tiven Untersuchung. Mit 113 Abbildungen. 200 pp., 5 Tab. Kiel und Leipzig. Borgert, A. '96. Ein einfaclies Xetz zum Fischen von Plankton bei schneller Fahrt. Zeitschr. f. wiss. Mikr., Bd. XII., pp. 307-312. Cleve, P. T. '96. Microscopic Marine Organisms in the service of Hydrography. Xature, Vol. 55, pp. 89, 90. Cori, C. J. '96. I'eljer die Verwendung der Centrifuge in der zoologischen Technik und Beschreibung einer einfachen Flandcentrifuge. Zeit- schr. f. wiss. Mikr.. Bd. XIL, pp. 303-306. Dolley, C. S. '96. The Planktonokrit, a Centrifugal Apparatus for the Volumetric Estimation of the Food-Supply of Oysters and other Aquatic Animals. Proc. Acad. Nat. Sci. Phila., 189(i. pp. 276-2S9. Forbes, S. A. '94. Illinois State I^aboratory of Xatural History, Champaign. 111.. Biennial Report of the Director, 1893-1894. 36 pp., 17 Pis. Chicago. Giesbrecht, W. '96. Leber pelagische Copepoden des Ho then Meeres, gesammelt von Marinestabarzt Dr. Augustin Kramer. Zool. Jahrb., Abth. f. Syst., Bd. IX., pp. 315-328, Taf. 5, 6. Hensen, V. '87. Ueber die Bestimmung des Planktons, oder des im Meere treibenden Materials an Pllanzen und Thieren. V. Bericht d. Kommission zu wiss. Lntersuchung d. deutschen Meere zu Kiel, 1887. X II.-XIV. .Jahrg.. pp. 1-107. 6 Taf. Xebst Anhang, pp. I.-XIX. '95. Methodik der I'ntersuchungen bei der Plankton-Expedition. Mit 114 Figg. im Text, 200 pp., 11 Taf. und 1 Karte. Kiel und Leipzig. (Ergebnisse der Plankton-Expedition der Humboldt- Stiftung. Bd. I. B.) Peck. J. L '96. The Sources of Marine Food. Bull. U. S. Fish Comm., Vol. XV.. pp. 351-368, Pis. 64-71. MctJioih in Plankton Investigations. 2;5 Rafter, G. W. '92. The Microscopical Examination of Potable Water. No. ]03, Van Xtistrand's Science Series. KiO pp., 5 Pis., New York. Reighard, J. E. '94. A Biological Examination of T.ake St. Clair. Bull. Mich. Fish Comra. No. 4. 60 pp., 2 Pis., and map. Ward, H. B. '96. A Xew Method for the Quantitative Determination of Plank- ton Hauls. Proc. Am. ]Micr. Soc, Vol. XVII., pp. 255-200. '96a. A Biological Examination of Lake Michigan in the Traverse Bay Region. Bull. Mich. Fish Comm., No. G. 100 pp., 5 Pis. Zacharias, O. '93-'96. I'orschungsberichte aus der Biologischen Station zu Plon, Theill.-IV. Berlin. '95. Ueber die Wechselnde Quantitat des Planktons im (irossen Planer See. Forschungsberichte a. d. Biol. Station zu. Plon, Theil III., pp. 97-117. *EXPLANATION OF PLATES. Plate I. Fig. 1. Longitudinal section of plankton net. X ^4. c.b.l. Cone of butchers" linen, s.l. Staj'-line. cd. Cord. sm. Seam. cs. Cover-strip. s. n. Silk net. e. Eye. St. Strip fastening cone to stay h. p. Head-piece of bucket. th. Thread. I. e. Lower ej-e of wire stay. . u. e. I'pper eye of wire stay. I. r. Lower wire ring. u. r. Upper ring. n. c. Net clamp. w. s. Wire stay. Seam in silk net. X 2. a. Backstitch. b. Fell. Plate IT. Fi.i. 2. Fig. 3.— Longitudinal section of head-piece of plankton bucket. X 1. e. Eye. s. Silk. h.p. Ilead-piece. .s. /. Stay-line. n. c. Xet clamp. t. s. Thumb-screw. m. Thread, screwing v\ n. c. Wing of net clamp, into n of Fig. 4. *Plates I., II., III., and IV. were drawn by C. A. Kofoid and inked by Miss L. M. Hart. 24 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History Fk;. 4. — Lon^itiulinal section of plankton bucket. X 1. h. Bottom. 'pl. Jia. Base. pi. h. c. Band clamp. s. d.p. Drip-point. sc. e. Eye. sh. Thread, screwing on m, w. Fig. 3. x-y. Plus- Fj(i. 5. — Cross-section of plankton bucket at x-ij, Fig. 4. X 1 ing as in Fig. 4. n. P- Plats of clamp. Pillar. Silk. Screw. Shoulder. Window. Line of section shown in FifiT. 5. Letter- Plate hi. Fro. G. — Carriage, with suspended plankton (( f> c. Line of separation of s. carriage. s.l.l,s.l2,s.l.3. Iiti. Bucket. c. r. Carriage rope. s. I. 4. d. I. Draw-line. sn. h. Hook. th. k. End knot. w. s. I. Lead. w x y z. p. Front pulley. ]).' Kear pulley. Fi(i. 7. — Operation of the obliiiue haul. X jK- e. s. End stake. m. 30-meter knot. in. s. Main stake. n. Net before release. ??,.' Xet after release. r. I. Release line. sur. Surface of water. net. X h Staple. Stay-lines from the draw line to net and bucket. Stay-line to carriage. Snap. Thread. Wire staj'. Screw-eyes for attach- ment of net. h. r. h. s. ht. c. r. d, I. Brace rope. Brace stake. Boat. ( 'arriage rope before release. Carriage rope after release. Draw-line. Plate IV. Fkj. 8. Plankton net used with the pump, shown in longitudinal section. X ^4. />. I. Butchers' linen. 0. n. con. Connector. p. cov. Cover. 7-i. f. Foot. St. n. Float. t. h. h. Handle. t. s. I.e. Inner cone or spreader. tr. i. 71. Inner net. ro. Outer net. Pivot for sujiport of ring. Ring for inner net. Stay for inner cone. Turn button. Turn support. Trough. Wing. Mil/iocL^ ill riaiiktoji Jiircstigatioi/s. 2") Fi<;. 9. — Kim of cover of net. sliowing clamp for holding cover in place. X 1. c. Clamp, in position. /. w. Inner wall of trough. '•'. Clamp, released. o. xo Outer wall of trough. coo. Cover. xtr. Strap of clamp. /. Foot of cover. lo. Wing of cover. Fi<;. 10. — Same, showing method of fastening outer silk net; cover partially removed. X 1. /'. I. Butchers' linen. o. ?;. Outer net. cd. Cord. Other lettering as in Figure 9. Plate V. The plankton pump. X ixt- Plate VI. The plankton pump in operation. Plate VII. The centrifugal machine. X %. Plate I. Plate II. 5 ^^^ Plate III. Plate 1\' Plate V Plati-; YI. Pl.ATK VII. BULLETIN OCT 1 1897 OF THE Illinois state Laboratory NATURAL HISTORY, Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME V. ARTICLE II. — A CONTRIBUTION TO A KNOWLEDGE OF NORTH AMERICAN FRESH-WATER CYCLOPID.E. By ERNEST B. FORBES, B. S. .Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, UIJHAXA, ILLINOIS. "^1897. State Laboratory of Natural History LABORATORY STAFF. Professor Stei'iikn Alkkkd Fokbes, Ph. D., Director of State Lnhoratory and State Entomokujlst. Ciiai;li;s Arthur Hart, Siisternatic EntomolO(iist and Ctirator of Collection:^. Frank Smith. A. M., Assistant Zoologist. Charles Atwood Kokoii>, Ph. 1>., Zoologist, and Superintendent of Biological Station. Charles Christopher Ada.ms, B. S., Entomo Jogica I A ss istant. Ralph Waldo Braicher, B. S. Entomological Assistant. Mal'v Jane Snvuer, Secretary. Heinry Clinton Forues, Ilvsiuess Agent and Librarian. Iai>l\ Moore Hart, Artist. OCT 1 1R.07 Article II. — .1 C'oxtriljiitioii to n Kiioiiii'di/c of' Xi>rt]i Amcri- can FresJi-icdtcr Ci/rlop'uhe.* By Ernest B. Forbes. INTRODUCTION. During the past twenty years the fresh-water Cnjx'jiodd of North America liave received considerable attention from a small number of pioneer investigators, but as yet no one has made a careful comparative study of authentic repre- sentatives of the species described l)y them. It is my pur- pose in this paper to make a first contribution to a revision of the nomenclature of this genus, such as is usually found necessary when, for the first time, the work of unaffiliated investigators is brought into careful comparison. I have embodied in this paper, not a complete revision of the Ameri- can species of Cficlojn^, but only such results of my study on that group as have now been l)rought to a satisfactory con- clusion. The excellent work of Claus and Schmeil in Germany has greatly modified our ideas of the comparative value of certain specific characters ; and the revision of the European species of this genus in Schmeil's monograph t has made it possible for me to begin a revision of the American species along the same general lines. The r('Ci'pt((ci(liiiii sciniiiis^ which has recently come to be considered as the most important structure for purposes of specific 'distinction, has received almost no attention from American investigators ; but after studying this organ in series of specimens of closely related forms from a great vnriety of widely separated situations, I have been forced to include under the same species name forms which have here- tofore been considered valid species, and to discard as local or at the most varietal difi'erences, distinctions which have *This paper was prepared in the course of undergraduate study at the University of niinois. and was accepted by the Faculty of the University June 7, 189T. as a thesis for the degree of Bachelor of Science in Zoology. + Deutschlands freilebende Susswasser-Copepoden, I. Teil: Cyclopidae, •2IKJ(is, l('ii;cyi-id<(tii.s, rdvicaiis, di/hoicskli, Id- r».s7/'/.s, and sfrciiiiiis. These authoritatively named European specimens have given me the opportunity for comparative studies of American and European Cyclopidai' — the first, so far as I am aware, which have been made in America. The mere study of American specimens of species first described from European material has not given me, in many cases, the data necessary for a critical judgment of the synonymy of such forms, and I have consequently accepted, as a rule, the determinations of Claus and Schmeil, whose long experience and critical and exhaustive work give to their con- clusions the highest authority. The genera and sul)genera of Claus ('93a, '93c, '93d) seem to me very convenient subdivisions of this varied genus, and the species of this paper have, so far as possible, been ar- ranged under Claus's groups. I find it necessary, however, to create two new subgenera, Orthociiclopa and Ho)n<)ciich)}»i, for the two American species C. inodvtitns mu\ Cider. The descriptions are incomplete, however, because of the lack of knowledge concerning the males of these two species. Certain characters used by some of our American investi- gators for specific distinction have i)roven unreliable, and a 30 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. brief discussion of their comparative values may be of service to beginners in. the study of this genus. The number of antenna! segments may be depended upon as fairly constant. It never varies in adult specimens l)y inore than a single segment, and then only in the case of a very few species. The length of the antenna', while constant in some species, is remarkably variable in others, notal)ly in C. sernihttiii^. The proportionate length of antenna! seg- ments does not always remain the same in species in which the antenna is variable as to length. Sensory structures and the hyaline plates of the distal antennal segments are reliable characters. In certain species, C. phiiley<(tiis for instance, the propor- tions of the stylets are quite constant, but in C. riridi-s, scrni- Idtas, and hirti^j>iiericau Fresh-water Cyclopidte. 31 the specimens have been killed in alcohol ; but this difticulty is readily avoided by the use of formalin as a preservative. A 1 % solution is amply strong, and the osmosis of fluids is not rapid enough to rupture the receptaculum, as is the case when strong alcohol is used. Some slight differences in the appearance of the receptaculum are due to stage of sexual activity of the animal. In the case of C. rirldis var. 'nisectns such a difference is noticeable. In Fig. 3, PI. XL, the solid line represents the outline of the empty receptaculum ; the dotted line, the shape when fully distended. Through the generosity of Prof. G. 0. Sars and Dr. Otto Schmeil, I have received much valuable material from Europe, by means of which I have been able to compare American and European forms. I wish also to acknowledge the assistance received from my co-laborers, Messrs. E. W. Sharpe and F. "W. Schacht, and also to thank Prof. L. S. Pioss, of Drake University, and 'Sir. Adolph Hempel, now of the Museu Paulista, Brazil, for the courtesies shown me in the loan and collection of material. A very great part of the credit for such portions of this paper as may be of value is due to my instructor. Dr. S. A. Forbes, whose kind supervision and encouragement have constantly guided and aided me in this work. Genus CYCLOPS 0. F. Muller. Subgenus Cyclops s. str. Glaus. Cyclops leuckarti Glaus. (PI. YIIL, Fig. 1-3.) Cyclops leuchtrtL Clans, "57, p. 35, PI. I., Fig. 4; PL II., Fig. 13, lA. Cyclops leuckarti, Schmeil. "92, pp. 57-64, PI. III., Fig. 1-8. Cyclops leuckarti., Herrick and Turner, '95, pp. 9(i-98, PI XVI.; XVIII., Fig. 1, A-.7: XXIV., Fig. 2-(;. This species is of medium size, but is rather more slender than usual (PI. YIIL, Fig. 1). The cephalothorax is broadest at the first segment and tapers conspicuously toward the posterior end. The length as compared to the breadth is about as eleven to six. The abdomen is long and slender, but the stylets are short, being one third or one fourth as broad as long. Thev are 32 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. not markedly divergent, and there is no conspicuously Inroad space between their points of attachment. The outer apical seta is delicate and as long as the stylet. Of the remaining three, all of which are well developed, the middle one is the longest and the innermost the shortest. The first antennae are long and slender, terminating at the middle or end of the third cephalothoracic segment. The last two segments are both long, but the sixteenth (penultimate) is the longer of the two. These two segments l)ear broad hyaline plates {PL A^IIL, Fig. 2). The margin of the one borne by the sixteenth segment is entire, but the one on the following segment besides being finely serrate its whole length is deeply notched near its distal end. This notch is very characteristic of the species. On the twelfth segment is the usual sense-club. The posterior border of the second segment of the outer maxillipeds usually bears a series of rounded transverse ridges, which extend in a series from the proximal end of the segment nearly to the other end. The presence of this structure seems characteristic of the European form, l)ut may rarely be entirely absent in American specimens. The seta? and spines of the swimming feet are conspicuously long and strong. The margin of the connecting lamella of the fourth pair of feet bears a pair of sharp teeth. The feet are armed as follows: — First pair: outer ramus, two spines, four seta^ ; inner ramus, one seta, one spine, four seta?. Second and third pairs : outer ramus, three spines, three setje ; inner ramus, one seta, one spine, four seta^. Fourth pair : outer ramus, three spines, four seta^ ; inner ramus, one seta, two spines, two seta?. The rudimentary foot (PI. YIIL, Fig. 8) is two-segmented. The basal segment is short and roughly quadrate, with a long plumose seta borne on its outer angle. The distal segment is long and slender. On the middle of the inner side is borne a long pectinate spine, and at the tip a seta of about equal length. The rccej)f(iciibiiii ■scniiiiis is large and elliptical, and the anterior part, from wliich proceed the canals, is laterally expanded. Xorth American Frcsh-watcr Cyclopidce. 33 The egg-sacs are carried at a In'oad angle from the ahdomeii. In length the female varies, in American specimens, from .95 to 1.5 mm. The color is always inconspicuous and may l)e light hlue or gray. This is in general a very rare species in America. I have never, until recently, found it in collections in any great numbers, but in twos or threes at long intervals. I lately found it, however, in immense numbers in a collection made in August, 1896, from Fox liiver, Illinois. It is found in just sucdi situations as is ('. cdiix, but usually in very much smaller numbers. I have seen this species in collections from Lake Harriet, ]\Iinnesota ; Delavan Lake, Wisconsin ; and from Quiver, Flag, and Dogfish lakes, and the Sangamon and Fox rivers — all in Illinois. It is widely (listril)uted in the lakes and rivers of America, but has not been reported from temi)()rary pools. Cyclops edax Fokbes. (PI. IX., Fig. 1-3.) Cyclops edax. Forbes, '90a, p. 709, PI. III.. YUr. 15: IV.. Fii;-. 1(;-19. Ojclops annulatus. Wierzejski, '92, pp. 237. 238, PI. VI., Fii;. 14-18. Cyclops lenckarti. Marsh. "93. jjp. 209-211, PI. IV.. Fi^-. 17: V., Fig. 2-(;. SYNONYMY AND COMPARISON. This form has been confounded with ('. IcHcl.nrti Clans, from which, however, it is very easily separated by a careful comparison of sijecimens. The original description of this species was incomplete in that no mention was made of the sense-club on the twelfth antennal segment, or of the hyaline plates of the sixteenth and seventeenth segments. As in ('. Icnckdrti (PI. VIIL, Fig. 2), the plate of the sixteenth segment has an entire edge, though the plate itself is much narrower. The plate of the seventeenth segment (PI. IX., Fig. 2) differs markedly from the corresponding structure in C. Ieii<-J,(trfi. In C. cdux the edge of the plate is cut by a series of deep oblique notches, forming teeth which point strongly backward. These notches 34 in 17102 s State Laboratory of Natural History. are deepest near the distal end and thence diminish in hoth directions. Tlie segment itself is deeply excavated within and the plate merely completes its usual outline, while in ('. lciirh-(irt} the segment is but slightly excavated and the broad plate projects far beyond the outline of the segment. In C. cdd.v the last two segments are equal, while in C. l('Hr],(i)ii the sixteenth segment is a fourth longer than the last. The two pointed teeth of the connecting lamella of the fourth feet, which are characteristic of C. Icnrkdrfi, may sometimes l)e present in C. eda.r, though they are in this species not so sharp as in the other and are placed farther apart. The transverse ridges of the outer maxillipeds, which Schmeil describes as characteristic of ('. h'ncl.drfi, are usually absent in ('. cddx and when present are quite inconspicuous. They l)egin, as in ('. IciicJ^drfi, at the proximal end of the seg- ment, but soon fade away. The altdominal stylets in ('. cddr are more divergent than in ('. lciirJ,-drti, and are inserted farther apart. The fiftli feet (PL IX., Fig. 3) are markedly different. In r. ('(Id.r the two setai of the distal segment are parallel and the surfaces to which they are attached are at right angles to the long axis of the segment. In ('. IciicJ.-drti the surface of attachment of the lower seta is at an angle of about forty-live degrees to the long axis of the segment. Furthermore, the whole distal segment is l)roader in ('. cdd.r. There are differences in general proportions and appear- ances which make it very easy for one well acquainted with these species to distinguish them at a glance, l)ut these differences can only l)e demonstrated by a long series of measurements. The stnu-ture of the rccrptdcidiim iieinlnis is identical in the two species, so far as I can tell; but though the species are undeniably closely related, I think that on account of the above-mentioned differences they should be kept distinct. Cficlojjs I'ddf may possibly be the same as C. Ici'inrciiliockii Hoek, which Schmeil has made synonymous with C. IcKckdrti. North American Fresh-water Cyclopida^. 35 If the figures as published by Hoek are correct, C. ednx differs from C. Ice nice nhoekii in the following particulars : In edar the lal)rum has eleven teeth; in leeinrcitJioekii it has but ten. In cthir the seventeenth antennal segment is longer than the sixteenth; in leciiivcnhoek'n the sixteenth is longer than the seventeenth. In eihtx the first foot, outer ramus, bears on the distal segment two spines and four setse ; in JeentreiiJioehii the corresponding segment bears three spines and two set*. In <'(Jn.r the inner margin of the distal segment of the fifth foot is not incurved as in IcciurciiJtnel-ii . In eddx there are never less than five prominent teeth in the lamella of the seven- teenth antennal segment; in IceinrcitJioekii but three are fig- ured. The transverse ridges on the maxilliped of leetiirciiJioeLii are more prominent, smaller, and more numerous than in (■(hi r. DISTKIBUTIOX. This form is very abundant and widely distributed in America. I have found it, among many other places, in col- lections from the Mississippi and Illinois rivers ; from various lakes and ponds of Illinois ; from Sister Lake and Lake Butler in Florida ; from Spirit Lake and Lake Okol)oji in Iowa ; and also from lakes Micliigan, Superior, Winnebago, and Michigamme, and Yellowstone, Delavan, and Cedar lakes. It was described in 1892 Ijy Wierzejski from the Argentine Republic under the name of ('. (iinnthttns. SPECIFIC DESCRIPTION. The cephalothorax is oval, compact, and broadest before the middle. The first segment is as long as the remainder. The last thoracic segment is scarcely broader than the first abdominal. The first abdominal segment is very long, equaling the fol- lowing three. The last segment is the shortest and is bordered by the usual row of spinules. The preceding segments are bordered posteriorly by coarse serrations, more pronounced and regular on the ventral than on the dorsal side. The stylets are one third as wide as long, and in a long series of measurements of individuals from the most widely separated 36 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. localities this proportion . only varied l)y one thirtieth. The inner margins of the stylets are ciliate. The lateral spine is a tritle hehind the middle ; the outer seta about as long as the ramus; the inner five sixths the length of the third from within ; the latter two thirds as long as the second. The antennae terminate between the end of the second and the end of the third segments. There is a sense-club and seta on the twelfth segment. The sixteenth segment is never longer than the seventeenth. The sixteenth and seventeenth segments bear hyaline plates (PI. IX., Fig. 2), that of the six- teenth segment being very narrow, with its edge entire, and that of the seventeenth broader, with its edge deeply notched. The notches are most pronounced near the distal end and fade away in each direction. Tlie intervening teeth point str>i iiii'Kdifiiiliitiix, described as new in the same article, is also C. iiiscctiis, the only apparent difference being a very slight one in the armature of the swimming feet. Ci/rl()])s ])vcr'i^p'iii<)Hus, described in 1884 by Herrick, differs from ('. insect itii principally in the shape of the outermost terminal spine of the stylet. In the type of hrerUp'niosns this spine is very broad, heavy, and knife-like in character. I have seen considerable variations in the shape of this spine and have observed all of the gradations l)etween it and the usual slender spine of ('. insect us. I think, however, that C. hrevi- sp'niosiis should be considered as a good variety. The follow"- ing description of C. rirldls is a translation of the description l)y Schmeil ('92). SPECIFIC DESCRIPTION. "The two axes of the cephalothorax compare about as two to one ; the ratio of the length of the cephalothorax and the abdomen is almost the same. The cephalothorax tapers about equally in both directions; each segment projects laterally far beyond the following. Seen from the side, the posterior angles of all the plates of the cephalothoracic segments are rounded, those of the first and fifth segments being at first straight, then convexly produced at their ends ; and the second, third, and fourth segments, in which such x)romi- nences are lacking, are slightly lengthened posteriorly. " The first abdominal segment is but little broadened in its anterior part. The posterior borders of all the segments are coarsely serrate, with the exception of the last, which bears a fringe of spinules. "The stylets are often two, three, or even four times as long as the last abdominal segment. The inner border is always ciliate. The lateral spine is set beyond the middle of the outer edge. The outermost of the apical bristles (all of which are nar- rowly plumose) is not, as is the case with most species, changed into a spine, and is exceeded in length by the inner- most. Both middle bristles are well developed, but their 40 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. proportional lengths are not entirely constant. Usually the smaller of the two is as long as the abdomen, and the larger exceeds it in length. They are often of exactly the same size, and often the difference is considerable. " The first antennae are seventeen-segmented, usually reach- ing l)ack only to the posterior border of the first cephalo- thoracic segment. The last three segments are but little longer than those immediately preceding. The twelfth seg- ment bears a projecting sense-club, "The remaining pairs of ai)pendages, with the exception of the rudimentary feet, present no notable characters and hence are systematically valueless. Spinous armature of swim- ming feet, 2. 3. 3. 3. "The rudimentary foot (PI. X., Fig. 2) is two-segmented. The extraordinarily l)road basal segment bears on the lower outer angle a long plumose hair. On the lower border, immediately at the inner angle of this segment, is attached the relatively small distal segment, which bears at its distal end a plumose hair and at the inner margin a very minute spine.* "The rt'ccjitoniliiiii scmiiiis (PI. X., Fig. 3), the two small lower divisions of which terminate in the lateral canals, are usually covered by the larger, more or less heart-shaped upper division. Exact knowledge of the structure of this organ is usually first possible after the application of delicate pressure. " The large elliptical egg-masses stand oft' from the abdomen at a very sharp angle. " The color is usually a dirty green, seldom a light brown. In a pool in Diemitz I met with quite fire-red examples. " The size is very variable. With iiulividuals 1 . 5-2 mm. one finds others 2.5, 3, 4, or even 5 mm. in length. " The clearest and simplest recognition characters are the rudimentary feet and the structure of the rrrcjttociiJiiiit *Iii a foot-note Schmeil states that cHaus, Hoek, Richard, and Land6, consider this spine as a process of the segment, that Ulianin figures it as separated from the segment by a suture, and that he, Schmeil, liad o1)served it both ways. Nor til American Frcsh-ivatcr Cyclopidie. 41 Yar. brevispinosus Hep.rick. (PI. XL, Fig. 1 and 2.) ('yclops hrevispmosHs, Herrick. '84, p. 148, PI. S. Fi^. 7-11. Cyclops b}-evispi7wsus, Mjirsh, '91^, pp. 20o-'20G, PI. IV., Fi"^. 11. 12. Cyclops hrevispinoi^vs, Herrick and Turner. "95. p. 95, PI. Will.. Fio-. 1-4: XXIV., Fi.--. 7-1 -2. This sx)eeies of" Herrick's, which I reduce to a variety, is dis- tinguished from typical ('. rtrhVix, as follows: 1. By the form of the outer terminal spine of the stylet, which is short, hroad, and knife-like. This fcn-m of spine is connected in series (PI. XL, Fig. 1) with the slender spine of the variety /■//.S7V7//.S'. '2. By the tifth foot (PI. XL, Fig. 2). Li this appendage the small spine is never a part of the segment as it may he in the European //'r/VZ/.s- and always is in the American form. This spine is also longer than in riridis and is lanceolate in shape. 3. By the armature of the swimming feet. The spines of these appendages are extravagantly long and heavy. While at first sight these differences might seem sufficient for the complete separation of the two forms, the distinguishing characters are in most species of ('i/<-I(>p>< so variable that it seems to me best to consider lircrispiitoxus as merely a variety. The r('r('j)t<(ridiiiti Hcni'niiy; is as in inscctiiH. I find this variety in collections from Lakes Michigan, Manitoba, Okoboji, (Iowa) ; and from Lake Winne])ago, Green Lake, and Lake Geneva in AVisconsin ; from Swan Lake in Montana, and Lake Pend d'Oreille in Idaho ; from the Detroit, Calumet, and Illinois Livers ; and from Sand, Fox, Quiver, Doghsh, Phelps, and Thompson's lakes — all in Illinois. It is never especially alnindant l)ut seems to be quite generally distributed. Yar. insectus Fop.hes. (PI. XL, Fig. 8-6.) Cyclops insectus, Forbes, *82:i. p. i;49. PI. IX.. Fi^. (i. Cyclops parcus, Herrick, ■82a, p. 229. PI. VI.. Fio^. 12-15. Cyclops insr-ctus, Herrick. '84, pp. 151, 152, PJ. U, Fig. 9. Cyclops viridis. Clragin. ^83, p. 68, PI. IV.. Fig. 8-16. Cyclops iiniangidatxs. Cragin, "83, p. 71, PI. IV., Fig. 17. Cyclops insectus, Schmeil. "92, p. 95. 42 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. Cyrlops parens, Marsh, '93, pp. 208, 209. PI. IV., Fi>;-. l(i; V.. Fig. 1. Cyclops aiiiericanus, llerrick and Turner, '95, pp. 91, 92, PI. XIV.. Fig. 1-9. Cyclops parens. Herrick and 'I'lirner. '95. pp. 93, 94, PJ. XX., Fig. 12-15: XXL. Fig. 22: XXIII.. Fig. S: XXX.. Fig. 1-8. This variety represents in America the smaller meml)ers of the viridh relationship. It is distingnished from riridi.^ in Europe hy the lack of cilia on the inner side of the stylets, by some sli.C'ht differences in the shape of the rcccptdcnhini Hon'iv'ifi (PL XL, Fig. 3), and by the different shape of the fifth foot. The n'cvpt(i<'iihnn > the solid line. As will be seen by comparing this figure with that of the rcccp- tdciilidit scntiiiis of ('. riridis (PI. X., Fig. 2), the anterior portion of the receptaculum is comparatively larger in 'niscctii.s and its outline as a whole is somewhat different. I find that the coloring of this species is so variable that no 44 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. dependence can be placed upon it for purposes of distinction. This variety may be wholly red or blue or greenish or it may even be colorless. It is found everywhere in the United States and Canada where C'l/clojis have been collected, and no situation seems to be free from them. In Illinois by far the greater portion of the C'!ich>])s of the small ponds and temi)orary pools and puddles belong to this species. Cyclops bicuspidatus Glaus. (PI. XII., Fig. 1-4.) Cijclops hicuspidaliis. Clans, '57, p. 20'J. Cyclops pulcheUvs, Sars, 'GS, pp. 246.247, PI. XI., Fig. 6 and 7. Cijclops navus. Herrick, ■82a. p. 229, PJ. V.. Fig. G-13, 15-17. Cyclops thomasi, Forbes. ■82a, p. 649. (Jyclops Incuspidatm, SL-hmeil, '92, pp. 75-87, PJ. II.. Fig. 1-3. Cyclops minnilns, Forbes, '93, p. 247. Cyclops sfiri-atiis, I^orbes, "93, pp. 247,248. Cyclopis forbesi, IlerriL-k and Tnrnev, '95, p. 104. SYNONYMICAL DISCUSSION. This immensely variable and widely distributed species is represented in the United States by a number of forms which have been described by our most reliable zoologists as species new to science. As more complete series of collections from the United States have been studied, it has become evident that these forms are so closely connected in series, that dis- tinctions Avhich a few years ago were considered as specific must l)e cast aside and the whole group united under the name of the European form. With regard to Cjiclops tlioiiui^'i Forbes, I must agree with Dr. Schmeil that there is no need of considering this form as even a variety. A close study of the type specimens of ( 'jirl(>p>i t]i()iiuiiroad, with a plumose seta at the outer angle, the terminal segment roughly cylindrical, at least twice as long as broad, with two terminal seta% the outer of which is as long as the seta of the preceding segment and the inner a little more than half that length. This iinier seta is sometimes spine-like. NortJi Auicrican Frcsli-i.vatcr Cyclopidcc. 47 The rccc\)tn('\{]ini\ semi his (PI. XII., Fig. 4) is regular in outline, the anterior horder being a low arch extending com- pletely across the segment. The posterior portion is much deeper and al)out half as wide. The l)road spermal canals arise from the anterior angles. The porus is exactly between the two anterior angles. The egg-sacs are usually small and round in the specimens from large lakes ; otherwise they are elliptical and very large. The iisual length of the female is 1-1.4 mm. This species is very Avidely distri])uted in America. It has been found in Massachusetts and Wyoming and in all the intervening territory. It is the common pelagic species of the Great Lakes, but also occurs in large numbers in our ponds and rivers. Inhabiting, as it does, such a great amount of territory and such a variety of situations, it is not strange that it proves to be a very variable form. The Massachusetts form is exactly as described by Dr. Schmeil. In Wyoming this sx^ecies is very much more slender in all its details, though not ditfering markedly in any other way from the type. Between these two extremes in location are a great number of intermediates in form. The fifth foot is rather variable, but I note no variation in the shape of the ycccpiaciihini scnii- II is. The vertical combs of spines on the stylets are always present, but are not always conspicuous in the Western speci- mens. Although the most attenuate specimens examined were usually from large lakes and the most robust from ponds, I find that no other generalizations are i)ossible with regard to the character of the specimens in connection with the nature of the situation — probably on account of the frequent transfers of individuals from one of these situations to another. Sul (genus Macrocyclops Claus. Cyclops albidus JrnixE. (PL XIII.) Mo7ioculu.sqaadriconiis var. rt^6»ZHS. Jurlne.'20, p. 44.P1. II.; Fi_y. 10. 11. Cijclops (pjrinus, Forbes. "iJUa, pp. 707-709, PI. II.. Fig. 9: III.. Fiu-. 14. Cyclops signatus vtir. teuuicornis, Herrick and Turner. '95. pp. lOG. 107, PI. XV.. Fio-. 5-7: XX.. Fi.i>-. 1-7: XXXIII.. Fio-. 1,2. Cyclops albidus. St-hnieil. "92, pp. 128-l;52. Pi. I.. Fig. S-14b; PJ. IV.. Fiff. ir,. 48 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. SYNONYMY. Since the description of C. fii/rlinis by Dr. Forbes in IS 90, more careful descriptions of ('. (ilhldua in Europe and fur- ther studies in America have established the identity of the two forms. The original descrii^tion of C. fiiiriiiKs was in- complete in that the presence of the sense-club and hyaline plates was not observed. SPECIFIC DESCRIPTION. This is a stout, heavy species, with a strongly arched cephalothorax, which, as a whole, is usually quite elliptical, with the lateral angles of the segments almost invisible ; but in specimens from Manitoba I find the cephalothorax shaped much as in C. riridis. The first segment in these is subspherical, narrowing posteriorly, and the posterior end of the second segment is much broader than the anterior end. All of the lateral angles are prominent. The breadth of the first segment compared with its length is as ten or eleven to twelve. The dorsum of the fifth segment in this species is or- namented by three or four transverse rows of spinules, the posterior one of which borders the segment. The abdomen is thick and heavy. The first segment in the female is but slightly enlarged and tapers very little. The re- maining segments are cylindrical. The stylets are short and slightly divergent. The proportion of the length to the breadth of the stylet varies l)ut slightly. The usual ratio is two and one half to one. The apical bristles are all well developed, the third from without being the longest, and the innermost three times as long as the outermost. The first antenna' of the female are seventeen-segmented, and reach to the first abdominal segment. The distal three segments bear hyaline plates, entire, except for minute ser- rations on the distal half of the plate of the seventeenth seg- ment. The twelfth segment bears an unusually large sense- clul). The swimming feet are armed as follows : — First pair : outer ramus, four spines, four setiB ; inner ramus, one seta. North American Frcs]L-ii. each. The spine is about one third the length of the seta\ The inner seta, that is the one next the spine, is borne on a conical projection from the North American Frcsh-watcr Cyclopidcr. 51 body of the segment. Neither the setie nor the spine seem to be provided with hairs or spinules. The rec('2)t((riili(iii ^n'lii'mis (PL XY., Fig. 3) is of an unusual and very characteristic shape. The anterior part is small, and its outline is marked by two anterior and two lateral rounded prominences. The posterior j^art consists of a median lobe, partially divided posteriorly, and two curved lateral lobes from which lead the lateral canals. The porus is in the median part connecting the upper and lower divisions. The egg-sacs are of the usual size and shape. In length the female varies from 1.77 to 2.88 mm. The color is unusually variable. It is commonly dark blue or green but may be gray or red. The deep color and large size make this a conspicuous species. Herrick says that it is widely but sparingly distributed over the Mississippi Valley. Marsh reports it from Eush, Eound, St. Clair, Intermediate, Twenty-sixth, and Susan lakes in Wisconsin. I have noted its occurence in collections from Thompson's, Quiver, Flag, Phelps, and Dogfish lakes near Havana, Illinois. Subgenus Or thocy clops n. subgen. Antennae sixteen-segmented. liami of swimming feet, three- segmented. Fifth feet three-segmented, distal segment bear- ing two apical seta^. Cyclops modestus Heerick. (PI. XY., Fig. 4, and PI. XYL, Fig. 1-3.) Cyclops modestus^ Ilerrick, 'S3a, p. 500. Cyclops modestus, Herriek and Turner, "05, pp. 108, 109, PI. XXI., bi>?. 1-5. Cyclops modestus. Marsli, '93, pp. 213, 214, PI. V., Fi^. 10-13. Cyclops capilUferus, Forbes, "93. pp. 248. 249, PI. XL., Fio^. 14-17: XLI.. Fijr. 18. SYNONYMY AND DISTRIBUTION. By a study of the type specimens of Cyclops rdpiUifmis I find that they agree almost completely with Herrick's descrip- tion of C. inodi'stiis. The descriptions differ with respect to 52 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. the position of certain spines of the feet, but this is really a difference in description rather than in characters. I find also that specimens collected in Wyoming agree exactly with the Illinois representatives of the species. I have noted its occurrence in collections from Quiver, Dog- fish, and Thompson's lakes, and from the Illinois Eiver, near Havana, 111. ; from the Sangamon Eiver, in Champaign county, Illinois ; and from Grebe Lake in Yellowstone Park. Marsh reports it from Eush Lake, Wisconsin, and Herrick finds it in Cullman county, Alabama, and in Minnesota lakes. I have never found it in temporary ponds nor in any of the Great Lakes. From the situations in which it occurs I judge that this species seeks shallow, weedy water rather than pelagic situations. It is not an especially rare species, but I have never found more than a very few individuals in a single collection, SPECIFIC DESCRIPTION. The cephalothoracic segments are closely articulated and the sides regularly convex. The first, segment is longer than usual and the fourth is semicircularly excavate behind. The posterior edges of the first three segments are irregularly notched and the fourth is smooth. The length of the cepha- lothorax is to its breadth as two to one. The abdomen is long, slender, and cylindrical, and is pecu- liar in lacking the usual fringe of spines on the posterior edge of the last segment. The posterior edges of the other seg- ments are likewise smooth. The anterior end of the first segment is but little enlarged. The segments diminish regu- larly in length from first to last. The caudal stylets are about twice the length of the last segment and four times as long as broad. The lateral seta is placed a trifle beyond the middle of the ramus. Behind the lateral spine the stylet is pecu- liarly excavate. The outer terminal bristle, which is set farther forward than in most species, is a short, sparsely plumose seta, l)ut the other three seta' are well developed. Of these tlu'ee the middle one is consideral>ly the longest and the inner one slightlv shorter than the outer. NortJi American FresJi-uiciisj)i(hifii>i Glaus. It is nearly elliptical in outline, and only a small part of the anterior end extends farther forward than the suture in which the porus is situated. The lateral canals lead from the anterior i^art. The egg-sacs are long and narrow and lie close to the abdomen. In length this species does not vary to any marked degree from an average of 1.2 mm. The coloring is most beautiful, varying from violet to purple. It is evenly distril)uted, and is (juite persistent in specimens preserved in formalin. 54 Illinois State f. a b oratory of Natural History. Subgenus Eucy clops Claus. Cyclops serrulatus Fischek. (PI. XYIL, and PI. XYIIL, Fig. 1-3.) (Ujclups serrulatus and C. srrrulatus var. montanus, Brady, "78. Vol. I., pp. 109-111, PI. XXn.. Fi^■. 1-14. Cyclops serrulatus and C. serrulatus var. fh-gans, Ilerrick, '81, PI. (^). Fis- 17-19; PI. Q^ Fio. 10. Cijclops serrulatus, Schmeil, '92, pp. 141-14G, PJ. V., Fi^;. f;-14. SYNONYMY, VARIATION, AND DISTRIBUTION. This is one of the most common and widely distributed of American CiicIoj>s. It occurs ahnost everywhere between Maine and California and from Florida to Manitoba. Herrick's variety dciittua is based on such variable charac- ters that no one acquainted with the species throughout its range could for an instant consider this form as Avorthy of a varietal name, especially since the measurements and descrip- tions of the type and the variety are contradictory as pub- lished in his "Synopsis of the Entomostraca of Minnesota." Herrick says that the variety is distinguished from the type by its greater size and by the elongation of the autenmie and caudal stylets; but gives 1.5 mm. as the length of the type, and 1.34 as that of the hirficy variety. In Europe the largest specimen on record measured 2.2 mm. in length, much more than Herrick's large variety. As to the length of the antenna, I find that this varies immensely and quite independently of other variations in proportion. Below is a series of meas- urements of seven egg-bearing females of this species, from widely separated situations and exhibiting its variability. Further study of a much larger number of specimens has convinced me that there are no varietal distinctions possible among the iVmerican representatives of this species, unless for convenience we arbitrarily separate off the extreme forms. With the exception of the specimen from Thompson's Lake, each individual is fairly representative of the species as found in its own locality. North Aiiwrican Frcsh-ivatcr Cyclopidte. 55 Locality Length to breadth of caudal stylet Antenna terminates LengthBreadth. Portiiffe Iva Prairie, Manitoba .078:. 018=4.3:1 Before end of tirst .segment. .7 .252 Urbaiia 111 .027:. 015=1. 8:1 End of first seo-ment. .54 .198 Spoon River, 111 .072:. 0225=3. 2:1 End of first seo^ment. .792 .324 Tlionipsou's Lake, 111 .075:. 018=4. 2:1 End of third seonieut. .72 .21G Pelicau Creek. VVyo. .087:. 08=2. 9:1 Middle of second seo^ment. .882 .324 Wooers Holl, Mass.. .111:. 027=4.1:1 Middle of third secernent. .882 .36 Lake Geneva, Wis. . .24:. 027=8. 9:1 End of third .segment. 1.42G .45 It is also my opinion that Brady's variety uioutainis should be considered as merely a variation of the typical form. SPECIES DESCRIPTION. The cephalothorax (PL XVII.) is quite regular in shape, being almost exactly elliptical in outline. Its segments are closely joined and its lateral outlines smooth. The fourth segment is deeply excavated behind and is usually Ijordered by tine sharp teeth or by long hairs. The abdomen (PL XYIL, and PL XYIIL, Fig. 1) is broad in front, but narrows so rapidly posteriorly that the greater part of the first segment is as narrow as the slender segments following. Behind the enlargement of the first segment the abdomen tapers very little. The last segment is bordered posteriorly by the usual row of spinules, and the preceding segments by fine sharp serrations. The stylets are commonly about straight, but are occasionally strongly outcurved and divergent. Their length to breadth varies from 1 : 1.8 to 1 : 9 but 1 : 4 is the commonest proportion. A row of spinules, spines, or curved hooks marks the outer border of each stylet and extends from its base to the point of insertion of the outer apical spine, near the posterior end. These projections in- 56 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. crease rapidly in length at the i)osterior end and fade away in front. The male does not have this character, and adult females are very rarely found without it. Of the four apical In-istles the middle two are well developed. The inner one of this pair is much longer than the outer. The innermost of the four is a very slender seta. The outermost varies in character from a long seta hordered externally hy harhules and internally by long slender cilia, to a long strong spine serrate on both sides. It may be anywhere from one half to four fifths as long as the stylet. The first antenna3 are twelve-segmented. Dr. Schmeil notes the presence of a minute sensory bristle on the ninth segment in the place occupied by the sense-club on the twelfth segment of seventeen- segmented antenna-. It is very inconspicuous indeed. The last three segments are usually very long and are armed on the inner side by hyaline plates. The usual armature of the swimming feet is as follows : — First pair : outer ramus, three spines, five setae ; inner ramus, one seta, one spine, four sette. Second and third pairs : outer ramus, four spines, live setcT ; inner ramus, two spines, four setie. Fourth pair : outer ramus, three spines, live setue ; inner ramus, one seta, two spines, two sets'. The fifth foot (PI. XYIII., Fig. 2) is one-segmented and plate-like. On the inner side is a very strong serrate spine. At the tip, borne on a cone-shaped projection, is a very long slender seta, parallel to the spine. On the outer side is a delicate little seta projecting outward at a considerable angle. The rcfcjifdciihiin .-tciiiinis (PL XYIII., Fig. 3) is almost com- pletely divided iuto an anterior and a posterior part, by a median constriction. The i)orus is situated in the middle of this narrow connecting part. The lower half extends down into the narrow part of the first abdominal segment. The spermal canals are attached to the receptaculum at the outer angles of the lower part. The egg- sacs are usually long, with many eggs, but some- times contain only a few, arranged in a spherical mass. North American FrcsJi-ivatcr Cyclopidce. 57 Ordinarily the egg- sac tapers to a sharp point at the lower end, and stands out from the abdomen at a wide angle. The size is remarkal)ly variable. In Enrope, the length varies from .883 to 2.2 mm. In America I have measured specimens varying in length from .54 to 1.47 mm. A com- mon length is .*,) mm. Cyclops prasinus Fischek, (PI. XIX., Fig. 1 and 2, and ri. XX., Fig. 1 and 2.) Cxjclops prasinus^ Fischer, 'GO, pp. 052-054. PI. XX., Fig. 10-'2Ga. Cyclops fliiinalills^ Ilerrick, '82 a, p. 231, PI. VII.. Fig. 1-9. Cyclops magnoctavus, Cragin, '83, pp. 70,71, PI. III.. Fig. 14-23. Cyclops prasinus, Sehmeil, *92. pp. 150-150, PI. V., Fig. 1-5. Cyclops fluviati lis, Herrick and Turner. '95, pp. 114,115, PI. XXVI., Fig. 1-8; XXX., Fig. 1. SYNONYMY AND DISTKIBUTION. On account of the great difficulty in determining the struc- ture of the rc'ct'])t((riibiiii sc in hi is of C ^yrasiniis, this organ has escaped study in the American representatives of this species, and although Marsh had noted a general resemblance of Herrick's ('. jJiiridfUis to Vosseler's C. pciitdfioiius (C. 2im-'ii)ni-'^ Fischer), he did not consider these as identical. By a careful study of a large number of specimens of C. Jiuvuit- tlis from Illinois, Florida, and "Wisconsin, I find a complete agreement in the characters of the rcccptunduiu scininis of C. jirdsiiiiis and C. tiiir'uifilis and in all other specific characters as well. I have noted the occurrence of C. jirdsinns in collections from Sister Lake, Florida ; Long Lake, Adams county. 111. ; ponds and temporary pools at Urbana, 111. ; Illinois Kiver at Havana, 111. ; Phelps, Flag, and Thompson's lakes in Ful- ton county, 111. ; Dogfish and (Quiver lakes in ^lason county, 111. ; and from Lake Geneva, Wisconsin. Herrick reports it from Lake Minnetonka, Minn., and from an estuary of the Mississippi, Marsh finds the species in Lakes Erie, Michi- gan, and St. Clair, and in fifteen smaller lakes of Michigan and Wisconsin. Cragin found it in ditches at Cambridge, Mass. 58 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. It is thus, in all probability, quite generally distributed over the eastern and central United States, but I have not found it in collections from the far West. It occurs in all situations from great lakes and rivers to temporary roadside puddles of but a few weeks' duration. SPECIFIC DESCRIPTION. This minute species has a slender cephalothorax which is very nearly elliptical in outline. The first segment is regu- larly convex anteriorly and is unusually long. The posterior borders of the segments are entire. The lateral edges of the last segment are fringed by a row of the finest hairs. The abdomen is long and slender and tapers but little. The enlargement of the anterior segment is slight. The pos- terior borders of all the abdominal segments are very finely serrate. The stylets are short and divergent but are not themselves outcurved. The lateral spine is inserted just beyond the middle of the stylet. The inner and outer apical bristles are very short and delicate, the inner one, the longer of the two. Only the middle pair of sette are well developed, and the outer of these is three fourths the length of the inner. The first pair of antenna" (PI. XIX., Fig. 2) of the female are twelve- segmented and often reach quite to the first abdominal segment. The seventh, eighth, and ninth segments are very long. The last three segments are curved and the last four are freely movable. Schmeil states that the ninth segment bears a sense-club. I do not find it present in the American repre- sentatives of the species, although there is a minute sensory bristle on the end of the tenth segment. The last three seg- ments l)ear a hyaline plate whose edge is entire. The spines and seta^ of the three-segmented swimming feet are very long and slender. The armature is as follows : — First pair : outer ramus, three spines, five settle ; inner ramus, six seta;. Second pair : outer ramus, four spines, live seta- ; inner ramus, six seta;. Third pair armed like second. Fourth pair : outer ramus, three spines, five sette ; inner ramus, one seta, one spine, three sette. The fifth foot (PI. XX., Fig. 1) is one-segmented and bears North American FresJi-ivatcr Cyclopidce. 59 three bristles. The inner one is a ciHate spine while the other two are plumose setae. The middle one of the three is home at the tip of a cone-shaped process. The inner edge of the foot is bordered by a row of minute hairs. The rectptaciiliim semi n is (PI. XX., Fig. 2) is most peculiar and characteristic. It consists of two parts, anterior and posterior, separated by the suture marking the original division of the first abdominal segment. The upper part consists of two S-shaped canals, one on each side of the median line, extending across the abdomen. The inner ends which point downward, fuse in a thicker portion connecting the anterior division with the posterior. The part of the receptaculum behind the suture consists of two lateral sacs, which connect with each other and with the upper part of the receptaculum at the same point. In the middle of this common part is the porus. The outer ends of the tubular portion are slightly enlarged ; otherwise the diameter is uniform. The structure of this organ has never before been observed in the American representatives of Cyclops prasinus. The egg-sacs contain few ova and are closely adherent to the abdomen. The length of the female varies from .48 to .7 mm. The color is unusually variable. The prevailing color of European specimens seems to be green. I have seen l)oth blue and pink individuals. Herrick says that the color varies from deep indigo to greenish brown. Subgenus Paracyclops Claus. Cyclops phaleratus Koch. (PI. XX., Fig. 3.) Cijclops phaleratus, Koch, '35-41, Ileft 21, pp. 8, 9. PJ. IX. Cyclops jierarmatus, Crasin, '83, pp. 72, 73, PI. I., Fio;-. 9-l^i. Cyclops phaleratxis, Selnueil, ■!)2. pp. 170-178, PI. VIII.. Fi^^. 1-11. Cyclops phtileratus, Herrick and Turner. '95, pp. I'JO, 121. PI. XVII. , Fig. 1-7 ; XVIII., Fig. 2-2d ; XIX.. Fig. 1; XXI., Fig. 6-10. Cyclops phaleratus, Marsh, "95, pp. 19, 20. DISTRIBUTION. In America this si^ecies is rare, though evidently widely distributed. I have noted its occurrence in collections from the Illhiois Eiver at Havana, 111. ; a pond at Urbana, 111. ; 60 Illinois Statv Laboratory of Natural History. Delavan Lake, Wisconsin; Quiver Lake, 111.; Green Lake, Wisconsin ; Cedar Lake, 111. ; and a slough at Portage La Prairie, Manitoba. Marsh reports it from Lake St. Clair; and from Twenty-sixth Lake, Pigeon Paver, and Intermediate Lake, Michigan. Cragin describes this species as Ci/rlops pavdiiiutfux from Glacialis Pond, Cambridge, Mass. It is a littoral rather than a pelagic form and where occurring in large bodies of water it is found only in the marginal vegeta- tion. SPECIFIC DESCRIPTION. The cephalothorax is broad and elliptical. The first seg- ment is longer than the remainder. The chitinous covering of the fifth segment, which in all other species of this genus is composed like the four preceding cephalothoracic segments of a dorsal and ventral plate, is in C. pluderatiis like the chitinous covering of the abdominal segments in that it con- sists of but one piece. The ventral portion of the posterior border of this segment is set with a row of fine teeth, evanes- cent in the middle. About the rudimentary feet are several rows of line spinules. The abdomen is large and cylindrical, and very little smaller than the last cephalothoracic segment. The first segment tapers very little. The posterior borders of the first, second, and third abdominal segments of the female are finely serrate. The last segment is very short and the spines on its posterior border are especially long and strong. The profusely spinose stylets are short and broad and taper very rapidly. On the ventral side of each ramus is a row of long spinules, extend- ■ ing from the middle line of the anterior border to the point of insertion of the lateral spine. From this point on, the rami taper much more rapidly. The inner border of the stylets is ciliate* and the whole inner aspect may be spinose. The outermost apical bristle, which is placed high up on the side of the stylet, is short, and plumose on both sides. The inner bristle is very slender and is about as long as the outer. It is plumose on the outside only.* Tlie two median bristles ♦ Incorrect in figure. North Aj/ici-ican Frcsh-watcr Cyclop idee. 61 alone are well developed. The inner one of this pair is from two to three times as long as the onter. Except for the onter side of the outer one of the pair, the anterior third of each is naked. The remainder is usually sparsely plumose. The antenncB of the female may be either ten- or eleven- segmented and reach only a little beyond the middle of the first cephalothoracic segment. In the ten-segmented antenna the seventh segment bears a delicate sensory hair at its distal end. This hair is borne on the eighth segment of the eleven-segmented antenna. The second antennie are short and proportionately broad. On the outer side of the second segment is a double row of spinules. On the upper border of this segment is a spine and a fringe of spinules. This spine and the shortest one at the end of the third segment are very peculiar. Both are strongly curved near the tip, and the inner side of this curve is fringed by a comb-like row of teeth. The three-segmented swimming-feet are strongly armed and their outer borders bear i-ows of long spinules. The armature of the distal segments is as follows : — First pair : outer ramus, three spines, live seticusj>id<(tus and ('d^])i(J(ttiis was the predominating form, but it soon disappeared entirely, its place being taken by viridls var. iiiserfu.s. From this time throughout the summer /'».s-c('f».s was by far the most abundant form. Ei xar. popper, riridis, modestKs, hlcolor, (ilhidK.s, and pludwdtna were of rare occur- rence. LIST OF NORTH AMERICAN SPECIES. Below is a list of the fresh-water Cyclopida3 reported from America. I have myself seen all of the species of this list except those herein credited to Herrick. Genus CYCLOPS. I. Subgenus Ciiclops s. str. Claus. 1. Cyclops h'liekdrfi Claus. This is a rare species throughout the north central States. 2. Cjiclop>i 'nisifpiis Claus, ^/tV/c Herrick. Herrick has found at Long Island a form which he identi- ties as this species. 3. Ci/clojis cfhtx Forbes. This is a very common species in the Great Lakes and in the waters of the north central States, Florida, and Wyoming. It occurs in Argentina, South America. 4. Ciirlops oltJioiioidc.s Sars, //r/c Herrick. I regard the occurrence of this species in America as very doubtful. 5. Ctjrlops diil)oirshil Lande. A rare species found only in the small mountain lakes of Wyoming and in a temporary pond at Urbana, Illinois. 64 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. 6. Cffclop.s riridls Jnrine, Either the typical form or its varieties occur everywhere in the fresh waters of the United States. It is the commonest form of the temporary i)onds. ((. var. ])r('risj)'niosvs Herrick. Ii. var, 'ni.scetii.t Forhes. 7. C}icJop>i ])i('iiHj)i(l(itiis Clans. This species is of the widest range and greatest abundance. It is the commonest Cyclops in the Great Lakes. 8. Ci/clops rer^al'is Fischer, Occurs in small numl)ers in Lake Geneva, Wisconsin. II, Subgenus Macrociicloj)^ Clans, 9. Ci/eloj)>i fiisots Jurine. Occurs sparingly in the ponds and lakes of Wisconsin, Michigan, Illinois, and Massachusetts. 10. Cyclops alhulns Jurine. Rather a common species throughout the whole range of the genus. III. Subgenus Homoei/clops n. subgen. 11. Cyclops (iter Herrick, Very rare throughout the Mississippi Valley, Also in Lake St, Clair (Kofoid). IV, Subgenus Ortliocjidops n. subgen, 12. Cyclops modestns Herrick, An uncommon species in the lakes and streams of Wyo- ming, Alabama, and the north central States. V. Subgenus M'icrocy clops Clans. 13. Cyclops hicolor Sars. , Eare in Wyoming, Illinois, Wisconsin, Michigan, and Min- nesota, 14. Cyclo])s r((y}c?eu om Cyclopiderna. Ent. Tidskrift, Ar^. 14. Hiift 4, pp. 243-247, Fijr. 1-24. Claus, C. '57. Das Genus Cj'clops und seine einheiniischen Arten. 40 pp., 3 Pis. Marburjj. '58. Znr Anatomie und Encwicklnn^su-eschichte der Copepoden. Arch. i. Naturgeseh., XXIV. Jahrg., Bd. I., pp. 1-70, Taf. I.-III. '63. Die freilebenden Copepoden mit besonderer Beriicksichtigung der Fauna Deutschlands, der Xordsee und des Mittelmeeres. 230 pp., 37 Pis. Leipzig. '76. Untersuchungen zur Erforschungdergenealogischen Grundlage des Crustaceen-Systems. Ein Beitragzur Descendenzlehre. 114 pp., 19 Pis. Wien. '91. Uber das Verhalten des nerv<)sen Endapparates an den Sinnes- haaren der Crnstaceen. Zool. Anz.. XIV, Jahrg., Xo. 375, pp. 363-3G8. '93. Uber die Bildung der Greifantenne der Cyclopiden und ihre Zuriickfiihrung auf die weiblichen Antennen und auf die der Calani- den. Zool. Anz., XVI. Jahrg., Xos. 423 u. 424, pp. 261-2G9, 277-285. '93a. Uber die Antennen der Cyclopiden und die Autlusung der Gattuug Cyclops in Gattungen und Untergattungen. Anz. der K. Akad. d. Wisseusch, Wien., Nr. IX., pp. 79-83. '93b. Uber die sogenannten Bauchwirbel am iutegumentalen Skelet der Copepoden und die medianen Zwischenplatten der Ruderfuss- paare. Arb. Zool. Inst. Uni\^ Wien., T. X.. 3 Heft. pp. 217-232, Taf. XXIII.-XXV. '93c. Xeue Beobachtungen ilber die Organisation und Entwicklung von Cyclops. Ein Beitrag zur Systematik der Cyclopiden. Arb. Zool. Inst. L niv. Wien, T. X., 3 Heft. pp. 283-356, Taf. XXXI.- XXXVII. 68 lUinois State Laboratory of Natural History. '93d. Weitere Mittheiluiigen iiber die Aiitennen-j^lioderung iind iiber die Gattun<^eii der Cyclopiden. Anz. der K. Akad. d. Wis- sensch. Wien., Nr. XIII., pp. 116-120. '95. Uber die Wiederbelebiin^' im Schlainme eiiio-etrockneter Cope- poden und Copepoden-Eier. Arb. Zool. Inst. Univ. Wien, T. XI.. 1 Heft, pp. 1-11. Taf. 1., II. '95a. Uber die Maxillarfiisse der Copepoden. Arb. Zool. Inst. Univ. Wien. T. XI., 1 Ileft, pp. 49-63, Taf. VIII. Cragin, F. W. '83. A Contribution to the History of the Fresh-water Copepoda. Trans. Kansas Acad. Sci., Vol. VIII.. pp. 66-80. PLs. I.-IV. Daday, E. v. '84. Catalogus Crustaceorum fauna' Transj'lvania?. Orv.-Term6«zet- tud. ilrtesit(>, Vol. IX., pp. 161-187. '85. Neue Thierarten aus der Siisswasserfauna von Budapest. Term. fiiz.. Bd. IX.. Xo. 2, pp. 208-215, Taf. IX. '85a. Monographia Eucopepodorum liberorum in Hungaria hucusque repertorura. Math, es Terme.szettud. Kr)zlem, Vol. XIX., pp. 117-311. Pis. I.-IV. '91. Adatok Magyaroi'szas; edesvizi niikroskopos faunajanak is- ineretrbez. Term, fiiz., Vol. XIV., pp. 16-31. PI. I. '91a. Beitriixe zur mikroskopischen Siisswasserfauna Ungarus. Term, f iiz , Bd. XIV., pp. 107-123, Pi. I. Dana, J. D. '48. ( Jonspectus Crustaceorum qua- in Orbis terrarum circunmaviga- tione, Caroli Wilkes e Classe ReipublicfB Frederatre duce, col- leetoruin. Proc. Am. A(!ad. Arts and Sci., Vol. I., pp. 149-155. Eusebio, J. B. '88. Recherches sur la faune des eaux du Plateau Central. Le Faune Pclaiiique des Lacs d'Auvergne. Trav. Labor. Zool. Girod, T. I., pp. 1-29, PI. I. Fischer, S. '60. Beitriige zur Kenntniss der Entomostraceen. Abhandl. d. kgl. bayerisch. Acad. d. AVLssensch., Bd. VIII.. Abth. III., pp. 645-682, Taf. XX.-XXII. Forbes, S. A. '76. List of Illinois Crustacea, with Descriptions of New Species. Bull. 111. State Lab. Xat. Hist., Vol. I., Xo. 1, pp. 3-25. '82. On the Food of Young Whitefish (Coregonus). Bull. U. S. Fish Comm., Vol. I., pp. 269, 270. '82a. On some Entomostraca of I>ake ^lichigan and Adjacent Waters. Am. Nat., Vol. XVL, pp. 537-543, 640-650, Pis. VIII., IX. North Aincricaii FrcsJi-zuatcr Cyclopidte. 69 '87. The Lake as a Microcosm. Bull. Peoria Sci. Ass'n, 1887. 1") pp. '90. Preliminary Report upon the Invertebrate Animals inhabiting Lakes Genev-a and Mendota, Wisconsin, with an Account of the Fish Epidemic in Lake Mendota in 1884. Bull. U. S. Fish Comm., Vol. Vnir., pp. 473-487. '90a. On some Lake Superior Entomostraca. Ann. Rep. U. S. Coram. Fish and Fisheries, 1887. pp. 701-717, Pis. I.-IV. '93. A Preliminary Report on the Aijuatic Invertebrate Fauna of the Yellowstone National Park. Wyoming, and of the Flathead Region of Montana. Bull. U. S. Fish Comm., 181)1, i)p. 207-258, Pis. XXXYIL-XLIL Fric.(Fritsch), A. '72. Die Krustenthiere Brihmens. Archiv der naturw. Landes- durchf. Bohmen, Band 11., Abth. IV.. pp. 203-269. '95. Uber Schmuckfarben einiger Siisswasser-Crustaceen. Bull. Internatl Acad, des Sci. de FEmpereur Francois Joseph I., Classe des Sci. Math, et Xat. II. 7 pp., 2 coloi'ed plates. Fritsch (Fric), A.,u. Vavra, V. '92. Vorliiuflger Bericht iiljer die Fauna des I'nter-Pocernitzer- und Gatterschlager Teiches. Zool. Anz., XV. Jahrg., No. 382. pp. 26-30. '94. Untersuchungen liber die Fauna der Gewiisser Bohmens. IV. Die Tierwelt des X'nterpocernitzer und Gatterschlager Teiches als Resultat der Arbeiten an der iibertragbaren zoologischen Station. Arch. d. naturw. Landesdurchf. v. BTibmen. Bd. IX., Nr. II. 123 pp. Fric, J. A. '82. Note preliminaire sur Tontogcnie de nos Gopepodes d'eau douce. Zool. Anz., V. Jahrg., No. 121 , pp. 498-.503. Garbini, A. '94. Primi materiali per una Monografia limnologica del Lago di Garda. Bull, della Soc. Entom. It., Anno XXVI., pp. 1-50. '95. Appunti di Carcinologia Veronese. Estratto dal Vol. LXXI., Scrie III., Fasc. I., dell' Accademia di Verona. 91 pp. Giesbrecht, W. '81. Die freilebenden Copepoden der Kieler F<>hrde. Ber. d. Kom. z. w. Unters. d. deutsch. Meere in Kiel, pp. 87-168, Taf. I.-XII. Gruber, A. '78. Die Bildung der Eiersiickchen bei den Copepoden. Zool. Anz. 1. Jahrg.. p. 247. Guerne, J. de '87. Notes sur la faune des A9ores. Diagnoses d'un Molluscpie, d'un Rotifere, et de trois Crustaces nouveaux. Le Xaturaliste, 1887. 7 pp. 70 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. '87a. La faune des eaux donees des Acores et le transport des ani- maux a grande distance par Tinternu'diaire des oiseanx. Compt. rend, de la Soc. Biol., Seance du 2'2 oct., 1SS7. 4 pp. '88. Excursions zoologiques dans les iles de Fayal et de San Miguel (Acores). Campagnes scientifiques du Yacht monegasque I'llii-on- delle, Troisicme Ann. (1887), pp. 7-110. Guerne, J. de, et Richard, J. '89. Sur la faune des eaux douces du Groenland. Compt. rend, de I'Acad. des Sci., 25 mars, 1889. '89a. Note sur les Eutomostraces d'eau douce recueillis par M. Charles Rabot dans la Province de Nordland, Norvcge septentrionale. Bull de la Soc. zool. de France. T. XIV., pp. 27-31. '91. Entomostraccs, Rotifcres.et Protozoaires provenant des rccoltes de M. E. Belloc dans les ctaugs de Cazau et de Hourtins (Girondej, Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVI., pp. 112-11.0. '91a. Sur queJ(jues Entomostraccs d'eau douce de Madagascar. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVI., pp. 223. 224. '91b. Entomostract's recueillis par M. Charles Rabot en Russie et en Siberie. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVI., pp. 232-236. '92. Cladoceres et Copcpodes d'eau douce des environs de Rufisque. Mem. de la Soc. zool. de France, T. V., pp. 526-538. '92a. Voj-age de M. Charles Rabot en Islande. Sur la faune des eaux douces. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVII., pp., 75-80. '92b. Sur la faune pclagique de quelques lacs des Hautes-Pyrenees. Assoc, franc, pour Tavanc. des Sci., Congrcs de Pau, seance du 19 sept. 3 pp. '93. Sur la faune pelagicjue des lacs du Jura frangais. Compt. rend, de I'Acad. des Sci. 3 pp. Hacker, V. '95. L'ber die Selbst;indigkeit der vaterlichen und miitterlichen Kernbestandtheile wahrend der Embryonalentvvicklung von Cy- clops. Arch. f. mikr. Anat., Bd. 46, pp. 579-61 8, Taf. XXVIII.-XXX. Hartog, M. M. '88. The Morphology of Cyclops and the Relations of the Copepoda. Trans. Linn. Soc. London, Vol. V., Part I., pp. 1-46, Pis., I.-IV. Hartwig, W. '93. Verzeichniss der lebenden Krebsthiere der Provinz Branden- burg. Statt handschriftl. Mitteiiungen herausgeg. v. Markischeu Prov.-Mus. der Stadtgemeinde Berlin. Pp. 1-44. North American Fresh-zuatcr Cyciopidce. 71 '94. Die lebenden Krebstiere der Provinz Brandenburg. Naclitrag 7A1 meinem "Yerzeichniss" von 1893. '••Brandenbnri;ia." Monats- blatt der Gesellsdi. f. Heimatkunde der Prov. Brandenburg zu Berlin, Nr. 7, Okt.. 1894. pp. 1G5-169. Hay, W. P. '92. Tlie Crustacea of Indiana. Proc. Ind. Acad. Sci., 1891, pp. 147-151. Heller, C. '71. Untersucbungen iiber die Crustaceen Tirols. Ber. des med.- naturw. Vereins in Innsbruck, 1 Jahrg., pp. 67-96, Taf. I., II. Herrick, C. L. '79. Microscopic Entomostraca. Seventh Ann. Kep. Geol. and Nat. Hist. Surv. Minn., pp. 81-123, Pis. I.-XXI. '82. Habits of Fresh-water Crustacea. Am. Nat., Vol. XVI.. pp. 813-816. '82a. Papers on the Crustacea of the Fresh Waters of Minnesota. Tenth Ann. Rep. Geol. and Nat. Hist. Surv. Minn., pp. 221-255, Pis. I.-XI. '83. Heterogenesis in the Copepod Crustacea. Am. Nat., Vol. XVII., pp. 208-212. '83a. Heterogenetic Development in Diaptomus. Am. Nat., Vol. XVII., pp. 381-389, 499-505. Pis. V.-VII. '83b. Types of Animal Life selected for Laboratory Use in Inland Districts. 33 pp., 1 PI. Minneapolis. '84. A Final Report on the Crustacea of Minnesota included in the Orders Cladocera and Copepoda. Twelfth Ann. Rep. Geol. and Nat. Hist. Surv. Minn., pp. 1-191., Pis. A-V. '87. Contribution to the Fauna of the Gulf of Mexico and the South. List of Fresh-water and Marine Crustacea of Alabama, with Descriptions of the New Species and Synoptical Keys for Identification. Mem. Denison Sci. Ass'n, Vol. I., No. I., pp. 1-56, Pis. I.-VII. Herrick, C. L., and Turner, C. H. '95. Synopsis of the Entomostraca of Minnesota. Geol. and Nat. Hist. Surv. Minn., Zo(>l. Series, II. 525 pp., 81 Pis. Hoek, P. P. C. '76. Zur Kenntniss der freilebenden Siisswas.ser-Copepoden der Niederlandischen Fauna. Nied. Arch. f. Zool., Bd. HI., Heft II., pp. 127-140, Taf. VII.-IX. '78. De vrijlevende Zoetwater-Copepoden der Nederlandsche Fauna. Tijdschr. der Nederlandsche Dierkundige Vereeniging, Deel III., pp. 1-36, Taf. I -V. 72 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. Imhof, 0. E. '83. Die pelaoisohe Fauna und die Tiefseefauiia der zvvei Savoyer- seen: I>ac du Boi;rget und Lac d'Annecy. Zool. Auz.. \'I. Jahrt^., No. 155, pp. 655-057. '84. Weitere Mittheilungen iiber die pelagisclie Favina der Siiss- wasserbecken. Zool. Anz., VII. Jahi-g., No. 169. pp. 321-327. '85. Pelagisclie Thiere aus Siisswasserbecken in Elsass-Lotbringen. Zoo]. Anz., VII]. Jabrg., Xo. 211, pp. 720-723. '85a. Weitere Mittheilung iiber die pelagisebe and Tiefseefauna der Siisswasserbecken. Zool. Anz., VIII. Jahrg., No. 190, pp. 160-163. '86. Neue Resultate tiber die pelagisclie und Tiefseefauna einiger im Flussgebiet des Po gelegener Siisswasserbecken. Zool. Anz., IX. Jahrg. No. 214, pp. 41-47. '86a. Vorl:iufige Notizen iiber die borizontale und verticale geo- graphische Verbreitung der pelagischen Fauna der Siisswasser- Ijecken. Zool. Anz., IX. Jahrg., No. 224. pp. 335-342. '86b. Uber mikroskopische pelagische Thiere aus der Ostsee. Zool. Anz., IX. Jahrg., No. 235. pp. 612-015. '87. Uber die ruicroscopiscbe Thierwelt hoclialpiner Seen. Zool. Anz., X. Jahrg., Nos. 241 u. 242. pp. 13-17. 33-42. '87a. Notizen iiljer die pelagische Fauna der Siisswasserbecken. Zool. Anz., X. Jahrg., Nos. 264 u. 265, pp. 577-582, 604-606. '87b. Studien iiber die Fauna hochalpiner Seen insbesondere des Kantons Graubiinden. Jahre.ccics read variety. Page 63, line Ifi, before America insert North. Page 6(1, under Birge, E. A., for 'M read '95. Page 73. under Koch, C. L., for XXV. read XXXV. Page 77, line 3, before Zoology insert 7* Ser.; line 3, for XVI. read XII. Page 78, line 13, for Heft II. read Heft 11. Page 79, for Villipoix, R. M. de, read ViUcpoix, R. M. de. Page 80, under Zacharias, O., for "85 read '86,- and in entry for '^7, for Taf. r. read Taf. XV. Page 81. line 5, for '95 read "94. gigc/s, 29, 37. gyrmus, 47, 48. helijolaiKlicus, 29. hyaliiuLS, 29. ingens^ 37. insectus, 37,38, 39, 41. in.«ignis. 29, 63. lacustris, 29. leeuwenhoekii, 34. 35. leuckarti, 29, 31, 34, 36. 63. leuckarti., 33. lecis. 37. macrurus, 29. var. brevi.spinosus, 30, 39. 41,62,63.64. var. insectus, 31, 41, 62. 63. 64. Diaptonius, 62. Eucj'clops, 54, 65. Homocyclops, 29. 49, 64. Macrocyclops, 47, 64. Microcy clops, 64. Monocnlus quadricnniis v(iv.ulbi(his. 47. var. viridis. 37. Orthocy clops, 29, 51, 64. Paracyclops. 59. 65. r//v,.„v<. c/^/.- T n.hnratorv of Natural History. INDEX. (Svnonvms in Italics, i Canthocamptus. 62. Clacocera, G2. Copepoda, 27. Cyclopida3. European, 29. list of North American species, (33. Cyclops, 31. G3. allinis, 29. 65. agilis, 29. albidiis, 29, 47, 62, 63, 64. ameriranus. 37. 38, 42. annulatus, 33, 3.5. ater, 29, 49. 62, 64. bicolor. 29, 62. 63. 64. bicuspidatus. 29, 30. 44, 53, 62, 63, 64. bisetosus, 29. brevispinosus. 39, 41. capilliferus. 51. crassicaudis, 29. dyl)0W8kii, 29, 62, 63. edax, 33. 62, 63. ttrabriatus, 29. var. poppei, 63, 65. fluviatilis, 57. forbesi. 44, 45. fuscu-s, 29, 64. general distribution of. in North America. 62. gigas, 29, 37. gyrinus, 47, 48. hel.^olandicus, 29. hyalinua, 29. ingens, 37. insectus, 37, 38, 39, 41. insignis. 29, 63. lacustris, 29. leeuwenhoekii. 34. 35. leuckarti, 29, 31, 34, 36. 63. leuckarti, 33. lev is. 37. raacrurus, 29. Cyclops — continued, magnoctavus , 57. minnilus. 44, 45. modestus, 29, 62, 63, 64. nanus, 29. navus, 44, 45. oithonoides. 29. 63. parous, 38, 41, 42. pentagonus, 57. jicramatus, 59. 60. phaleratus, 29. 30, 59, 63. 65. prasinus, 57, 63, 65. pulchellus, 29, 44. robiistus, 29. scutifer, 29. serratus., 44, 45. serrulatus, 29, 30, 54, 62, 63, 65. var. elegans. 54. var. montauus, 54, 55. signatus, 29. var. tenuicornis, 47. strenuus, 29. thoiiiasi. 44, 45. unidiigulatus, 39, 41. varicans, 29, 63, 64. vernalis, 29, 64. viridis, 29, 30, 37, 41,42, 43, 48. 62, 63, 64. var. brevispinosus, 30, 39, 41,62,63,64. var. insectus, 31, 41, 62, 63, 64. Diaptomus, 62. Eucyclops, 54, 65. Homocyclops, 29. 49, 64. Macrocyclops, 47, 64. Microcyclops, 64. Monoculus quadricornis vav.albi'his, 47. var. viridis. 37. Orthocy clops, 29, 51, 64. Paracyclops, 59, 65. Plate YIII. Plate IX. Plate X. Plate XI. Plate XII. Plate XIII. Plate XIV Plate XY. Plate XVL Plate XYII. Plate XYIII. Plate XIX. Plate XX. i BULLETIN DEC 30 1897 OF THE '10 [llinois ^tate Laboratory OK NATURAL HISTORY, Urbana. Illinois VOLUME V ARTICLE III.— THE NORTH AMERICAN SPECIES OF DIAPTOMUS. By FREDERICK WILLIAM SCHACHT, B. S. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, URBANA, ILLINOIS, ""1897. State Laboratory of Natural History. LABORATORY STAFF. Professor Stephen Alkred Fohhes, Ph. D., Director of State Laboratory and State Entomologist. Charles Arthur Hart, Systematic Entomologist and Curator of Collections. Frank Smith, A. M., Assistant Zoologist. Charles Atwood Kofoid, Ph. D., Zoologist, and Svperi7itendent of Biological Station. Charles Christopher Adams, B. S., Entomo logica I Ass istant. Ralph Waldo Braucher, B. S.. Entomological Assistant. Mary Jane Snyder. Secretary. Henry Clinton Forbes, Business Agent and Librarian. Lydia Moore Hart, Artist. DEC SO 1897 Article III. — The Xortli American Species of Diaptomus. By Frederick William Schacht. INTRODUCTION. The first published reference to that group of genera of Entomostraca now known under the family name of Centro- liagidce is contained in 0. F. Muller's "Entomostraca seu Insecta testacea quae in aquis Daniae et Norvegiae reperit," etc., published at Frankfort-on-the-Main in 1785, in which paper certain copepod species now included under the genus Dinntomus were tventpd nndAv tlip. D-p.npvn.l nn.mp nf r'nrlnna The foUoiving paper was prepared in, the course of undergraduate study in the Zoological Departmeni of the University of Illinois, and was accepted hy the Faculty of the University June 7, 1S97, as a thesis for the degree of Bachelor of Science in Zoology. aescrioea mat its recognition is apparently impossible. ISiiice the publication of Underwood's " List of the described Species of Fresh-water Crustacea from America North of Mexico" ('86) the number of recognized North American species of Diaptomus has increased from five to twenty-three. The literature of the genus previous to 1889 was widely scattered and the synonymy greatly complicated, but the comprehensive and careful "Eevision" published in that year by de Guerne and Eichard ('89b) has had the effect greatly to facilitate its study. The most important recent European contributions to a knowledge of the Cenfropar/idce State Laboratory of Natural History. LABORATORY STAFF. Professor Stei'IUCx Alfred Forhes, Ph. D., Director of State Laboratory and State Entomologist. Charles Arthur Hart, Systematic Entomoloyist and Curator of Collections. Mary Jane Snyder. Secretary, Henry Clinton Forbes, Business Agent and Librarian. Lydia Moore Hart, Artist: DEC 30 1897 Article III. — The Xorth American Species of Diaptomns. By Frederick William Schacht. INTRODUCTION. The first published reference to that group of genera of Entomostraca now known under the family name of Centro- pxKjiihe is contained in 0. F. Miiller's "Entomostraca sen Insecta testacea quae in aquis Daniae et Norvegiae reperit," etc., published at Frankfort-on-the-Main in 1785, in which paper certain copepod species now included under the genus Diaptomus were treated under the general name of Cyclops. Species of Diaptomus were later described by Jurine ('20) under Moiiociilits, but the genus Diaptomus was first estab- lished by Westwood ('36). Various names have since been applied more or less closely to the generic group : CijcJopsina, Milne-Edwards ('38); Glaucea, Koch ('38); and Ci/eJops, Nicolet ('48). The first American species of Diaptomus recognizably described was l>. saiif/itineus Forbes ('76). Later Dr. Forbes ( '82a) described three additional species of this genus (sicllis, Uptopus, and stagnalis), and two new genera of Centropagiche {Episehura and Osphritniieuvi), with a single species of each. Prof. C. L. Herrick's publications on the group began in 1877 and those of Marsh in 1891. A single species (D. kentuchyensis) named by Chambers in 1881 is so imperfectly described that its recognition is apparently impossible. Since the publication of Underwood's " List of the described Species of Fresh- water Crustacea from 2\.merica North of Mexico" ('86) the number of recognized North American species of Diaptomus has increased from five to twenty-three. The literature of the genus previous to 1889 was widely scattered and the synonymy greatly complicated, but the comprehensive and careful "Pievision" published in that year by de Guerne and Eichard ('89b) has had the effect greatly to facilitate its study. The most important recent European contributions to a knowledge of the Centropayidce 98 Illinois State Laho)'((torii of Xatiirol Histor/i. have been made by Claus, Schmeil, Poppe, Imbof, Zacbarias, and others, in Germany ; by Brady, hi England ; by Nord- qvist, in Finland; by Sars, in Norway; and by Lilljeborg in Sweden, the latter especially having described a number of American species. Perhaps the finest work yet published on Coiie2)oda in general is Giesbrecht's monograph on the " Pelagischen Copepoden des Golfs von Neapel" ('92), the general classification of which is followed in the present article. It has been my purpose in preparing this paper to do for the students of American Ccntropagkke a service similar to that which de Guerne and Pdchard have rendered to students of this group as distributed throughout the world. I am under especial obligation to my instructor. Prof. S. A. Forbes, to whose encouragement and aid any value this paper may have is to be largely attributed. I am indebted also for specimens or other favors to Dr. "Wilhelm Lilljeborg, of Upsala, Sweden; to Dr. Otto Schmeil, of Magdeburg, Ger- many; to Herr S. A. Poppe, of Yegesack, Germany; to Prof. C. Dwight Marsh, of Papon College, Wisconsin ; to Prof. L. S. Pioss, of Drake University, Des Moines, Iowa ; to Mr. Adolph Hempel, now of the Museu Paulista, Sao Paulo, Bra- zil ; to Prof. Frank Smith, of the University of Illinois ; to Mr. C. E. Phillips, of Millington, 111. ; and to my friend and fellow student, Mr. E. B. Forbes. I have also to call attention to the fact that most of the figures accompanying this paper were drawn by the Artist of the State Laboratory, Miss Lydia M. Hart. From Dr. Lilljeborg I received specimens of TJuiptomus sign'icauda, D. vi'uiufiis, I), tryhomx, I), eiseni, D. fraucisca- 11 IIS, Ejnsckiiva ncradeiisis, and E. uordenskwldi. Prof. Pioss and Mr. Hempel kindly loaned me their personal collections, the former thus furnishing me I), siciloides, D. piscina, and Z). daripcs sj). nov., and the latter, 7). viississipjjiensis and D. alhuqucrquensis. Prof. Marsh has sent me slides or entire specimens of D. ashlandi, D. mississipj^iensis, and 7). reigliardi. To Dr. Schmeil I owe thanks for several kind letters, for the European species D. gracilis, 1). graciloides, D. castor, D. XartJi Antcricdii SpcrifH of Uiaptomus. 99 saUnns, D. ai'rtilcioi, aiul 7>. zacJuinasi, and for specimens of Hetcrocope and Tcmorella, — all of which, however, arrived too late to be of service to me in connection with this paper. From Herr Poppe I received the following species : D. tijrrelli, D. fjthher, D. iiicoiKjruois, I), deitersi, D. drieschi, D. zacha- riasi, and Limnocalanus sinensis. The material at my command Avas nearly complete, includ- ing all but two of the known North American forms {D. novamexicanus and T>. hirfiei), and the collection of the liter- ature of the group to which I have had access is probably as ample as that to be found in any library in this country. In compiling the bibliographical list appended to this paper, Schmeil's monograph on the Centropagidic ('96) was taken as a basis and was especially helpful, while a great deal w^as also gained from the works of de Guerne and Richard. By far the greater part of the collections examined are the property of the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. They represent localities distributed over the entire continent, from Massachusetts in the East to Oregon in the West, as far south as Florida and as far north as Canada, and including the following states : Massachusetts, Florida, Mississippi, Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, Iowa, Minnesota, Michigan, Wisconsin, Oregon, Washington, Montana, Wyoming, California, Idaho, and Nevada. In addition to the above I have examined specimens from Manitoba, Newfoundland, and Greenland. The localities represented by these collections vary widely in character, ranging from temporary pools on the Illinois prairies to Lakes Michigan and Superior; from the warm lakes of the Florida swamps to the cold mountain lakes of the Eockies ; and from the small head-water streams of the Kaskaskia to the sluggish Illinois and the mighty Mississippi. The collections were made at all seasons of the year and at nearly all times of the day and night. Although no very complete data for any single locality are at hand, it is found that in ordinary years the spring and early summer are the most favorable seasons for collecting in our latitudes. Individuals are found, however, at all times ; and in some cases the normal habitat is a lake whose waters are 100 lUinois State Lahoratori/ of Xatnral History. but little above the freezing point, or even, as in tlie case of D. minutus, water lioAving from the foot of a glacier. Although this would seem to indicate that these crustaceans are quite hardy, I have repeatedly found that in jars contaming living specimens of Cyclops, Dlaj^tomiis, and Osphr antic urn, those of Diaptonivs were the first to succumb to unfavorable con- ditions. The genus Diaptomus is the most cosmopolitan of its family, species having been reported from North and South America, Europe, Asia, Africa, and Australia. No species, however, is known to be common to the mainlands of Europe and of America. This fact is the more remarkable since almost the direct opposite is true of the companion genus, Cyclops, only one or two species of which are, so far as known, peculiar to this continent. Even D. minutus, which is found in Oregon, Illinois, Wisconsin, Minnesota, Michigan, New- foundland, Greenland, and Iceland, has not as yet been found in northern Europe or even in Great Britain, although the expanse of salt Avater between Iceland and Scotland or be- tween Iceland and Scandiilavia is but little greater than that between Greenland and the mainland of North America. But few species of this genus have been described from tropical regions, most of them having thus far been found in the north temperate zone ; a fact to be attributed doubtless in large measure to the greater attention paid to zoological studies in these northern latitudes. In this paper the plan followed by de Guerne and Eichard in their " Revision " has been adopted, separate keys being made for males and for females. When females are so nearly alike as in I), sicilis, siciloides, pallidus, and ashlancli, it is som.ewhat difficult to find distinguishing characters, and differences not usually taken into account must be seized upon. The males are much more easily separated, since they offer a larger number of peculiarities. Giesbrecht and Schmeil have paid considerable attention to the armature of the entire male prehensile antenna instead of regarding only that of the last three segments, and in one or two cases I have done the same. In this connection a fact became Xort]i AincriciUi Species of D'uijitoiuiis. 101 evident which if found to be generally true ■will necessitate a slight modiiication of the description of the family Centro- pa[l'ida\ I refer to the presence of a sense-club on the first segment of the right male antenna. In his monograph Giesbrecht in his description ('92, p. 85), says, "Yordere antennen ahnlich wie bei den Calaniden gebaut." On another page (42) we find this statement: "The normal number of processes seems to be three for each segment, a proximal seta, a distal seta, and a sensory structure 'jest Ji eta sk], but this triad is never complete on all segments, the sense-club on the first segment being always wanting and the sense-club and proximal seta nearly always absent on the twentieth to the twenty-fourth." In Duipiomus staepudls and D. clarlpes a sense-club is present on the first segment. The statement that the inner rami of the fifth pair of feet are "rudimentary, one-segmented, or lacking" will not hold in many species. Taking only those forms among non-American species which were described in de Guerne and Eichard ('89b), we find the following with ^?co-segmented inner rami : D. mirus, D. lohcitKs, D. theell, and D. (jlae'ud'is, Lilljeborg ; D. cceruleus Fischer, D. r/ibher Poppe, and 1>. icierzejskii Eichard; and at least three American species have the inner ramus two- segmented- — -D. stagnedis Forbes distinctly, and D. eiscni Lillj. and I), alhuqnerqucnsls Herrick indistinctly so. It is expected that the keys here printed wdll be used in con- nection with the descriptions and figures, since the species vary within certain limits, and no hard and fast description can be given which will cover the peculiarities of every indi- vidual of a species. Local varietal dift'erences or slight vari- ations in proportion may make a key useless, and in all cases the totality of characters should be considered. A glance at the figures will indeed often be fcnind more helpful than any verbal description. Following the usual plan of specific descriptions, the first paragraph, referring to the general appearance of the body, thorax, abdomen, and furca and their relative proportions, applies ahvays to the female unless especially stated other- wise. 102 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. SYNOPSIS OF THE RELATIONSHIPS OF THE GENERA Osj)Jl,ranticnm, Limnoealaiius, Diaptomus, and Episcliwra, OF THE family Ceiitropagida. (Adapted and coiiii>iled from Giesbreoht ("92), and from manuscript of Prof. S. A. Forbes.) 1 (19). Division of body into cephalotliorax and abdomen between the thoracic segment bearing the fifth pair of feet and the segment bearing the genital apertures. In the male the fifth pair of feet assists in copulation. Abdomen with five segments ; without appendages. Genital organs of the male unsymmetrical. Pulsating dorsal vessel generally present. Female deposits eggs singly or carries them with her in single sac until emer- gence of the nauplii. Suborder I. GYMNOPLEA. 2 (3). Anterior antenniis of male symmetrical or nearly so, and more richly provided with sense-clubs [(estJietasks] than those of the female. Fifth pair of feet of female either normal, or degenerate to complete disappear- ance. Secondary sexual distinctions of male not con- fined to peculiarities in the structure of the body, the antenna", the fifth pair of feet, and the segmentation of the abdomen, but usually jDresent in the cephalic appendages and sometimes also in the sw^imming feet. Marine. Tribe I. Amphaskandria. 3 (2). Anterior antennae of male unsymmetrical. Fifth pair of feet in the female either normal or degenerated, but never absent. Secondary sexual characters of male generally confined to peculiarities in the structure of the body, the antennae, and the fifth pair of feet. Marine and fresh- water. Tribe II. Heterarthrandria. 4 (18). Eostrum present. Fourth and fifth thoracic seg- ments confluent. 5 {(')). Abdomen of female 1-3-segmented. Antenna lG-24- jointed ; last two segments always confluent. In the male the fifth pair of feet rarely with a rudimentary inner ramus. AnteniuTB with segments 19-21 and sometimes 22-25 confluent. Marine. Family Pontellid.e. Xo)-t]i Americdu Si)ecics of l>iaptomus. 103 6 (5). Abdomen of female 3- or 4-segmentecl ; sometimes uiisymmetrical, Antennfe never with less than 24 seg- ments. In the male, segments 19-!21 and generally 22 and 23 are confluent. Abdomen 5-jointed ; either right or left antenna prehensile. The fifth pair of feet are grasping organs and both always present, but with inner ramus normal, or degenerate to complete dis- appearance. Family Centkopagid.^i:. 7 (8). Thorax G-jointed. All the feet of female with 3-seg- mented rami. Abdomen 3- jointed. Antenna) 25- jointed, segments 24 and 25 confluent. Eight male antenna prehensile. Outer ramus of left fifth foot 2-jointed ; of right, subchelate. Subfamily Cextropagina. 8 (7). Thorax 5-jointed. Fourth and fifth thoracic seg- ments confluent. 9 (16,17.) Abdomen of female 3-jointed, sometimes unsym- metrical. Antennae 23- or 24-jointed. Four anterior pairs of feet generally with 3 -segmented rami. Fifth pair of feet degenerate, with inner ramus wanting or small and 1-jointed, outer ramus 1-3 jointed. Pre- hensile antenna generally the right; segments 19-21 and 22 and 23 confluent. Subfamily Temorina. 10 (11). Furca with but three large terminal setie to each ramus. Abdomen of male unsymmetrical, provided with lateral prehensile apparatus. Fifth pair of legs of female uniramose, 3-jointed, not terminating with a long spine. Genus Episclmra. 11 (10). Furca with four large terminal setae to each ramus. 12 (13). Inner ramus of first pair of legs 2-jointed; of the following three pairs 3-jointed. Fifth pair of legs in both male and female biramose, inner ramus rudi- mentary. Genus Diaptonius. 13 (12). Both inner and outer rami of the first four pairs of legs 3-jointed. Fifth pair of legs in both sexes biramose, those of the female diflering from the other legs only by the presence of a strong inner hook on the second 104 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. joint of the outer ramus; those of the male with the inner ramus 3-jointed and provided with phimose hairs, as in the other legs. 14 (15). Fifth pair of legs of female with the inner hairs of the last joint of the outer ramus transformed into short thick spines. In the male, outer ramus of left leg of fifth pair with two joints ; outer ramus of right leg with three. Genus Osphranticum. 15 (14). Fifth pair of legs of female with the inner hairs of the last joint of the outer ramus long and plumose. Fifth pair of legs of male with both outer rami 2- jointed. Genus LiuDiocalanus. 16 (9, 17). Abdomen of female 4- jointed, symmetrical. Antennte 25-jointed, articles 24 and 25 not confluent. Four anterior pairs of feet generally with 3-segmented rami, the fifth with 3-segmented outer and 2- or 3-seg- mented inner ramus. Male antenna3 with segments 19-21 and 21-23 confluent. Fifth pair of feet sub- chelate ; the right with 2-, the left with 3-segmented rami. Subfamily Leuckartiina. 17 (9,10). Abdomen 3- or 4-jointed, not always symmetrical. Four anterior pairs of feet with 3-jointed rami. Gen- erally the left antenna of the male geniculate. Articles 19-21, 22 and 23 (or 22-25), and 1 and 2 confluent. Fifth pair of legs with 3-segmented outer and 1-3- segmented inner rami. Chela undeveloped or want- ing. Subfamily Heteeoch.etina. 18 (4). liostrum wanting. Fourth and fifth thoracic segments of female not confluent. Abdomen 3-segmented. Male genital opening on the left ; right antenna prehensile, segments 17 and 18, and 19 and 20 confluent. Inner rami of fifth pair of feet Avanting ; outer ramus of left foot 4-segmented, of right foot 3-segmented. Marine. Family Candacid^. 19 (1). Division of body into anterior and posterior parts in front of the last (fifth) thoracic segment. This bears, almost without exception, a more or less rudimentary North American Species of Diaptomus. 105 pair of feet, whicli in the male never assist in copulation ; on the contrary, the male attaches the spermatophores directly to the vulva of the female without the help of appendages. Genital organs of the male generally paired, the openings always sym- metrical. Pulsating dorsal vessel almost always absent. The female carries the eggs with her, gener- ally cemented into one or two egg sacs, until emer- gence of the young. Suborder II. PODOPLEA. Diaptomus Westwood. Cyclops, O. F. Miiller, 17s5. 3Ionoculus, Jurine, "20. Diaptormis, Westwood, "30. Cyclopsina, Milne-Edwards, "38. Glaucea. Koch, '35-41 Cyclops, Xicolet, '4S-'49. " Cephalothorax always with seven segments, of which the anterior two, indistinctly confluent, form the head. The last thoracic segment in the female rather large, posteriorly deeply emarginate in the middle, and often produced laterally on both sides into a biangulate lamina. Abdomen short, nar- rower than the thorax ; in female of four segments (caudal rami included), of which the first is dilated anteriorly and very often armed with a lateral spine on each side ; in male composed of six obvious segments of about equal width. Caudal rami with five uniarticulate plumose sette and with another much smaller, more slender seta within. The front provided with two minute tentaculiform appendages. The first pair of antennae composed of 25 segments, increasing slightly in length toward the tip. The geniculate articulation between the 18th and 19th segments of the right male antenna ; the six preceding segments swollen, the five following sometimes confluent into two articles. The outer ramus of the second pair of antennae 7-jointed, longer than the inner ramus, the last article longest of all and armed with very long apical setae; setae of preceding articles short and 106 lU'niois State LahoraturiJ of Xatural History. subequal. Second pair of maxillas short and thick ; third pair elongate, directed forward, 7 -segmented, and provided with short setse. The eight anterior swimming feet biramose, the inner ramus of the first pair 2-, of the following pairs 3-seg- mented. The last pair of feet different from the rest, 5-seg- mented, the second segment armed within with a small appendage or rudiment of an inner ramus ; in the female short, equal, the last segment very short and rudimentary, the penultimate always produced into a strong hook curved inward ; in the male the right foot subchelate, the last article formed into a very long movable hook. Eye single."* Tlie following remarks on the genus are from de Guerne and Eichard's "Revision " : "The genus Diapioinus, known at a very early date, was for a long time confounded with Cyclops. Clearly distin- guished much later, it contained for a very long time only a few recognized species, and even these were insufficiently defined. Since their study has been taken up with more attention other forms have been distinguished, nnd the num- ber of species now exceeds forty, and further explorations will undoubtedly bring others to light.! " If we attempt to arrange characters in the order of their importance from a systematic point of view, we must say in the beginning that they are furnished almost wholly by the males. Except in certain cases the isolated females are difficult to determine. They are, however, rarely met with alone, and collections commonly contain, whatever the season, both sexes together. " Among the characters furnished by the male, the greatest importance must be assigned to those of the fifth pair of feet. The length of the inner rami, composed of one or two seg- ments, varies considerably {minutus to castor). As for the outer rami, the last article of the left foot should be examined first. It sometimes has the form of a kind of forceps and sometimes terminates in a sort of cushion bearing two short obtuse spines, which perhaps represent the branches of the *Translated from the Latin dingnosis of de Guerne and Richard's "Revision des Calanldesd'Eau Douce, ' i>i>- 9 and 10. iSixty-flvenow, many hiivins been added since the publieation of the 'Jtevision." Norfli American Species of Diaptomus. 107 forceps. All the transitions between these two forms may be found in a series of specie^. Certain articles of the right ramus may also bear divers characteristic appendages. Finally, the terminal claw and the lateral spine of the last article often present by their form and their position enough peculiarities to greatly facilitate the determination. " The right antenna of the male also furnishes some good characters, among which ligure in the first rank the append- ages of the antepenultimate article, much varied as to form and size {D. hacillifer, icierzejskii, ca'rideiis). " Generally speaking, the fifth pair of feet of the females furnish the most important specific characters, although they do not have the same technical value as in the male. At the same time various peculiarities drawn from the conformation of the last cephalothoracic and of the first abdominal seg- ments and from the length of the antenna?, aid greatly in the determination." KEY TO THE NOKTH AMEEICAN SPECIES OF DiciptomUS, BASED ON THE CHARACTERISTICS OF THE MALE. 1 (15). Antepenultimate article of right antenna without hook-like process at tip. 2 (3). Antepenultimate article of right antenna with narrow hyaline lamina. Second basal segment of right fifth foot armed at the inner margin with two hook-like proc- esses, and on the anterior surface at the apical margin, with a hook-like process extending beyond the middle of the first segment of the outer ramus. Inner ramus extending barely beyond the middle of the first segment of the outer ramus ; heavily spined at apex. Marginal spine below the middle of the segment, near the apical angle ; short, stout, much less than half as long as the segment. Terminal hook very stout, longer than preceding segment. Left leg ex- tending about to end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; second basal segment tuberculate on inner margin. Inner ramus very long, extending about to middle of last segment of outer ramus ; incurved, 108 lUiitois State Lahoratonj of Natural History. tuberculate, and armed at apex with short, blunt spmes. Last segment of outer ramus armed with a short blunt spine and a very long spinulose one. (iavvpes. 3 ('2). Antepenultimate article of right antenna without hyaline lamina. 4 (5,10). Inner ramus of right fifth foot not reaching end of first segment of outer ramus ; sharply pointed. First segment of outer ramus with hyaline lamina. Marginal spine below middle of segment ; less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the two pre- ceding segments. Left leg extending slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus reaching slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus, indistinctly 2-segmented, apex bluntly rounded. tyrrelli. 5 (4,10). Liner ramus of right fifth foot reaching end of first segment of outer ramus. G (7). Inner ramus of left fifth foot extending to base of second segment of outer ramus, or slightly beyond. Marginal spine below middle, near apical angle ; less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook at least as long as the two preceding segments. Left leg reach- ing about to middle of second segment of outer ramus of right leg. Last segment of outer ramus armed with forcipate structure ; inner digitiform process armed with cushion on inner margin. j>(//^/(/»s. 7 (G). Inner ramus of left fifth foot reaching to middle of second segment of outer ramus. 8 (9). Marginal spine of right leg above middle of segment, very stout, as long as or longer than segment. Term- inal hook almost as long as the two preceding segments and second basal segment taken together. Inner ramus as long as first segment of outer ramus. First seg- ment of outer ramus with broad hyaline lamina on inner margin. Left leg not quite reaching middle of second segment of outer ramus of right leg. h'lrgei. North American Species of IMaptomus. 109 9 (8). Marginal spine of right leg below middle of segment ; slender, less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the two preceding segments, a sharp angle dividing it approximately into halves. Inner ramus reaching end of first segment of outer ramus ; apex bluntly rounded. Left leg reaching beyond middle of last segment of outer ramus of right leg. Last seg- ment of outer ramus ending in a forcipate structure ; outer digitiform process stout, armed on inner margin near tip with cushion-like hairy process. reighardi. 10 (4, 5). Inner ramus of right fifth foot reaching well beyond end of first segment of outer ramus. 11 (12). Inner ramus of left fifth foot long, extending beyond middle of second segment of outer ramus ; leg itself (disregarding terminal spines) not reaching end of first segment of outer ramus. Marginal spine of right leg inserted below middle of segment, near apical angle ; much less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook shorter than the preceding segment. p;.st'?ytois State Lahoratory of Natural History. 15 (1). Antepenultimate article of right antenna with hook- like process at tip. 16 (27). Process on antepenultimate article as long as or longer than penultimate article. 17 (20). Process curved. 18 (19). Inner ramus of right leg alone 2-segmente(l, extend- ing almost to middle of second segment of outer ramus. Marginal spine below middle, near distal angle, smooth, about half as long as segment. Terminal hook fully as long as the two preceding segments and the second basal segment taken together. Second basal segment not dilated. Left leg reaching about to middle of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus barely reaching middle of last segment of outer ramus. fraitclscanus. 19 (18). Inner ramus of both legs 2-segmented. Marginal spine below middle, near apical angle ; hairy, almost as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the two preceding segments, but not as long as those and the second basal segment taken together. Second basal segment dilated into rugose lamella. Inner ramus of right leg extending about to middle of second segment of outer ramus. Left leg extending about to middle of second segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus extending beyond middle of last segment of outer ramus. ciseni. 20 (17). Process straight. 21 (22). Process sharply pointed. Marginal spine below mid- dle, about half as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the two preceding segments. Inner ramus of right leg extending a little beyond end of first seg- ment of outer ramus. Left leg reaching slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; last segment of outer ramus with hairy cushion on inner margin ; inner ramus extending almost to middle of last segment of outer ramus. sJiosJione. 22 (21). Process blunt or swollen at tip. Xortli Aiiwrican Specks of Diaptomus. Ill 23 (24). Inner ramus of right leg rudimentary, barely sur- passing end of segment from which it arises. Mar- ginal spine about at middle of segment, very small. Terminal hook shorter than the very long preceding segment. Left leg extending slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg; inner ramus very narrow, extending about to middle of second seg- ment of outer ramus. minutus. 24 (23). Inner ramus of right leg not rudimentary, longer than first segment of outer ramus. 25 (26). Marginal spine well above middle of segment, about half as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the two preceding segments. Inner ramus of right leg very narrow. Left leg reaching slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus extend- ing to middle of last segment of outer ramus, ashlandi. 26 (25). Marginal spine below middle of segment, less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook very slender, longer than the two preceding segments. First seg- ment of outer ramus with hyaline lamina at inner distal angle. Left leg extending about to middle of second segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus ex- tending barely to middle of second segment of outer ramus. sicills. 27 (16). Process shorter than penultimate article. 28 (33). Process the continuation of a hyaline lamina. 29 (30). Process extending at least to middle of penultimate article. Hyaline lamina extending but little more than the distal half of the segment. Marginal spine below middle of segment ; shorter than segment. Terminal hook longer than the two preceding segments but not as long as those and the second basal segment together. Inner ramus of right leg extending slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus. Left leg extending slightly beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus extending about to middle of last segment of outer ramus. novnmexicanus. 112 lUinois State Laboratori/ of Xafiiral History. SO (29). Process exteiiclmg very slightly beyond end of article of which it is a part. Hyaline lamina extending entire length of segment. 31 (32). Inner ramus of right leg reaching well beyond mid- dle of the very long first segment of the outer ramus. Marginal spine below middle, near apical angle ; less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook shorter than the preceding segment. Left leg (excluding ter- minal spines) reaching about to middle of first segment of outer ramus of right leg. Last segment of outer ramus terminated by two spines ; inner ramus reach- ing well beyond end of first segment of outer ramus, but not to middle of last segment. Icptopus. 82 (81). Liner ramus of right leg rudimentary (the suture being rarely visible), barely reaching the end of the very short first segment of the outer ramus. Marginal spine below middle of segment, less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook stout, longer than the pre- ceding segment. Second basal segment very broad, armed at outer distal angle with a process about as large as the inner "ramus." Left leg very short, barely reaching end of second basal segment of right leg; inner ramus very short, extending barely beyond end of first segment of outer ramus. sanguineus, 33 (28). Process not the continuation of a hyaline lamina. 34 (41). Process straight. 35 (36). Process serrate on outer margin, extending beyond middle of penultimate article. Inner ramus of right leg very broad and short, extending but slightly be- yond middle of first segment of outer ramus. Margi- nal spine above middle of segment, less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the very long preceding segment. Left leg very short, extend- ing barely beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg. First basal segment of both legs with long slender spine on posterior surface. trijhomi. 36 (35). Process not serrate. North American Sj^ecies of Diaptomus. 113 37 (38). Inner ramus of right leg rudimentary, extending but slightly beyond the end of the segment to which it is attached. Marginal spine below middle of segment, slender, fully half as long as the very long segment. Terminal hook shorter than the preceding segment. Left leg (disregarding terminal spines) not reaching end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg. Last seg- ment with two spines : one long, slender, outcurved ; the other short, stout. Inner ramus extending almost to end of last segment of outer ramus. lintoni. 38 (37). Inner ramus of right leg not rudimentary, extend- ing to middle of first segment of outer ramus or beyond. 39 (40), Inner ramus of right leg extending about to middle of first segment of outer ramus. Marginal spine below middle, about half as long as segment. Terminal hook longer than the preceding segment. Second basal segment with hyaline lamina on inner margin. Left leg (disregarding terminal spines) reaching about to middle of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; mner ramus reaching end of first segment of outer ramus, corrugate on inner margin. stafpuilis. 40 (39). Inner ramus of right leg extending beyond the end of the very short first segment of outer ramus. Marginal spine below middle of segment, stout, longer than segment. Terminal hook very long, stout, longer than remainder of leg. Left leg extending beyond end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg; second segment with ciliate lamina on inner margin ; inner ramus reaching end of first segment of outer ramus. albtiquerqaotsis. 41 (34). Process curved. 42 (43). Process small, not reaching middle of penultimate article. Marginal spine below middle ; rather stout, less than a third the length of segment. Terminal book noticeably longer than the two preceding segments. First segment of outer ramus with hyaline lamina on inner margin, the inner apical angle of which is not 114 Illinois State Lahoratory of Natural History. produced. Inner ramus of right leg not reaching end of first segment of outer ramus ; apex bluntly rounded. Left leg reaching about to end of first segment of outer ramus of right leg ; inner ramus reaching middle of last segment of outer ramus, margins sinuously curved. siciloides. 43 (42). Process stout, reaching to middle of penultimate article or beyond. Marginal spine below middle of seg- ment, less than half as long as segment. Terminal hook not much if any longer than the two preceding seg- ments. First segment of outer ramus with hyaline lamina on inner margin, which is much produced at the outer apical angle. Inner ramus of right leg conical, not reaching end of first segment of outer ramus. Left leg reaching to tip of first segment of outer ramus of right leg. Inner ramus extending beyond middle of last segment of outer ramus ; margins parallel ; armed on outer margin near base with small hemispherical process. siynicauda. KEY TO THE NORTH AMERICAN SPECIES OF DiaptomilS, BASED ON THE CHARACTERISTICS OF THE FEMALE. 1 (18). Inner ramus of fifth pair of legs noticeably shorter than first segment of outer ramus. 2 (10). Outer ramus distinctly or indistinctly S-segmentrd. 3 (4,7). Inner ramus distinctly 2-segmeiited, the first seg- ment very short and subquadrate ; barely reaching end- of first segment of outer ramus ; armed with two straight hairy spines, almost as long as the ramus. Second segment of outer ramus with small spine near base of third segment; spinose on both margins. Third seg- ment armed with two stout spines, the inner hairy, about twice as long as the outer, whicli is about as long as the spine on the preceding segment. Last thoracic segment strongly produced. First abdominal segment longer than remainder of abdomen, greatly dilated, armed on each side with large spine ; second segment shorter than third. Furcal rami about as Xortli. Am erica }i. Species of Diaptomus. 115 long as wide, hairy within. Antenniie extending barely to base of abdomen. stacjnalis. 4 (3,7). Inner ramus indistinctly 2-segmented. 5 (6). Terminal spines of inner ramus about half as long as ramus. Second segment of outer ramus armed with a single spine. Two spines on the third segment ; suture between this and preceding segment indistinct. Inner ramus extending beyond middle of first segment of outer ramus ; armed at apex with two long spines. Third segment of outer ramus armed with two very large stout spines, the inner hairy, less than twice as long as the outer. First abdominal segment longer than remainder of abdomen ; armed anteriorly with large lateral process. Antenna? reaching process on first abdominal segment. eiseni. 6 (5). Terminal spines of inner ramus not nearly half as long as ramus. Second segment of outer ramus Avith a spine. Inner ramus extending slightly beyond middle of first segment of outer ramus. Third segment of outer ramus hairy and about twice as long as the inner, which is smooth. First abdominal segment longer than re- mainder of abdomen, armed laterally with strong spines. Antennse extending beyond tips of f ureal setcTe. albiiqiterqiicnsis. 7 (3,4), Inner ramus 1-segmented, 8 (9). Terminal spines of inner ramus smooth, more than half as long as ramus, which is rounded at apex and hairy. Second segment of outer ramus straight, as long as or longer than preceding segment ; armed at base of third segment with short spine, shorter than either of the two on third segment. Inner spine of third segment hairy, about twice as long as the outer, which is smooth. Both spines considerably longer than the segment itself. Last thoracic segment armed on each side Avith tAvo small spines. First abdominal segment shorter than remainder of abdomen, dilated, armed Avith large spines ; second segment very short. 116 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. Third segment and furcal rami about equal. Antennne reaching base of abdomen. sliosJione. 9 (8). Terminal spines of inner ramus smooth, not nearly- half as long as ramus, which is hairy at apex and on inner margin. Second segment of outer ramus curved, barely as long as preceding segment; armed at base of third segment with an inconspicuous spine. Third segment armed with two short spines but slightly longer than the segment. Last thoracic segment armed with small spines. First abdominal segment with a sharp spine ; longer than remainder of abdomen. Antennae reaching furcal rami. novamexicanus. 10 (2). Outer ramus 2-segmented. 11 (12). Inner ramus almost rudimentary, not nearly reach- ing the middle of first segment of outer ramus. Second segment of outer ramus considerably shorter than first ; third segment represented by two spines, the inner about twice as long as the outer. Last thoracic seg- ment armed on each side with small spine. First abdominal segment as long as remainder of abdomen ; second segment very short ; third, longer than furcal rami. Antenn;ie reaching slightly beyond furca. minutus, 12 (11). Inner ramus not rudimentary, reaching beyond the middle of first segment of outer ramus. 13 (14). Second segment of outer ramus armed with a short spine ; denticulate within and without. Third segment represented by two subequal spines. Inner ramus not nearly reaching end of first segment of outer ramus ; hairy on inner margin ; terminal spines fully half as long as segment. First abdominal segment dilated, about equal in length to remainder of abdomen ; sec- ond segment and furcal rami each longer than third segment. pisciiue. 14 (13). Second segment of outer ramus not armed with a spine. North American Species of Diaptotnus. 117 14 (15). Inner ramus armed with very short subequal spines and hairy at apex. Second segment of outer ramus curved, denticulate on inner margin ; third segment represented by two spines, the inner the longer and about half as long as the second segment. Last tho- racic segment produced, armed with two large spines on each side ; penultimate thoracic segment produced into dorsal hump. First abdominal segment as long as remainder of abdomen, armed with large spine on each side; second segment shorter than the third, which is about equal to the furcal rami. Antennae ^extending about to base of abdomen. siuujnineus. 15 (14). Inner ramus armed with long conspicuous spines. 16 (17). Second segment of outer ramus straight, about as long as the first, armed with a spine at base of third segment. Inner spine of tliird segment slightly the longer. Inner ramus hairy at apex ; terminal sjDines straight, hairy,- about a third as long as the ramus. Last thoracic segment armed on each side with a spine. First abdominal segment short, unarmed. Antennae extending to end of thorax. leptopus. 17 (16). Second segment of outer ramus straight, slightly shorter than first ; third segment represented by two subequal spines. Inner ramus barely as long as first segment of outer ramus, hairy at apex, armed with two rather long spines. Antennte extending to end of furca. hirgei, 18 (1). Inner ramus clearly reaching end t)f first segment of outer ramus or beyond. 19 (22). Outer ramus 3-segmented. 20 (21). Third segment of outer ramus small but distinct ; in- ner of the two spines slightly the longer. Second seg- ment curved, shorter than first ; denticulate on inner margin ; armed with small spine at base of third seg- ment. Terminal spines of inner ramus very long, almost as Icmg as the ramus. Last thoracic segment armed with two minute spines. First abdominal 118 IUij)()is State Laboratory of Natural Historii. segment as long as remainder of abdomen, dilated, armed with small spines ; second segment very short ; third segment longer than furcal rami. Antennae extending to furca. franclscaniis. 21 (20). Third segment of outer ramus very indistinct or aborted ; armed with two short subequal spines. Second segment of outer ramus about as long as the first, hairy within and without. Inner ramus reaching about to end of first segment of outer ramus, hairy, armed with two long hairy subequal spines. First abdominal seg- ment shorter than remainder of abdomen, dilated but unarmed ; second segment shorter than the third, which is longer than the furca. Antennae not reaching end of furca. jiiscince. 22 (19). Outer ramus 2-segmented. 23 (2G). Second segment of outer ramus armed with a spine in addition to the two spines representing the third segment. 24 (25). Terminal spines of inner ramus hairy, nearly half as long as ramus, which reaches to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus. Second segment of outer ramus shorter than the first, slightly curved, denticulate within ; third segment represented by two spines, the inner hairy, about half as long as the outer, which is smooth. First abdominal segment longer than re- mamder of abdomen ; second segment shorter than third ; the third longer than furca. Antennae reaching tip of furcal rami. lintoii. 25 (24). Terminal spines of inner ramus hairy, not nearly half as long as ramus, which is hairy at the apex. Third segment of outer ramus represented by two spines, the inner about twice as long as the outer. Second seg- ment armed with a small spine. Last thoracic seg- ment greatly produced laterodorsally ; armed on each side with two small spines. First abdominal segment about as long as remainder of abdomen and armed with two large spinose processes ; second segment XortJi American Sjoccies of Diaptomus. 119 shorter than third and about equal to furcal rami. Antemiffi extending beyond base of furca but not be- yond the tip. tyrrelli. . 26 (23). Second segment of outer ramus not armed with an additional spine. 27 (32). Second segment of outer ramus longer than preced- ing segment. 28 (29). Outer of the two spines representing the third seg- ment of outer ramus very small and inconspicuous ; second segment shorter than the first, denticulate. Inner ramus reaching slightly beyond end of first seg- ment of outer ramus ; hairy on outer margin and at apex ; armed with two rather long subequal spines. Last thoracic segment produced laterodorsally, armed with two spines on each side. First abdominal seg- ment slightly shorter than remainder of abdomen, dilated, armed on each side mtli a large spine ; second segment shorter than third ; third segment and furca about equal. Antennse reaching beyond tip of furca. cldcipes. 29 (28). Outer spine rather conspicuous. 30 (31). Terminal spines of inner ramus smooth. Inner ramus reaching end of first segment of outer ramus ; apex hairy ; spines small. Second segment of outer ramus about as long as the first, denticulate, point acute ; third segment represented by two spines. First abdominal segment as long as remainder of abdomen, dilated, armed with small spines ; second segment shorter than third ; third about equal to the furca. Antennae extending to tips of furcal setae. orefionensis. 31 (30). Terminal spines of inner ramus hairy, subequal. Second segment of outer ramus about equal to the first; third segment represented by two subequal spines. Last thoracic segment armed on each side with two small spines ; the penultimate thoracic segment with a small hump. Fii-st abdominal segment slightly 120 lUiiiois State Lahordtuyy of Natural Histori/. shorter than remainder of abdomen ; second segment shorter than third; third segment and furca about equal. Antennae extending beyond end of furca but not to tips of f ureal setffi. su/nicanda. 32 (27). Second segment of outer ramus shorter than preced- ing segment. 33 (34). Last thoracic segment with a large dorsal process, armed with two spines, one minute. First abdominal segment longer than remainder of abdomen, with short mucronate process anteriorly, and posteriorly with large triangular process. Second segment of outer ramus straight, hairy ; third segment represented by two spines, the inner about twice as long as the outer. Inner ramus noticeably shorter than first segment of outer ramus, with two long subequal spines at the apex. Antenme barely reaching furca. trijhomi. 34 (38). Last thoracic segment without dorsal process. 35 (3G). First abdominal segment longer than remainder of abdomen, dilated, armed with small spine on each side ; second segment very short ; third segment shorter than furcal rami. Second segment of outer ramus shorter than the first ; third segment represented by two spines of which the inner is the longer. Inner ramus extending beyond end of first segment of outer ramus, hairy, armed with two smooth subequal spines. An- tennae extending just beyond furca. asldahidi. 36 (35). First abdominal segment about equal to remainder of abdomen. 37 (38). Second abdominal segment very much shorter than the third. Last two thoracic segments confluent ; the last one armed on each side with two small spines. First abdominal segment with large spine on each side ; third segment longer than the second or the furca. Second segment of outer ramus shorter than the first ; third segment represented by two small spines, the inner about twice as long as the outer. Inner ramus North American Species of Diaptomus. 121 hairy, armed with two small spines. Antennse reach- ing slightly beyond end of f ureal rami. siciloides. 38 (37). Second abdominal segment slightly shorter or at least not longer than the third. 39 (42). Furca longer than third abdominal segment. 40 (41). Fu'st abdominal segment nearly as long as remain- der of abdomen ; dilated laterally, armed with one small spine on each side. Second segment of outer ramus shorter than the first ; third segment represented by two spines, the inner the longer and pointed obliquely outward. Inner ramus reaching end of first segment of outer ramus ; apex hairy and armed with two spines. Antennie reaching end of furcal setae. re'Kjhardi. 41 (40). First abdominal segment as long as remainder of abdomen ; dilated laterally but unarmed. Last tho- racic segment produced, armed with one small spine on each side. Head partially divided by a suture. Third segment of outer ramus represented by two spines, the inner smooth, about twice as long as the outer, which is delicately hairy. Inner ramus hairy, armed with two long subequal spines. Antennae reaching beyond end of furca. pallidus. 42 (39). Furca about equal to third abdominal segment. 43 (44). First abdominal segment about as long as remainder of abdomen and armed with small spines, equal on the two sides. First thoracic segment armed with small spine on each side. Second segment of outer ramus shorter than the first ; third segment represented by two spines, the inner about twice as long as the outer. Inner ramus longer than first segment of outer ramus ; hairy, armed with two spines, the inner twice as long as the outer; margins sinuously curved. Antennae reaching beyond tip of furca. sicills. 4:4: (43). First segment of abdomen as long as remainder of abdomen; armed with two large lateral spines, the 122 Illinois State Lahoratorij of Natural History. right somewhat the longer. First two thoracic seg- ments equal, together about half as long as entire thorax ; last segment armed with two small spines. Second segment of outer ramus very broad, especially at the base. Inner ramus hairy on outer margin and at tip, which is armed with two rather long slender spines. Antennae reaching beyond furca. m ississippiensis. Diaptomus sicilis Forbes. (PI. XXL, Fig. 1-3.) Diaptomus sicilis, Forbes, '82a, p. 645, PL VIII., Fig. 9, 20. Diaptomus pallidas var. sicilis, Herrick, '81, p. 142, PI. Q, Fig. 18. Diaptomus sicilis, de Guerne et Richard, '89b, p. 23, Fig. 13, 14; P]. II., Fig. 13. Diaptomus sicilis. Forbes, '90, p. 702, PI. I.. Fig. 6. Diaptomus sicilis, Marsh, '93, p. 197, PI. III., Fig. 8, 10. Body slender, widest in front of the middle ; suture between head and thorax distinct. Last two thoracic segments con- fluent ; the last one produced laterodorsally and armed on each side with one or two small spines ; (in the male unarmed.) Abdomen long and narrow, especially in the male, in which the first segment is the longest and slightly the broadest. In the female (PI. XXL, Fig. 3) this segment is fully as long as the remainder of the abdomen, dilated, and armed on each side with a spine ; last three segments subequal. Furcal rami fully twice as long as broad and hairy within. Antennae 25-segmented, reaching well beyond the tips of the furcal rami. Male geniculate antenna moderately swollen beyond the twelfth segment; first two segments without special armature ; antepenultimate segment armed with nar- row spine-like process with swollen apex, reaching to the middle of the penultimate segment; segments 19, 20, and 21 confluent, as are also 22 and 23. Fifth pair of legs in the male (PI. XXL, Fig. 1) rather long and slender. First basal segment of the right foot with a large tubercle on the posterior surface near the outer mar- gin, bearing a minute blunt spine. Second basal segment subquadrate, about one and a half times as long as broad. At the beginning of the distal third of its outer margin, is a No7-th American Sjiccies of Dinjjfomus. 123 small cuticular projection bearing a delicate hair. First seg- ment of the outer ramus subquadrate, slightly longer than broad, the inner distal angle provided with a small semi- elliptical hyaline lamina arising from the anterior surface of the leg; second segment slightly arcuate, the two margins parallel, fully twice as long as wide. Marginal spine long and slender, slightly curved, about half as long as the seg- ment, and inserted at the beginning of the distal third. Ter- minal hook long, slender, and regularly curved ; very minutely denticulate on the inner margin. Inner ramus of the right leg either one- or two-segmented, extending beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; minutely hairy at the tip. There is nothing distinctive about the basal segments of the left leg. The first segment of the outer ramus is about one and a half times as long as broad ; the inner distal angle gradually rounded and minutely hairy. The second segment is narrow, twice as long as broad ; armed at the tip with two digitiform processes and sometimes with a much smaller third process between the two. This segment appears very broad and fleshy because of a cushion-like process with rugose surface which extends beyond the inner margin of the seg- ment for half its length. The other, upper, half is occupied by a minutely hairy semicircular cushion. Inner ramus of the left foot either one- or two-segmented, ex- tending to the middle of the last segment of the outer ramus ; hairy at the tip. Basal segments of the fifth pair of feet in the female (PI. XXI., Fig. 2) not characteristic. The usual delicate hair is found on the outer margin of the second basal segment. First segment of outer ramus long and narrow, more than twice as long as broad. Second segment almost- as long as the first, narrow, tapering to a fine point, delicately spinose at the inner margin. Third segment wanting; represented by two spines, both sharp and slender, the inner about twice as long as the outer. Inner ramus of fifth leg of female one-segmented, project- ing slightly beyond the end of the first segment of the outer 124 Illinois State Lahoratorij of Natural History. ramus, the proximal four fifths of uniform width. At the beginning of the distal fifth of the inner margin is a rather sharp angle, from which projects a long, slender, slightly curved spine, about one fifth the length of the ramus. Beyond this the ramus tapers to a blunt point, hairy at the apex. Besides the spine already mentioned there is a smaller one, only about half as long, having its point of insertion very near and slightly above the first. Length of female 1.23-1.28 mm ; of male 1.00-1.18 mm. D. sicilis closely resembles both D. ashlandi and D. pallidus, differing from the latter, however, in the presence of a hook on the right male antenna, and from both in the details of structure of the fifth pair of feet of the male. A very interesting variation was noticed in the inner rami of the fifth pair of feet of the male. In specimens taken from Lake Superior, at Marquette, Mich., the rami were sometimes both one-segmented, sometimes both were two-segmented, and at other times one ramus was two-segmented while the other was one-segmented. Herrick (Herrick and Turner, '95) states that all his specimens had one-segmented rami; also that the process on the right male antenna was shorter than described by Dr. Forbes. Although D. sicilis is not at all uncommon, it has occurred less frequently in the collections I have examined than have D. siciloides Lillj., D. ashlandi Marsh, or D. oref/onensis Lillj. Marsh ('93) records D. sicilis from the Great Lakes and from Green Lake, Wis., it being the common pelagic species in 1890 and 1891, while in 1892 not a single specimen was found there although the collections were made at the same time of year. The type was described (Forbes '82a) from Lake Michigan and had not then been found anywhere else. In 1890 Dr. Forbes found it in Lake Michigamme, in northern Michigan, as well as in Lake Michigan. His variety imperfectus is D. ashlandi Marsh. In the Yellowstone Park collections sicilis was found in considerable quantities, but as both D. sicilis and D. ashlandi were present, it would require a re-examination of the material to determine the distribution of the two species in that locality. North American Species of Diaptnmus. 125 Diaptomus piscinae Foebes. (PI. XXII., Fig. 1-4.) Diaplomus piscina', Forbes, '93, p. 253. PI. XLI., Fig. 22. Diaptomus piscina^ Ilerrick and Turner, '95, p. 74, PI. V., Fig. 13. "A species of medium size and symmetrical proportions, antennie reaching to the tip of the abdomen, cephalothorax broadest about the middle, with four distinct sutures, the posterior lateral angles not produced but armed with two distal spines. "The right antenna of the male is without appendage to the antepenultimate joint, and the fifth pair of legs in the same sex has the inner ramus well developed on both the right and left sides. The usual length is 1.7-5 millimeters, the transverse diameter 0.45 millimeters ; the abdomen with furca is a little more than one third the length of the cephalo- thorax. " The fifth pair of legs of the female [PI. XXII., Fig. 2, 4] is without especially marked characters, except that the inner ramus, which reaches to the tip of the principal segment of the outer, is provided with two long, stout, equal setsB more than half as long as the ramus itself. The third joint of the outer ramus is aborted and bears two short, stout spines, and the joint preceding bears a slender spine outside the base of the last. The terminal claw of this joint is simple and nearly straight, viewed in the usual position. "In the male the fifth pair of legs [PI. XXII., Fig. 1] has a considerable resemblance to the corresponding append- ages of D. leptopus, from which, however, this species differs by its more slender form and by the absence of the antennal hook. The peduncle of the left leg is quadrate and equal in length to the basal segment of the outer ramus, but is nearly twice as wide. The sides of this latter segment are parallel, the inner terminal angle is broadly rounded and minutely ciliate, and to the outer terminal angle is attached the second segment of the ramus. This segment is a trifle shorter than the preceding and less than half as wide, and bears at its tip a stout, blunt, conical spine, whose length is equal to that of the diameter of the ramus, and within this a long flexible 126 lUinois State Laboratory of Natural Histori/. hair as long as the ramus itself. The inner ramus of this leg is very long, reaching beyond the middle of the terminal joint of the outer ramus. It is slightly concave towards this ramus and terminates with a broadly rounded or subtruncate, thickly ciliate end, forming an acute outer angle and an obtuse inner one. Seen at right angles to this view, the tip is simply obtusely pointed. " The right leg of the male is without remarkable distin- guishing characters. Basal joint of the outer ramus about two thirds as long as the peduncle and nearly as wide ; sec- ond joint slightly longer than the peduncle, equal to the first in width ; and the terminal claw sinuate or irregularly curved. The stout seta on the outer margin of the second segment of this ramus is borne at about a quarter the length of the seg- ment from the distal end, and is approximately half as long as the segment to which it is attached. The inner ramus is a little longer than the basal joint of the outer. It is not dilated or otherwise modified, but terminates bluntly, bearing at the tip a covering of long cilia. " The right antenna of the male is without notable dis- tinctive characters. The antepenultimate segment is as long as the two following taken together ; the fourth from the tip bears two long sword-like spines at its margin, both attached to its basal fourth ; the expanded segments are well armed with conical spines, straight and curved, but without hooks. " Small lakelet near Gardiner, Montana."* This is the only one of the four species described by Dr. Forbes ('93) which I have found in any other collections than the original ones. In collections loaned me by Prof. L. S. Eoss, of Drake University, Iowa, made by him at Portage Slough, Manitoba, Canada, in June, 1895, I found quite a number of specimens of this species, which, however, exhibit a number of peculiarities. The fifth pair of legs in the female are stouter and the inner ramus is relatively shorter than in the Montana specimens, the latter not reaching to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus as it does in the type. The spines on the inner ramus also have a more *Descriiitiou quoted from Forbes, '93 Xorth American Sj^ccies of Diaptomtis. 127 distinct and broader basal portion than tlie individuals from Yellowstone Park. Both the inner and outer margins of the second segment of the outer ramus are hairy in Dr. Forbes's specimens, but much more pronouncedly so in the specimens from Portage Slough. The fifth pair of feet of the male- are very similar to the corresponding appendages of D. davipes sp. nov. and D. leptopus Forbes. Dr. Forbes notes the differences between his species {pischue and leptopus), and from clavipes both may be distinguished at a glance by the inner rami and the other peculiarities mentioned in the description of that species. A characteristic of D. jnscince, and one which was neither figured nor described, is a fin-shaped process on the middle of the anterior surface of the second basal segment of the right fifth foot of the male. This is armed on the inner margin with a row of bead-like tubercles and is more distinct in the Portage Slough specimens. This process corresponds to a similar one in D. clavipes. The lower two thirds of the inner margin of this segment are hairy, and at the end of the proximal third is a small triangular projection. The terminal hook and the marginal spine of the outer ramus of tlie right male foot are both denticulate on the lower half of the inner margin. In the "Preliminary Pieport on the Aquatic Inverte])rate Fauna of the YeUowstone National Park, Wyoming, and of the Flathead Eegion of Montana" the inner ramus of the right fifth leg of the male (Fig. 22) by mistake was not figured. The description was correct but the figure did not correspond. The first and second segments of the outer ramus of the left fifth foot of the male are hairy on the inner margin. The length of the Portage Slough specimens is as follows : female, 2.11 mm; male, 2.06 mm. Diaptomus lintoni Forbes. (PI. XXVII., Fig. 1.) Dinplomus lintoni, Forbes. "93, p. 252, PI. XLII., Fig. 26-28. Diaptomtis lintoni, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 68, PL V., Fig. 12. " A large red species occurring commonly with 7). shoshone, but distinguishable from it at a glance by its different shape, 128 Illinois State Lahoratori/ of Natnr<(l Ilistorii. its longer antennae, its smaller size, and by characters derived from the right antenna and the fifth foot of the male. The thorax is symmetrically elliptical in shape, broadest at the middle. The posterior angles are not produced or bifid, but are each armed with a minute spine. The first segment of the abdomen of the female is not especially produced, but bears at its broadest part a minute spine on each side. The abdomen itself is very short, its length contained about tln-ee and one third times in that of the cephalothorax. The antenna of the female is long and slender, 25-jointed, reach- mg a little beyond the tip of the abdomen. " The fifth pair of legs in this sex is similar to those of D. shoshone, but much smaller. The inner ramus is not jointed. It is longer than the basal joint of the outer ramus, bears two stout plumose setae at its tip, somewhat shorter than the ramus itself, and has likewise at its inner tip a patch of small spines or fine hairs. The second segment of the outer ramus with its terminal claw is two thirds as long again as the pre- ceding segment, the breadth of the latter two thirds its length. The third joint is indicated by a single long stout seta and one or two smaller ones. "In the male the geniculate antenna is relatively rather slender, its last two joints without special appendages, its penultimate with a slender transparent apical process, reach- ing about to the middle of the succeeding segment, acute at tip, but neither serrate nor emarginate. Fifth pair of legs in the male [PI. XXVII., Fig. 1] usually without inter- nal ramus to the right leg, but this ramus sometimes repre- sented by a small rudiment. The limb is usually slender and its terminal claw short. The basal segment of the outer ramus is nearly as long as the adjacent segment of the pedicel, and the slender second segment of this ramus is fully as long. Long lateral spine borne near the tip of this segment. The terminal claw is about two thirds as long as the segment, is somewhat abruptly angulated near its base and slightly recurved at the tip. The inner ramus of the left leg is very stout and long, reaching almost to the tip of the outer ramus, is slightly curved outwards and has the apex NortJi American Sj^ecics of Diaptomus. 129 minutely hairy. The basal segment of the outer ramus is thick, two thirds as broad as long, somewhat inllated within, where it extends downward and beyond the articulation with the second segment as a rounded expansion covered with ex- tremely fine hairs. Second segment of this ramus longer than first, but only half as wide, bearing at its tip, within, a rather small, obliquely projecting cushion covered with cilia, and with two stout terminal spines, one short, blunt, straight, and smooth, the other curved and plumose, its length about half that of the segment to which it is attached. "The total length of this species is about 2.5 millimeters, excluding caudal setas ; depth, 0.42 millimeters. "This species is closely related to 7>. Htagnalu, Forbes, from which it differs conspicuously by its smaller size, more symmetrical cephalothorax, without prominent or bifid angles, and longer and more slender antenna, with longer and more slender appendage to the antepenultimate segment. "In the fifth legs of the female this species differs from statjiiaUs especially with respect to the inner ramus, which is larger and longer than in the other, lacks the characteristic segmentation of star/ualis, and bears at its tip shorter and broader sette. In the male the terminal claw of the outer ramus of the right fifth leg is much more slender than in stagnalis, and the inner ramus is much less developed. The left leg of this pair is different in a number of details, espe- cially in the length and strength of the inner ramus and the length and dissimilarity of the setae at the end of the outer. " Common in lakes and pools of Yellowstone Park."* This species is one of the three American forms in which the inner ramus is rudimentary or wanting, the other two being D. sanguineus Forbes and D. minutns Lilljeborg. It has not been recorded from any localities outside of those in which it was originally found. * Description quoted from Forbes, '93. 130 lUuiois State Lahoratory of Natural History. Diaptomus leptopus Foebes. Cyclops longicornis (?), Herrick, '77, p. 238, Fig. 1. Diaptomus fe?i^t. franclscanus Lilljeborg. Diaptomus kcn- tuckyensis Chambers ('81) is also quite possibly D. Iep)t02nis, although the description is very vague and the figures are inaccurate. North American Species of Diaptomus, 133 Diaptomus sanguineus Fokbes. (Pis, XXIII., XXIY., and XXV.) Diaptomus sanguineus, Forbes, '76, pp. In, 10, 23, Fig. 24, 28-30. Diaptomus sanguineus, Forbes, '82a, p. 647, PI. VIII., Fig. 1-7, 13. Diaptomus a7-nwUus(?), Herrick, '82, p. 223, Fig. 1, a,b. Diaptomus armatus{'i), Herrick, '84, p. 139. Diaptomus sanguineus, Herrick, '84, p. 138, PI. Q, Fig. 12. Diapttomus minnetoiika, Herrick, "84, p. 138, PI. Q, Fig. 8-10. Diaptomus sanguineus, de Giienie et Eichard, '89b, p. 20, Fig. 9-11 ; PI. IV., Fig. 24. Diaptomus sanguineus, Marsh, '93, p. 195, PI. III., Fig. 1-3. A rather large species, one fourth to one third as wide as long. The cephalothorax widens gradually to the third seg- ment (being broadest at the suture between that segment and the fourth), then narrows less gradually to the abdomen. In the male the thorax is less uniform in breadth than in the female. The last cephalothoracic segment is greatly pro- duced on each side laterodorsally and bears a large spine, slightly swollen at the base, varying in length from that of the segment to one fourth its length. On the same segment and midway between the outer spine and the abdomen is another broader and shorter spine. Both of these spines are slightly curved. In the female (PI. XXIV., Fig. 3) they are generally quite noticeably larger than in the male. On the first abdominal segment is still another spine, slightly outcurved and pointing outward, about as large as the sec- ond of the spines mentioned above. In the female the penultimate cephalothoracic segment bears a dorsal hump at its anterior margin (PL XXIV., Fig. 5, 6). This is wanting in the male. The abdomen is produced dorsally and ven- trally at the anterior part, making it look like a keel (PI. XXIV., Fig. 1, 2), the keel being niost pronounced on the ventral side. The egg-mass is large and elliptical, with the major axis transverse to the body. Antennae 2 5 -segmented, the seventeenth or eighteenth seg- ment reaching about to the base of the abdomen. The right male antenna is thickly swollen beyond the geniculate joint. The last two segments have no special armature, but the antepenultimate one (PI. XXIII., Fig. H-S) is armed at the 134 lUlnois State Laboratory of Natural History. inner distal angle with a short thick recurved hook with smooth edges, extending hut little heyond the joint. This is merely the continuation of the hyaline lamina at the side of the segment. Second hasal segment of the right fifth leg of the male (PI. XXIII. , Fig. 1-5), seen from behind, irregularly trape- zoidal in form, very broad distally, and about twice as long as its narrowest part is wide. On the outer distal angle of this segment is another projection, equal to or greater in length than the inner ramus. This also shows great varia- tion, and is either rounded or acute or even acuminate at the apex. First and second segments of outer ramus sub- quadrate, the second about as wide as the first and about two and a half times as long. About a third the length of the second segment from its base is a considerable contraction, the width here being about half the width of the broadest part. Slightly l)elow the middle, on the outer margin, is a spine, minutely serrate at the inner edge. This is generally long and straight, about half the length of the segment, but varies, and is sometimes shorter, thicker, curved, and less than one third the length of the segment (PI. XXIV., Fig. 4 ; PL XXY., Fig. 3-5). Terminal hook rather long and slender, slightly and sometimes sinuously curved, about one and a fourth times the length of the preceding segment. The inner margin is serrate, beginning about the middle of the hook and con- tinuing to the tip. Inner ramus of the right fifth foot wanting, a peculiarity rarely found among the American species of Diaptomus, but approached most closely by 1). luitoiii Forbes and D. minutus Lilljeborg, in which the ramus is very small, almost rudi- mentary. The ramus is represented by an immovable spine, minutely spinose at the tip. This is greatly diverse in shape and sometimes gives indications of a joint (PL XXIII., Fig. 2), as if a case of ankylosis. Left fifth foot of the male biramose ; second basal segment quadrate, with a short thick spine just above the outer distal angle. Second segment of outer ramus irregularly subquad- rate, about two thirds as wide as long, provided at the inner Xortli Americcui Species of Diaptoinus. 135 margin with a cnsliion-like protuberance densely covered with minute hairs. This segment is produced into two spines, forming a forcipate structure. The inner spine is slightly shorter than the main part of the segment, thick, incurved, and movable, and armed on its outer margin and on the distal third of the inner one with minute hairs. The outer spine is immovable, ending in a blunt point, and its curve is rather more pronounced than that of the inner one. Inner ramus of left fifth foot one-segmented, straight, and armed with minute hairs at the apex. It is about three times as long as broad and reaches beyond the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus. First basal segment of the fifth foot of the female (PI. XXV., Fig. 1, '2^ subquadrate, slightly longer than broad, bearing a short thick spine near the outer distal angle. The distal segment is also subquadrate and bears the usual delicate hair. Outer ramus two- jointed, the first segment oblong, about twice as long as wide ; second segment in the form of a thick incurved hook, with a broad, quadrate basal portion. The hook is about three times as long as its greatest breadth, the distal fourth of the inner edge armed with a variable number of teeth (8-15). Third segment wanting, represented by two spines ; the outer short, thick, about one third the length of the segment ; the inner rather longer and more slender, sin- uously curved, and about half as long as the second segment. Inner ramus of fifth foot of female straight, one-segmented, about four times as long as broad ; armed at the tip with two smooth spines of almost equal length and but slightly curved. The tip of the ramus is delicately hairy. Length of female 1.4-2.12 mm; of male 1.-2. mm. Breadth of female .4-.43 mm ; of male .3-.33 mm. The synonymy of this species is almost as complicated as that of D. leptopus. First described by Dr. Forbes ('76), it was next described under two different names {D. sanguinetis and I), minnetonka) by Herrick ('84). I am also led to believe very strongly that Herrick's D. armatus is nothing but a variant of D. sanguineus. The descriptions and figures (Herrick, '82, p. 228, Fig. 1, a and h) seem to me to be 13(5 Illinois State Lahoratory of Natural Historf/. ■without specific value. The following, taken from Herrick and Turner '95a, p. 72, is his most complete description. "It appears to be allied to sanguineus. The antennse are said to be shorter than the body, the caudal stylets narrow, the right male antenna has a hook upon its antepenultimate joint and is strongly geniculate. But the one feature which may determine the species is the existence of a tooth or spur near the base of the claw of the right fifth foot of the male." In collections from Phelps Lake, Havana, 111., made May 18, 1894, occurred a single male specimen of a variant of D. sanguineus which might easily be described as a new species if the spine at the base of the terminal hook were taken as the one specific characteristic to which all others must be subDrdinated. This spine is straight and minutely dentate on both margins. In all other respects, except a slight dif- ference in the length of the terminal hook, the specimen is a normal D. sanguineus. The fifth pair of legs is shown in PI. XXV., Fig. 5. The occurrence of this specimen, taken in connection with the loose descriptions of armatus, has led me to believe in the identity of Herrick's species and this variant. In regard to D. minnetonka, Marsh ('93) points out that it is probably but a variety of Z). sanguineus. In his "Synopsis of the Entomostraca of Minnesota" Herrick says : "We are inclined to agree with Marsh that this form is but one of the many variations of />. sanguineus" ; but he nevertheless retains minnetonka as a species name instead of making it a synonym of sanguineus. Diaptonius sanguineus occurs in early spring in standing water in connection with D. stagiialis Forbes, from which it may be distinguished at a glance by the difference in size, D. stagnalis being about twice as large as D. sanguineus. The latter is generally a deep red, but D. stagnalis is often blue, with abdomen and antennae a brilliant red. The theory of Herrick (Herrick and Turner, '95) in regard to the transition of forms, "beginning with D. stagnalis and passing through several varieties to D. sanguineus later in the season," will not hold owing to the fact that sexually mature specimens of l)oth species have been found in the same pools at the same time. XortJi American Species of Diaptonuis. 137 The collection from which the variant mentioned above was taken, made in May, 1894, consisted almost entirely of D. sanguineus. Collections from the same waters made in July, 1896, did not contain a single individual of this species, but D. siciloides Lilljeborg and D. pallidus Herrick, were present in immense numbers. VARIATION IN D. SANGUINEUS FOEBES. Plates XXIII. , XXIY., and XXY. were prepared before the thesis work proper was undertaken and exhibit the results of a study in variation. From these figures it will at once be evident that D. sanguineus is an unusually variable species, and without the intermediate forms the extremes might almost be regarded as distinct. The specimens examined were all from the collections of the Biological Station at Havana, so that the variations are probably not so great as they would be if Avidely separated localities were represented. Eq^ecial attention was given to variations of specific char- acters, and most particularly to the relative proportions. The second basal segment of the right leg of the male, which is usually very broad, in fact one of the most charac- teristic features of the male, is shown in PI. XXIII. , Fig. 2, to be sometimes of very ordinary width, the other extreme being shown in PL XXIV., Fig. 4. The relative position and length of the projection on the outer distal angle of this segment also vary a great deal, the extremes noted being shown in PL XXIII., Fig. 1 and 2. The marginal spine of the outer ramus of the right fifth leg, the position, relative length, and characters of which are of specific value in most species, lacks such value almost entirely in D. sanguineus. The extreme variation is shown in PL XXIV., Fig. 4, and PL XXV., Fig. 3. The inner ramus of the right fifth leg, though always very short, varies in length from that shown in PL XXIV., Fig. 4, to that in PL XXIII., Fig. 2, on the latter of which is also shown a rather clearly marked suture which is usually wanting. The variation in the size of the males is indicated by the drawings of the fifth pair of legs. (See PL XXV., Fig. 3-5, and PL XXIV., Fig. 4.) 138 lUinois State Laboratory of Natural History. The antepenultimate article of the prehensile antenna (PL XXIII., Fig. 6-8) is not so variable, but still quite a differ- ence may be noted in the width of the hyaline plate and in the relative lengths of the segments. In the female the variation in size is even greater than in the male, the fifth legs being shown in PL XXV., Fig, 1, 2. The variation in the "hump" of the female is slight (PL XXIV., Fig. 5, G), as is also that of the first abdominal seg- ment (PL XXIV., Fig. 1, 2). While I have found no variation whatever in the color of D. sanguineus, all of the specimens I have seen alive being a bright uniform red, as were also those examined by Dr. Forbes (76), and by Gissler ('81), Gissler later ('81a) found individuals colored as follows : body and legs bluish, an- tennae and furca red, and abdomen yellow. Herrick says in the description of T>. ni'uinetonka (Herrick and Turner, '95), which is a synonym of I), sanguineus, "color dark." In the same work, in his description of D. sanguineus, he says ^'brilliantly colored." According to my observation color is of no certain specific value in Diaptomus, but it may be that there are definite seasonal variations — a subject which I have not investigated. Diaptomus stagnalis Fokbes. (PL XXVIII., Fig. 2.) Diaptomus stagnalis, Forbes. '82a,p.646,Pl.Vin.,Fig. S, 10-12, 14. Diaptomus giganteus, Herrick, '82, p. 222, PI. II., Fig. 3, 11 , 15. Diaptomus stagnalis, Herrick. "84, p. 130, PI. Q, Fig. 11. 13. Diaptomtts stagnalis, de Guerne et Richard, '89b, p. 23, PI. IV., Fig. 14. Head distinct from thorax; fifth and sixth thoracic seg- ments confluent. Lateral angles of last thoracic segment strongly produced backward, each angle bilobed, the outer lobe about twice as large as the inner ; (in the male this seg- ment is salient.) Abdomen peculiar in that there is a sudden narrowing at the beginning of the third segment. First abdominal segment armed with a large spine on each side (in the male unarmed) ; second and third segments of the abdomen subequal, about twice as wide as long. Furcal rami subquadrate, hairy within. Furcal setae rather short, NortJi American Species of Diaptomus. 139 densely plumose. There is but little difference in the length of the abdominal segments of the male. Antennae 25-segmented, reaching to the middle of the abdomen. Prehensile antenna of the male (PL XXVIII. , Fig. 2) tliickly swollen anterior to the twelfth article, with armature as follows : segments 1 and 5, long spine and sense-club; 2, three long spines and sense-club; 3, shoi-t seta; 4 and 6, long spine; 7, short seta and sense-club; 8 and 12, long spine and short spine; 9, long spine, short seta, and sense-club; 10, 11, 13, and 17, process and long spine; 14 and 16, long spine, short seta, and sense- club ; 15, process, two long spines, and sense-club ; 18, proc- ess ; 19, 20, and 21 (ankylosed, with the sutures indistinctly indicated), two processes, a stunted spine, and a long seta; 22 and 23 (ankylosed), a broad hook-like process not reach- ing the end of the penultimate segment, and four setpe ; 24, two setie; and 25, four setiE, a sense-hair, and a sense-club. Second basal segment of the right fifth foot of the male subquadrate, about twice as long as wide ; on the posterior surface a large smooth hyaline lamina occupying about a third of the inner margin near the middle, and near the outer distal angle a minute cuticular process bearing a delicate hair. First segment of the outer ramus almost three times as long as broad ; second segment about as long as the first and for about the proximal third nearly as wide, but beyond this considerably broader. Marginal spine near the outer distal angle ; straight, very strong and thick, little less than half as long as the segment. Terminal hook rather short and very stout, irregularly curved, heavily and closely den- ticulate at the distal half of the inner margin. Inner ramus of the right fifth leg spatulate, not nearly reaching the middle of the first segment of the outer ramus ; apex rounded, armed with a few strong spines. Second basal segment of the left fifth foot armed at the outer margin, a short distance above the distal angle, with a short, thick, pointed spine. First segment of the outer ramus about three times as long as wide, armed at the distal third of the inner margin with a few strong hairs. Second segment 140 Illinois State Lahoratorij of Natural History. about half as long as the first, having on the inner margin two cushion-like processes (the upper, snialler one hairy, and the lower densely tuberculate), and being armed at the tip with two processes forming a forcipate structure, the outer broad, plowshare-shaped, the inner a long and narrow spine, hairy within. Inner ramus of left fifth foot one- segmented, of the same width throughout, with a broadly rounded tip ; inner margin rugose. Second basal segment of the fifth foot of the female with the usual delicate hair at the outer margin. First segment of outer ramus short and broad. Second segment large, about one and a half times as long as the first, armed on the middle third of the inner margin with seven or eight very large, strong, pointed spines, and on the outer margin and opposite the upper spines of the inner margin with three or four spines. Third segment distinct, armed with two spines, the outer one short, thick, sharp, smooth, the inner one about twice as long and armed with a few rather strong spinules. Just without these spines, on the second segment, is a shorter, smooth spine. Inner ramus of the fifth foot of the female distinctly two- segmented, the first segment subquadrate, the second as wide as the first and nearly twice as long, and armed at the tip with two thick heavy spines reaching to the end of the second segment of the outer ramus. These spines are armed with heavy spinules. Disregarding the spines, the ramus reaches just to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus. Length of female 4.0-4.5 mm. ; of male 3.5-4 mm. This Diaptomus is the largest of the American species and a very beautiful one. Dr. Forbes states in his original des- cription ('82a) that "all were red throughout." Specimens taken in April, 1897, from ponds south of Urbana, 111., when they were in the height of sexual activity, were colored as follows : thorax and anterior appendages (all but the first pair of antennie) blue ; first pair of antennae, fifth pair of legs (in the male), and abdomen red. In the female all the legs were blue. Nortli American Sjiccics of Dhiptoinns. 141 The pool from which they were taken was particularly rich in decaying vegetable material and received the drainage of a pasture in which cattle and horses were allowed to graze. The water literally swarmed with Volrox; and Diaptomus, Cyclops, and insect larv;e were very abundant. The food sup- ply was practically inexhaustible and the specimens taken were unusually large. Diaptomus shoshone Forbes. (PI. XXVI., Fig. 1-3.) Diaptomus shoshone. Forbes, "93, p. 251, PI. XLII., Fig. 23-25. Diaptomus shoshone. Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 01, PI. Y., Fig. 11. "A very large and robust species. Thorax broadest in front, across the maxilhie, tapering gradually, with little con- vexity, to the posterior third. In the female the angle of the last segment is bifid, Ijoth projecting points being minutely spinose at tip. The first segment of the abdomen (PI. XX YI., Fig. 1) is laterally expanded, the expansion of the left side with a minute spine at the apex, behind, that on the right produced at the same point into a small, prominent, rounded tubercle, 0.03 millimeter in length, about as broad as long, making this first segment somewhat unsymmetrical. This is not merely a modified cuticular appendage, l)ut is penetrated by the hypodermis. Egg-mass very large, obovate (narrowest forward). "Plight antenna of male robust, the last two joints without special appendages, antepenultimate with a very long inartic- ulate process at its outer apex, extending beyond the tip of the penultimate and to the middle of the last segment. The margins of this process are smooth, but it is broad and emarginate at the tip. " The fifth pair of legs iu the male resemble the correspond- ing appendages of Diaptomus star/iialis, but differ notably in detail. The left ramus of the right leg is borne at the inner terminal angle of the second joint; is longer than the joint following ; is armed at the apex Avith a few small acute spines ; and bears upon its outer margin, near the tip, a broad fas- cicle of delicate hairs. The basal joint of the outer ramus is two thirds the length of the second joint of the peduncle, 142 lUluoi-s State Lahorator// of Xatiiral Histori/. and without hairs or spines of any description. The second joint of this ramus is about equal in length to the second joint of the peduncle, and bears on its outer margin, close to the tip, the usual stout seta, which is two thirds as long as the joint to which it is attached. The terminal claw is not regularly curved, but is nearly straight for the basal three fourths. The left leg is biramose, the inner ramus straight, slejider, extending about to the middle of the second joint of the outer, and armed at its tip. The second joint of this ramus is as long as the first, if measured from the tip of the apical spine. This spine, seen from behind, is stout, conical, rather blunt, and has opposed to it within, projecting from the inner angle of the segment, a stout, curved seta, slightly plumose on its distal half. Between these, but more closely applied to the outer spine, is a hemispherical cushion-like elevation, set with small, short spinules. On the basal half of the inner margin of this terminal segment is also a much larger hemispherical cushion, but with longer and more slen- der hairs, while the terminal half of the inner margin of the segment preceding is also moderately inflated and covered with delicate hairs. "The antennae of the female are 25-jointed, as usual, and reach to the base of the abdomen. The legs of the fifth pair (PI. XXVI., Fig. 2) closely resemble those of stagnalis, but have the terminal setfe of the inner rami much less devel- oped. This ramus is a little shorter than the basal joint of the outer ramus, and of about half its diameter. It bears at its tip two stout setffi equaling the ramus itself in length, plu- mose under a high power, and has, in addition, at its inner tip and on the inner margin adjacent, a patch of delicate hairs and spines. The second joint of the outer ramus is as long as the first, if measured to the tip of its terminal claw. The latter is nearly straight, very slightly recurved. This joint bears a single spine at its outer distal angle, just within which is the rudiment of the third segment of the ramus, which bears two spines similar to the above, the inner of which is the longer, the outer itself being longer than the adjacent spine of the second joint. Adults of both sexes are blood-red throughout except the egg-sac of the female, which is purple. Xorth American Sj^ecics of Diaptomus. 143 "Dimensions of female: Length to tip of caudal setae, 3.1 millimeters; abdomen, with setae, 1.16 millimeters, with- out, 0.67 millimeters; thorax, 1.95 millimeters in length; depth, 0.725 millimeter; width, 1 millimeter. "Male averaging scarcely smaller, but somewhat differ- ently proportioned: Thorax, 1.85 millimeters in length; depth, 0.58 millimeter; width, 0.08 [1.08]* millimeter; abdomen, without setae, 0.745 millimeter; with setae, 1,35 millimeters in length. "Especially abundant in Shoshone Lake, but occurring in other lakes and even in pools of some size in Yellowstone Park."+ The drawings here given are in some cases the same as those in the original description with unimportant correc- tions or additions, but two new figures (PI. XXYL, Fig. 1, 3) have been added. I have not found this species in any collections except those from Yellowstone Park and the Flat- head region, in which it is rather abundant. A few points may be added to the original description. In the female the first basal segment of the fifth pair of legs bears a short sharj) spine on the outer margin a short dis- tance above the distal angle. Both spines of the rudiment- ary third segment of the outer ramus are distinctly spinose on the inner margin. The first abdominal segment is almost as long as the remainder of the abdomen ; the second segment very short, about half as long as the succeeding segment or the furca. Furcal rami about one and a half times as long as wide and hairy within. My observations differ from those of Prof. Forbes in that, as a rule, the abdomen of the female is not asymmetrical, the first segment bearing on each side a small tubercle armed with a minute spine. In the male the first abdominal segment is very slightly dilated laterally but unarmed, and about half as long as any one of the five suc- ceeding segments, which differ very little in length. . The furcal rami are fully twice as long as wide and hairy witliin. *The 0.08 in the original description is probably a typographical error, since the specimens measured by myself were about 1.08 millimeters in length. tDescription quoted from Forbes, '93. 144 Illinois State Lahuratorij of Natural History. Diaptomus pallidus Herrick. (PI. XXVII., Fig. 3.) Biaptomus pallidus, Herrick, "79, p. 91, PI. II. Diaptomus pallidus, Herrick, 'SSa, p. 383, PI. VII., Fig. 1-6. Diaptomus pallidus, Herrick, '84, p. 142, PI. Q, Fig. 17. Diaptomus pallidus,, de Guerne et Kichard, 'Sgb, p. 62, Fig. 34. Diaptomus pallidus, Marsli, '93, p. 196, PI. III., Fig. 6, 7. 9. Diaptomus pallidus, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 73, PI. IV, Fig. 1-6; PI. v.. Fig. 10; PI. XIII., Fig. 17. Of medium size, slender; ceplialothorax widest near the middle ; head partially divided hy a suture ; suture between head and thorax distinct. Fifth and sixth thoracic segments confluent; last thoracic segment produced laterodorsally, hearing a small spine on each side. First abdominal seg- ment unarmed but dilated laterally (not dilated in the male), about as long as the remainder of the abdomen ; second segment the shortest. Furcal rami hairy within. Antennas 25-segmented, reaching about to the tips of the furca or slightly beyond. Male prehensile antenna moder- ately swollen ; no special arn>ature on the last three seg- ments ; segments 19 and 20 ankylosed, armed with a process and a long seta; 21, 22, and 23 ankylosed, armed with two long setcTB ; 24, with two long setae; and 25 with four long setfe and a sense-club. Some of the antennal setae are very minutely and sparsely hairy. First basal segment of right fifth foot of male (PI. XXVII., Fig. 3) with large tubercle bearing a small spine on the pos- terior aspect ; second basal segment as usual, about equal in length to the first. First segment of the outer ramus sub- quadrate, about as long as wide ; second segment about as wide as the preceding and about one and a half times as long, bearing on the inner margin, at the end of the proxi- mal third, a small sharp-pointed cuticular projection. The outer margin of this segment is almost straight to the begin- ning of the distal third, where a sharp angle is made from which springs the marginal spine. This spine is sharp, slender, slightly curved, a little more than one third the length of the segment. Terminal hook slender, about one and a half times as long as the second segment ; not regularly North American Species of DicH'ioinus. 145 curved, but with a sharp angle at the beginning of the distal third ; miiuitely denticulate within. Inner ramus of right fifth foot one-segmented, slender, narrowing gradually from base to tip, extending but slightly beyond the proximal third of the second segment of the outer ramus ; hairy at the apex and very delicately denticulate on the outer margin. Basal segments of left fifth foot subquadrate, the second slightly longer than the first and both slightly longer than broad; second segment delicately tuberculate on the inner margin. First segment of outer ramus about half as wide and three fourths as long as the basal segment. Second seg- ment about as long as the first, and very similar to the cor- responding segment of D. sicilis Forbes, from which it differs, however, in its armature. This consists of a movable claw, blunt or slightly thickened at the tip, forming a forcipate structure with an inner cushion-like process. The claw usually lies close against this and is difficult to make out. It is hairy on both margins. Inner ramus of the left fifth foot one-segmented, hairy at the apex and delicately denticulate on the outer margin, extending to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus or slightly beyond it. Second basal segment of the fifth foot of the female with the usual hair at the outer distal angle. First segment of the outer ramus subquadrate, about twice as long as broad. Second segment about as long as the first, tapering to a blunt point ; inner margin denticulate. Third segment wanting, represented by two spines, the inner about twice as long as the outer and smooth, while the outer is delicately hairy. Inner ramus of fifth foot of female one-segmented, reach- ing the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; hairy at the apex and within, and armed at the tip with two long sub- equal delicately hairy spines. I have found specimens from the Illinois River at Havana with the inner ramus of the right fifth foot reaching barely beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus. The first basal segment of the left foot of the male is provided with 14G Illinois Stdtc Lahoratorij of Xatural Ilistoy/f. a hyaline lamina ending in a pointed spine-like projection; and the second basal segment is tuberculate at the inner margin, as is also the outer margin of its inner ramus. All of these differences are quite constant but not of sufficient importance to constitute even a variety. D. paUidus was found in immense numbers in connection with D. siciloides Lilljeborg during the entire time of my stay at the Biological Station at Havana — that is July and part of August, 1896. So far as I was able to ascertain, siciloides was slightly the more abundant, but the difference was not very evident. Herrick's original description of D. jmllidus ('79) was very indefinite, and the establishment of the species really dates from 1893, when Marsh figured and described it in a manner to make it recognizable by later students. De Guerne and Eicliard ('89b) place it among their "species insufficiently described." Diaptomus albuquerquensis Herrick. (PI. XXVII., Fig. 2, 4.) Diaptomus albuquerquensis, Herrick, '95, p. 45, Fig. 16-26. Diaptomus albuquerquensis , Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 07, PI. V^I., Fig. 1-3; Pi. VII., Fig. 1-11. A medium-sized species. Cephalothorax widest about the middle. Suture between head and thorax distinct. Last two thoracic segments, seen from above, indistinctly conflu- ent, the last one produced laterodorsally and armed on each side with two rather long spines ; in the male produced but but very slightly and armed with only one spine on each side. First abdominal segment in the female longer than the remainder of the abdomen, dilated laterally, and armed on each side with a single spine ; second and third segments subequal ; each shorter than the furcal rami, which are barely twice as long as wide and hairy within. First abdomi- nal segment in the male short, a little more than half as long as any one of the succeeding three segments ; dilated very slightly, and armed on each side with a spine ; fifth segment about as long as the first. Furcal rami barely twice as long as wide and hairy within. XortJi Aiiwricaii Sj)ccic.'i of Dluptumus. 147 Antenniie of the female 25-segmented, extending well be- yond the tips of the furcal setie ; somewhat shorter in the male, reaching about to the tips of the furcal setae. Right male antenna moderately swollen beyond the thirteenth seg- ment. Beyond the twelfth segment the antenna is armed as follows : 13, with large process ; 14, process, short seta, and very long seta; 15, very short stunted spine, short seta, and long seta; 16, a short and a long seta; 17, process, short seta, and long seta ; 18, large process ; 1 9 and 20 (completely ankylosed), short stunted spine and long seta; 20, 21, and 22 (also completely ankylosed), two setae, and a hooked process extending beyond the middle of the penultimate article; 24, two setse; and 25, four set^e. Left fifth leg of the male (PI. XXYIL, Fig. 4) short, not reaching to the end of the second segment of the outer ramus of the right leg. First and second basal segments subequal, the first armed at the middle of the outer margin with a rather long sharp spine ; the second slightly broader than the first, and provided a short distance above the outer distal angle with the usual delicate hair, and at the middle of the inner margin with a small hyaline plate. First segment of the outer ramus about twice as long as wide ; outer margin arcuate, inner margin convex and delicately hairy. Second segment racket-shaped, the broad basal half being almost circular ; hairy on the inner margin. The digitiform termi- nal half is blunt and delicately denticulate on the margin. From the anterior aspect projects a delicately hairy spine about as long as the digitiform process, but more acute and pointing inward. Inner ramus of left fifth leg short, one-segmented, barely reaching to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; margins slightly sinuous ; apex bluntly rounded, very deli- cately hairy, the hairs at the apical angles being somewhat stouter and spine-like. First basal segment of right fifth leg of male subquadrate, slightly longer than broad; armed at the outer distal angle with a stout, sharp spine pointing straight outward. Second basal segment subquadrate, about equal to the first, and 148 IlUnots State Lahoratorij of Ndtiiral Histonj. armed on the outer margin, a short distance above the apical angle, with a spine-like hair. First segment of outer ramus subquadrate, slightly narrower than the second basal seg- ment, and about as wide as long; second segment about as wide as the first and twice as long, provided at the end of the proximal third with a small bead-like tubercle. Mar- ginal spine very large and strong, longer than the segment itself, somewhat sinuously curved, and inserted near the distal angle. Terminal hook very long, as long as the remain- der of the right leg including the basal segments, but not twice as long as the marginal spine ; very slightly recurved at the tip and denticulate at the inner margin. Inner ramus of the right fifth leg one- segmented, very short, barely reaching the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; apex bluntly rounded and delicately hairy. First segment of outer ramus of fifth foot of female (PL XXVII., Fig. 2) subquadrate, about twice as long as wide. Second segment, or unguiform process, about as long as the first, subconical or but slightly curved, delicately denticulate on the inner margin. Third segment small but distinct, armed with two spines, the inner of which is more than twice as long as the outer, reaching about to the middle of the second segment. Inner ramus of fifth foot of female indistinctly two-seg- mented, short, reaching just beyond the end of the first seg- ment of the outer ramus ; apex bluntly triangular, armed with a few short hairs, the innermost of which is longer than the rest and spine-like. Length of female 1.'2 mm. ; of male 1.05 mm. The material in which the specimens described were found was loaned me by Mr. Adolpli Hempel, of Gotlia, Florida, and was collected by him in a series of Florida lakes from January to March, 1896. D. alhuqucnincnus is one of the few American species of Diaptomus in which the inner ramus of the fifth leg of the female is two-segmented. In some cases this ramus, instead of being bluntly triangular, is acute, and reaches only to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus. The first basal Nortli American Species of Diaptoiiitis. 149 segment is sometimes armed at the outer distal angle with a short, sharp spine. Herrick (Herriek and Turner, '95) states that he found the second segment of the left fifth leg of the male to be granular on the inner margin, and the marginal spine of the right leg denticulate on the inner margin and at the base. In both these respects my specimens differ from his, the second seg- ment of the left foot being hairy instead of granular, and the marginal spine of the right foot perfectly smooth. Her- rick's statement that "the first pair of antennse reach to the extremity of the furca or surpass them" leads me to think that they are longer in the Florida specimens than in his, since they clearly reach beyond the tips of the furcal sets in every individual which I have examined. In New Mexico Herrick found this species, in connection with T). noramexlcauus, in the water supply of the city of Albuquerque ; but in the Florida lakes it was found with Z). mississipjyiensis Marsh, the two forms being about equally abundant. They are very much alike in general appearance, but the males may be distinguished without dissection by the antepenultimate article of the right antenna, which is armed in D. albtiqiierquoisis while it is unarmed in I). mississip2)icn- sis. Herrick gives the length of the female as 1.4-1.6 mm., but the largest female from Florida was 1.2 mm,, while the nuile was only 1.05 mm. in length, the average being con- siderably smaller. Diaptomus novamexicanus Herrick. Uiaptomua 7ior(imexic(t7ms, Herrick, '95, p. 46, Fig. 27-29. Diaptomus novamexicanus, Herrick and Turner, '95. p. 70, PI. VI., Fig. 7-10. Among the smaller species of the genus, moderately robust. Cephalothorax widest somewhat in front of the middle. Last two thoracic segments distinct, the last armed on each side with a small, short spine. First abdominal segment very long, much exceeding the remainder of the abdomen, pro- vided on each side with a short, sharp spjne ; second seg- ment the shortest. Furcal rami equal in length to the 150 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural Histori/. preceding segment and about twice as long as wide; provided with short apical setfe. Antennae of the female 25-segmented, reaching to the base or the end of the fiirca. Antepenultimate article of the right male antenna armed with a lamina produced anteriorly into an unguiform process which is shorter than the penultimate article. Outer ramus of the fifth pair of feet in the female obviously three-segmented, Unguiform process of the second segment arcuate, finely denticulate within and at the end, armed on the outer margin near the base of the last segment with a small spine. Last segment small but distinct and armed with two short subequal spines. Inner ramus of fifth foot of female one-segmented, as long as the basal segment of the outer ramus ; apex ciliate and armed with two subequal spines. Left fifth leg of male reaching slightly beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus of the right foot. First basal segment armed on the outer margin with a short, sharp spine. Second segment of the outer ramus oblong-ovate, armed with two large spines ; inner margin delicately aculeate toward the apex, and bearing a ciliate lamina. Inner ramus of left fifth leg one-segmented, quite long, reaching beyond the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus ; hairy at the apex. First basal segment of right fifth leg of male armed on the outer margin with a rather long, sharp spine. First segment of the outer ramus subquadrate, slightly longer than broad ; second segment very long and narrow, more than twice as long as the preceding segment. Marginal spine slender, more than half as long as the segment itself, and inserted at about the beginning of the distal third. Terminal hook long and slightly curved. Inner ramus of right fifth leg one- segmented, rather long, reaching beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; apex acute, minutely ciliate. Length of female 1.1-1.2 mm. NorfJi Am('7'ic(in S2)eci('s of Diaptumiis. 151 The above description is compiled from Herrick's first paper on this species ('95) and from the figures and the English and Latin descriptions in his later paper (Herrick and Turner, '95). Both of these articles are published as original descriptions, although there was nine months' differ- ence in the time of their appearance. Diaptomus oregonensis Lilljeborg. (PI. XXIX., Fig. 1, 2.) Diaptomus oregonensis, de Giierne et Richard. '89b, p. 53. PI. II., Fig. 5; Pi. 111.. Fig. 8. Diaptomus 07-eijo7iensis, Marsli, '93, p. 200, PI. IV., Fig. 4, 5. Diaptomus oregonensis, Marsli, '9.5, p. 8, PI. VII.. Fig. 5. Diaptoimts oregonensis, Herrick and Turner, '95. p. 72, Pi. IV., Fig. 7-12; PI. IX., Fig. 3. A species of medium size. Cephalothorax widest about the middle. The last two thoracic segments confluent above, the last one, seen from above, slightly produced laterally, bluntly rounded but unarmed ; in the male armed with two very minute spines on each side. Fii'st abdominal segment as long as the rest of the abdomen.* Third segment and furcal rami subequal, the latter about one and a half times as long as broad and delicately hairy within. In the male the first abdominal segment is short and unarmed ; second and third segments and furcal rami about equal ; fourth segment the longest, about equal in length to the first two segments taken together. Furcal rami about as in the female. Antenna of the female '25 -segmented, extending beyond the tips of the furcal setfe. Prehensile antenna of the male but slightly swollen, the antepenultimate article entirely unarmed. First basal segment of fifth leg of female (PI. XXIX., Fig. 2) with the usual delicate hair on the outer margin. First segment of outer ramus about twice as long as wide, slightly arcuate, margins parallel ; second segment about as long as the first, moderately curved, terminating in an acute point, *This segment had a very peouliar appearanoe. Owins to the thicker anterior part, the setrnient seemed to "have a suture at about the middle, and this was so mis- leading that I doubted if tlie si)eclmens on the slides were really females until I could see the antennae, and not until I could get a side view was I at all ceitain that there was only one segment. 152 Illinois State Lahordtori/ of Xattiral Historij. very minutely hairy on the inner margin ; third segment wanting, represented by two short spines, the inner twice as long as the outer. Inner ramus of fifth leg of female one-segmented, extend- ing very slightly beyond the first segment of the outer ramus ; apex obtuse, hairy, armed on the inner margin and at the tip with two rather long subequal spines. First basal segment of right fifth leg of male (PI. XXIX., Fig. 1) with a small tubercle on the outer margin; second segment subquadrate, about one and a half times as long as the first. First segment of the outer ramus subquadrate, about as long as the first basal segment with overhanging outer apical angle ; second segment slightly narrower than the first, about twice as long as wide, with a small projection at the middle of the inner margin. Marginal spine near the apical angle, slender, with a slight angle about one fourth its length from the base ; length about equal to the distance between its base and the base of the segment. Terminal hook long and slender, longer than the two preceding seg- ments but not as long as those and the second basal segment ; very minutely denticulate on the inner margin. Inner ramus of right fifth leg one-segmented, extending to a point about midway between the ba«e of the second seg- ment of the outer ramus and the projection on the inner margin of this segment ; outer margin hairy ; apex bluntly triangular and hairy. Second basal segment of left fifth leg of male subquadrate, about one and a half times as long as broad, slightly pro- duced on the inner margin a short distance above the apical angle. First segment of outer ramus slightly narrower than the second basal segment and about twice as long as wide ; outer margin moderately arcuate, the inner margin hairy. Second segment produced into three digitiform processes : the outermost blunt and by far the longest ; the middle one blunt, barely one fourth the length of the outer ; and the last very short, hardly more than a tubercle, with an acute apex pointing straight inward. The segment is armed on the inner margin with a hairy, cushion-like process. North Aiiwrican Sj^ecics of l>'uij)toinus. 153 Inner ramus of left fifth leg somewhat spatulate, extend- ing slightly beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; inner margin hairy ; apex bluntly rounded and hairy. Length of female 1.25 mm. ; of male 1.15 mm. The above description is based on specimens found in col- lections made in Lake Calhoun, Minn., in July, 1891, and differs consideral)]y from Lilljeborg's original description in de Guerne and Eiehard's "Revision. " He gives the length of the female as about 1.5 mm. ; that of the male, 1.4 mm. I did not find in a single instance that the female had the last thoracic segment armed with two minute spines on each side, although they were present in the male. Lilljeborg does not specify to which sex this part of his description applied, but I assume that he followed the usual custom of referring to the female unless especially stated otherAvise. The spines on the inner ramus of the female I found to be on the inner instead of the outer margin, and they are so figured by Marsh ('93). In most cases I found but one spine representing the third segment of the outer ramus of the fifth foot of the female, while one specimen was found having one outer ramus as in the type, the other with only one spine. I have thought it best to make the description correspond to the type in this particular, regarding the variation as local since Marsh ('93) figures the two spines. The inner ramus of the right fifth foot of the male in the Minnesota specimens was longer than represented in the original figures, and hairy on the inner margin and at the apex. This hairiness is not mentioned in the original des- cription and this ramus is figured smooth, while the inner ramus of the left fifth foot, which is no more hairy than the right, is hairy in the drawings. In the left fifth foot of the male the first segment of the outer ramus, although hairy, has not the definite cushion-like process figured by Lilljeborg, and the outer two digitiform processes of the second segment instead of being serrate within are perfectly smooth. From Herrick's statement 154 Illinois State Lahoratoyi/ of Natural Historij. (Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 73) that "according toEichard's drawing the spines are dentate," I judge that he also found them smooth, since his own figures show them to be so. This species was first found in 1888 at Portland, Oregon, by Trybom, and described in 1889 by Lilljeborg in de Guerne and Kichard's "Revision." Marsh says ('93) that it is the most common form in central Wisconsin, being found quite gener- ally in the shallower lakes, and that it occurs in the Great Lakes, but not abundantly ('95). Herrick (Herrick and Turner, '95) says that within the limits of Minnesota it had been found only in Lake Minnetonka. I can now add Lake Calhoun, Minn., and Sand Lake in northern Illinois. Diaptomus siciloides Lilljeborg. Diaptomus siciloides. de Gueme et Richard. '89b, p. 54, PI. I., Fig. 7,8,28,32. Diaptomus siciloides, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 69, PL VIII.. Fig. 10. "Among the smaller of this genus. The general form of the body agrees almost exactly with that of 1>. gracilis Sars. Cephalothorax slender, widest at the middle. The last two thoracic segments confluent above. Lateral lobes of the last one, seen from above, short and rounded, with rather large mucros. First abdominal segment long, fully as long as the remaining part of the abdomen (without the setae) ; with distinct lateral processes at the anterior part, acuminate and bending forward slightly. Furcal rami short, but fully one and a half times as long as broad. " First pair of antennje of the female, reflexed, surpass the furca but do not reach the tips of the furcal setse ; composed of 25 articles. Antepenultimate article of the prehensile antenna of the male provided with a rather long hook-like process reaching about to the middle of the penultimate article. "Fifth pair of feet in the female small but rather thick; outer ramus biarticulate, hook-like process of second seg- ment slightly curved, and almost equal to the first segment ; the inner margin partly ciliate. Liner ramus simple, slightly longer than the first segment of the outer ramus; with a small seta, slightly hairy at the apex. North American Species of Diaptomus. 155 " The inner margin of the first segment of the outer ramus of the riglit fifth foot of the male dilated into a rather large hyaline lamella. The second segment of this ramus moder- ately curved, the outer margin obtusely hiangulate, the spine placed below the middle. Claw simply curved. Inner ramus small and slightly surpassing the middle of the first segment of the outer ramus. " The second segment of the outer ramus of the left fifth foot almost triangular, with a beak-like spine and delicately hairy within {intiis tenui ore et suhtilitcr hispido) ; the apical process obtuse, with a spine at the inner margin. Inner ramus simple, sinuous, and reaching to or beyond the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus. " Length of female about 1.3 mm.; that of male slightly less. "Found in the month of May in Lake Tulare near the city of Fresno, Cal., by G. Eisen. "In the general form of the body this Diaptomus closely resembles D. gracilis Sars as well as D. slcilis Forbes. It is on account of this last resemblance that it was called siciloides. It differs, however, from both : from D. gracilis in the shape of the last thoracic segment and of the abdominal segments, of the first pair of antennae, and of the fifth pair of feet ; from D. slcilis in the shape of the fifth pair of feet, although this dif- ference is not very great. It resembles D. slcilis more closely than D. gracilis. "It seems to live in great numbers in Lake Tulare near Fresno, Cal. The female bears only four eggs."* The statement concerning the number of eggs borne by the female is erroneous, the number being variable, and appar- ently dependent to a great degree on the temperature of the water and on the food supply. In the high mountain lakes from which the species was first described the statement above quoted may hold true, but in the warm sluggish waters of the Illinois Eiver, where food is abundant, the egg-sac is very large, as many as eighteen eggs having been counted on a single female. This is true also of specimens taken ♦Lilljeborg's description from de Guerne et Richard, 89b. 15G Illinois State Lahoratovij of Natural History. from other localities, and no tendency toward constancy in number of eggs for the same locality was made out. The furcal rami in both sexes are hairy within, a point not mentioned in the original description, although the rami are so figured. All the specimens which I examined from the various localities had this characteristic, although individuals varied slightly in this particular. As mentioned under the description of Z). pallidus, D. sici- loicles was the most abundant form found at Havana. It also formed the greater part of the material from Spirit Lake, Iowa, which was kindly loaned me by Prof. L. S. Ross, of Drake University, Iowa. The individuals taken from the Illinois River at Havana, Illinois, in July and August, 1896, were all of an indefinite color about like opalescent glass. The egg- sac in these was blue, and there was a small pink spot near the eyes and just behind them. These were the only specimens of siciloides which I had opportunity to examine alive. Diaptomus minutus Lilljeborg. (PI. XXX., Fig. 5-8.) Diaptomus ininutus, de Gueriie et Richard, '89b, p. 50, PJ. I., Fig. 5, 6,14; Pi. III., Fig. 25. Diaptomus mimitus^ Marsh, '93, p. 199. PI. IV., Fig. 1-3. Diaptomus minutus, Marsh, '95. p. 8, PJ. VII., Fig. 3. "Among the smallest of the genus. Body slender, widest in front of the middle of the cephalothorax and at the pos- terior part of the head. Fourth and fifth segments commonly confluent above, sometimes in the adult specimen separated by a suture ; the lateral lobes, seen from above, short and rounded, and provided with minute mucros. First abdomi- nal segment of the female (PI. XXX., Fig. 8) about as long as the remainder of the abdomen ; rather ^lilated at its an- terior part and rounded laterally ; furnished with very minute spines. Second segment very short, third segment much longer, and these segments indistinctly joined. Furcal rami about twice as long as broad. Furcal setae unusually long. "First pair of antennae of female somewhat surpass the furca ; composed of 25 segments. x\ntepenultimate article of NortJt AincriccDi Species of Diaptomus. 157 the prehensile antenna of the male (PI. XXX., Fig. 7) with a slender process, long and straight, having a slight appearance of an apical curve, and extending beyond the penultimate article and sometimes almost reaching the end of the last article. "Setae of swimming feet unusually long. Outer ramus of the fifth pair of feet in the female (PI. XXX., Fig. 5) bi- articulate ; unguiform process of second article slightly curved and minutely ciliate without. Inner ramus small and almost rudimentary, with acuminate apex. "Eight foot of the fifth pair of the male (PL XXX., Fig. 6) large but slender ; the second article of the outer ramus with marginal spine minute and placed above the middle. Ter- minal claw thick toward the base, rather short, and partly minutely ciliate within. Inner ramus very small and quite rudimentary. "The left foot of the same pair very similar to that of ]>. siciloides and Z). slgnicaiuin ; the second article of the outer ramus almost elliptical, the inner margin slightly emarginate and partly ciliate at the lower part ; with a large and obtuse apical spine and a smaller inner spine. Inner ramus simple, attenuate toward the apex, and extending about to the middle of the second article of the outer ramus. "Length of female 1-1.1 mm ; of male hardly 1 mm. "Found in Greenland, 61° 30'- 69° N. Lat., by Dr. C. Nystrom and N. 0. Hoist, and at St. John's, Newfoundland, by the former. "This species is distinguished from others by its minute size and by the fifth pair of feet. The female bears only two eggs. D. m'umtus has been found in the Isle of Disko, north- ern Greenland, but it seems to be more common in the southern part. It is without doubt spread over the northern part of North America, since it has also been found at St. John's, Newfoundland."* "We are able to confirm in every respect the description given above by Professor Lilljeborg. We have, in fact, recog- nized some rare specimens of D. )iii)iuti(s in a collection ♦Lilljeborg's description from deGuerne et Ricliard, 89b. 158 Illinois State Lahoratorij of Xatiiral History. which M. Riballier cles Isles, French consul at Newfound- land, was kmd enough to make according to our directions at Kinney's Pond near St. John's. This Calanid [centropa- gid] was found in great numbers by M. Ch. Rabot in 1888 in the following localities in Greenland : Lake Egedesminde (Bay of Disko) ; Godhavn ; near the glacier of Jakobshavn, and in the Tasersuak of Julianehaab."* " Marsh finds this form in Green Lake [Wisconsin], and in the Great Lakes ; it may, therefore, be expected in Lake Superior in Minnesota."! Marsh ('95) places sicilis var. impcrfcctus as a synonym under ininutus, but does it, as he says, "with considerable hesitation." Li looking over the drawings in the possession of the State Laboratory I found some which had been repro- duced but not published, and from these it was evident at a glance that the var. imperfectus was not miniitus but ashlandi, although this was not evident from the description. A single specimen of miiiutus was found among the collections from Yellowstone Park, but it was so badly mutilated that no drawings could be made from it. Specimens from Greenland, kindly sent me by Professor Lilljeborg, conform to his description but are somewhat smaller than those figured by Marsh. Diaptomus trybomi Lilljebokg. (PI. XXXL, Fig. 1-5.) Diaptomus trybomi, de Guerne et Richard, '89b, p. 58, PI. I., Fig. 35; PI. 11., Fig. 6; PI. III., Fig. 14; PI. IV., Fig. 28. Diaptomus trybomi, Ilerrick and Turner, '95, p. 57, PI. VIII., Fig, 17; PI. IX., Fig. 4; Pi. X., Fig. 13. " Of medium size. Cephalothorax widest about the middle. Last two segments distinctly separated, and the last, seen from above (PL XXXI., Fig. 3), slightly produced laterally, provided with two spines (one of them minute) on each side. Besides this the right part of this segment (PI. XXXL, Fig. 2) bears a large dorsal appendage, triangular in form, with mucronate apex, and extending toward the right. The *de Gneriie et Richard, 89b. t Uerrick. From Uerrick and Turner, "95. North American Species of Diaptomus. 159 first caudal segment of the female is very characteristic of the species (in the male it is of the ordinary form) and, unlike that of D. signicauda, surpasses in length the rest of the abdomen. This segment is provided at the anterior part on both sides with a short and mucronate lateral process, and at the posterior part with a large triangular process extending almost directly toward the right, with apex slightly acumi- nate. Furcal rami rather short, not twice as long as broad. " First pair of female antennae 25-segmented, almost reach- ing the base of the furca. The antepenultimate article of the prehensile male antenna (PL XXXI., Fig. 1) armed with an almost straight and rather slender process reaching almost to the middle of the penultimate article, and provided \nth- out with small teeth. "Outer ramus of the fifth pair of feet in the female (PI. XXXI., Fig. 5) two-segmented; the unguiform process of the second segment slightly curved, robust, moderately, ciliate within and at the middle part, last cilium broad, spine-like. Third segment wanting, produced into two short spines, the outer half as long as the inner. "Inner ramus one-segmented, almost equal to the first seg- ment of the outer ramus ; apex obliquely acuminate, pro- vided with two rather long subequal spines. " Second segment of the outer ramus of the right fifth foot of the male (PL XXXI., Fig. 4) very long, longer than the first segment and the basal segment taken together. Margi- nal spine of this segment inserted above the middle. Termi- nal hook slightly curved, inner margin ciliate. " Inner ramus curved, ovate, broad, pointing inward, with mucronate apex, barely reaching to the end of the first seg- ment of the outer ramus. " First and second segments of the outer ramus of the left foot ciliate within, the second one obovate, hirsute toward the apex, and bearing two short spines one of which points inward. "Inner ramus one-segmented, slender, equal to the first segment of the outer ramus." "Length of female about 1.5 mm. ; of male 1.4 mm. 160 lUlnols State Lahoratorij of Natural History. "This species, so remarkable from the peculiarities pre- sented by the last thoracic and the first abdominal segments, was found by the Swedish naturalist, Trybom, at Multrooma Falls, Oregon." The above is the description as given by Dr. Lilljeborg (de Guerne et Eichard, '89b). It agrees with the specimens sent me by himself, but I note a few additional details. The abdomen of the female, seen from above, is asymmet- rical, as is also the la.st thoracic segment. The first abdom- inal segment is dilated anteriorly, and posteriorly is produced on the right to form a blunt, almost semicircular, process. Seen from the side this is fin-shaped, and both this process and the one on the last thoracic segment are penetrated by muscles. The furcal rami are hairy within. In the male the peculiar form of the right inner ramus, the extreme shortness of the left leg, and the very irregular shape of its last segment are especially characteristic. The spines on the first basal segment of each leg and the teeth on the terminal segment of the right leg are also conspicuous because of their great size. The peculiarity of a dorsal process is found, to my knowl- edge, in but two other species : D. saniinineus Forbes, and D. stqnicauda Lilljeborg. In the small size of the inner ramus of the right fifth foot of the male, L). tryhomi approaches the male of D. sanguineus Forbes, 1). iniiintus Lillj., and D. Vdi- ioiii Forbes. De Guerne and Piichard give Multrooma Falls as the locality, which was probably intended for Multnomah Falls, Oregon, although Prof. Lilljeborg in a personal letter also gives the former spelling. Diaptomus franciscanus Lilljeborg. (PI. XXX.,Fig.l-4.) Diajitomus franciscanus , de Guerne et Richard, '89b, p. 45, PI. 1., Fio;. 12. 13, 34; PI. III., Fii>-. 23. Diaptomus franciscanus, Ilerrick and Turner, "95, p. 58, PI. YIII., Fi^. ri. IG. "Larger and more robust than Diajitomus tyrreli. Cepha- lothorax widest in the middle, and the last two segments confiuent above. Lateral lobes of the last thoracic segment North American Species of Diaptomus. 161 seen from above, short and obtuse posteriorly ; armed \vitli small spines. First abdominal segment (PL XXX., Fig. 1) about equal to the rest of the abdomen, moderately dilated anteriorly, rounded at the sides, and armed here with small spines or mucros ; always destitute of all lateral processes. An imperfect suture remains long after maturity in the pos- terior part of this segment. Second segment of the abdomen much shorter than the third, and also more slender and easily pushed within the preceding joint.* Furcal rami short, fully one and a half times longer than broad ; sparsely ciliate within. "First pair of antenna of female, reflexed, extend about to the furca ; composed of 25 articles. Antepenultimate article of the male prehensile antenna (PI. XXX., Fig. 2) provided with an unguiform process, slightly surpassing the end of the penultimate article. "Outer ramus of the fifth pair of feet in the female (PI. XXX.,' Fig. 4) three-segmented, the third segment very small but distinct, and bearing two spines. The unguiform process of the second segment of this ramus rather arcuate and finely ciliate within at the lower part, the last spine thicker than the rest. Inner ramus simple and equal to the first segment of the outer ramus, bearing two long equal spines at the apex, of which the outer is ciliate within at the base. "The right fifth foot of the male (PL XXX., Fig. 3) rather robust. The second segment of the outer ramus almost rect- angular and comparatively short ; the outer marginal spine placed near the apex, and the inner margin armed with a mi- nute spine. Terminal hook long, distinctly sigmoid or S- shaped and tapering toward the apex. Inner ramus small and barely reaching the middle of the second article of the outer ramus ; either imperfectly two-segmented or one- segmented and armed with an apical spine. "The second segment of the outer ramus of the left fifth foot of the male lamelliform, almost triangular, and thinner within. This segment on the thicker, outer, side bears a short * The meaning of the original at this point is rather obscure. It reads: ^'Seg- mentum 2-dum caudoe 'S4io muUo brevius ejusque testa tenuior et facile adsirni- genda.'' 162 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. spine in the middle, and ends in a short obtuse process, the inner apical angle of which exhibits three small oblique in- cisions. The inner margin is minutely ciliate. The inner ramus is simple and slender, attenuate toward the apex, and reaching about to the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus. "Length of female, 2.3 mm. ; of male, 2.0 mm. "Found near San Francisco by G. Eisen. "This Diaptomtis approaches D. longicornis var. similis Herrick in the shape of the body and of the lateral lobes of the last thoracic segment, but it differs greatly in respect to the fifth pair of feet, especially in the male. It seems to be common in the vicinity of San Francisco, hence the name, frauciscanus."* The female is conspicuous chiefly for the extremely long spines with which the inner rami of the fifth pair of feet are armed. These are about as long as the ramus itself and hairy at the base. The thorax and abdomen are of ordinary form. The furca are hairy within, and also, but more sparsely, on the outer margin. In the male the outer margin is not hairy. The outer ramus of the left fifth foot of the male is termi- nated by a peculiarly flattened segment (PL XXX., Fig. 3). In a male of this species sent me by Professor Lilljeborg, both inner rami of the fifth pair of legs are two-segmented. Diaptomus eiseni Lilljeborg. Diaptomus eiseni, de Guerne et Richard, '89b, p. 44, PI. I., Fig. 19, 29, 33.t Diaptomus eiseni, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 58, PI, X., Fig. 11. "Among the largest of the genus. Cephalothorax widest at the posterior part of the head. The last two thoracic seg- ments usually confluent above or indistinctly segmented, and the lateral lobes of the last segment, seen from above, short *Lilljeborg"s description and remarks from de Guerne et Richard, '89b. + Confusion maybe caused by a slight mistal^e which crept into de Guerne and Richard's "Revision." In the index and under the species names, Fig. 20, PI. I. is given as the fifth foot of D. serricornis and also of D. eiseni. The "explanation of plates' however, gives Pig. 29, PI. I., as that of I)- eiseni, which by comparison with the description is found to be correct. North American Species of Diaptomus. 163 in the female; upper posterior angle rather acute, lateral angle very obtuse, the spines of both angles thick and short. First abdominal segment slightly longer than the remainder of the abdomen (sette excepted), produced anteriorly into a rather large lateral process with spines pointing obliquely backward. Second abdominal segment very short. Furcal rami short ; sparsely hairy ; about one and a half times as long as broad. "First pair of antennae reach to the lateral processes of the first abdominal segment; composed of 25 segments. Ante- penultimate article of the prehensile antenna of the male with a long curved and acuminate process almost surpassing the end of the antenna. "Outer ramus of the first pair of feet, especially in the female, pectinately setose. "Outer ramus of the fifth pair of feet in the female two- segmented, the second segment with large unguiform process within and heavily spined without. The inner ramus of this foot rather long, clearly not reaching the end of the first seg- ment of the outer ramus ; suture sharply indicated ; pro- vided at the apex with two spine-like setfe and within with minute spines. "Eight fifth foot of the male rather robust. Second basal segment dilated within into a rugose lamella ; second segment of the outer ramus with marginal spine placed near the apex. Inner margin of terminal claw slightly sigmoid ; from the middle toward the apex first delicately pectinately spined, and thence tuberculate. Inner ramus small and indistinctly two-segmented, extending slightly beyond the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus ; armed at the apex with a spine, and at the same place and within with thick cilia. "Left foot of the fifth pair of the male much smaller than the right. Second or last segment of the outer ramus of this foot with the apex narrowed but obtuse, and within this an acuminate spine ; an emarginate narrow and hairy lamina on the inner margin. Inner ramus slender, rather long, and notably surpassing the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus ; indistinctly two-segmented, the apex similar to that of the right inner ramus. 164 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. "Length of female, 4 mm. ; of male, 3.5 mm. "Found, near Fresno, Cal., by G. Eisen, the Swedish zoolo- gist, member of the San Francisco Scientific Academy." "This Diaptomus is dedicated to Mr. G. Eisen, who found it in California with a great number of other Entomostraca. It was given by him to the Zoological Museum of the Uni- Tersity of Upsala. D. eiseni is very distinct from all the American species described by Profs. Forbes and Herrick."* The last thoracic segment of the female is strongly pro- duced posteriorly and the first abdominal segment is moder- ately dilated and armed on each side with a large spine. This form may also be recognized on account of its great size, being but little smaller than D. stagnalis or 1). shoslione Forbes. The fifth pair of legs are remarkable for the ex- treme size of the inner of the two spines representing the third segment of the outer ramus, which is made still more striking by a row of strong teeth on each margin. The second segment of the outer ramus is also armed with strong teeth on the inner margin. The fifth pair of legs of the male may be easily recognized from the fact that at least an indication of a suture is found on each inner ramus, making it indistinctly two-segmented. The rugose lamella on the second basal segment of the right fifth leg is also very characteristic. Diaptomus signicaudaLiLLjEBOEo. (PI. XXIX., Fig. 3-6.) Diaptomus signicauda, de Guerne et Richard, 'S9b, p. 55, PI. I., Fig. 15,16,31; PI. III., Fig. 22. Diaptomus signicaiidatus, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 63, PL VIII., Fig. 13; PI. IX., Fig. 10. "This species is among the smaller species of this genus. Form of the body very slender. Cephalothorax widest in front of the middle, at the second segment. Last two segments of the thorax (PI. XXIX., Fig. 6) confluent above, the last, seen from alcove, with rather large and projecting lateral lobes, posterior angles acute, with small spines. Fourth thoracic segment, seen from the side, provided above with a small *LiUjeborg's description luid remarks from de Guerne et Richard. "SOb. Xorth Amcrirdii Species of Diaptoinus. 165 hump. First abdominal segment of the female very char- acteristic of the species, giving to it its name. This seg- ment is provided at the anterior part with short, miicronate lateral processes, and at the posterior part on the right side with a large process bent obliquely backward and moderately acuminate. Besides this an indication of a suture is also often present. The length of this segment, posterior process excepted, is slightly less than the remainder of the abdomen. Furcal rami hardly more than half as long as broad. "First pair of antennae of the female always 25-segmented ; reflexed, slightly surpass the furcal rami, but do not reach the end of the furcal set*. The antepenultimate article of the prehensile antenna of the male (PI. XXIX., Fig. 4) armed with a medium-sized hook-like process. " Fifth pair of feet of female (PI. XXIX., Fig. 5) very simi- lar to the corresponding pair of I), siciloldes. Outer ramus two-segmented; unguiform process of the second segment slightly curved, almost parallel with the first article ; very deli- cately ciliate within, the last cilia thicker and spine-like. "Inner ramus one-segmented, longer than the first seg- ment of the outer ramus ; apex obliquely acuminate and ciliate, and bearing two equal ciliate spines. "The right fifth foot of the male (PI. XXIX., Fig. 3) rather slender. First segment of the outer ramus dilated within into a small hyaline lamina. The second segment as long as the first article and the second basal segment together. The marginal spine of the second segment is situated a little below the middle. Terminal hook simply curved. "Inner ramus rather broad, acuminate, and short, not reaching to the end of the first segment of the outer ramus. ' The second segment of the outer ramus of the left foot elliptical or oblong-ovate ; within and toward the apex very delicately aculeate, and bearing two large spines, one of which inclines inward. "Inner ramus simple and slender, but long, and extending beyond the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus. "Length of female about 1.5 mm.; of male, 1.3 mm. 166 Illinois State Lahoratory of Natural History. *' Found in the Sierra Nevada Mountains, California, at a height of from 8,000-10,000 feet above sea-level by G. Eisen. Appears to be very common in small pools in this locality. "This Diapto7nus is very distinct from all known species on account of the peculiar form of the first abdominal seg- ment. In this respect it approaches D. rouhaui Eichard, and the genus Epischura Forbes. In the case of these Copepoda, however, it is the male which is distinguished by the irregu- larity of the abdomen. The name which I have given it refers particularly to the shape of the female abdomen."* There is nothing to add to the above description of this species except that the furca are delicately hairy within, a fact neither shown in the drawings nor mentioned in the original description. The last thoracic segment of the female is strongly produced, and the first abdominal segment greatly dilated at its anterior part. The process on the first abdomi- nal segment is even larger in some cases than represented in the original drawings. In the male also the last thoracic segment is produced, but not so much as in the other sex. The fifth pair of legs are very similar to those of D. siciloides, from which they may be distinguished by the shape of the right inner ramus and of the hyaline lamina on the first segment of the outer ramus of the right fifth leg. Both inner rami are delicately hairy, but I fail to find the smooth, cushion-like process on the outer margin and at the base of the left inner ramus which is fig- ured in the original drawings but of which no mention is made in the text. The females of D. sif/nicauda and /). tryhomi both have a "dorsal process," and in this respect approach D. sanguineus Forbes. Individuals of this species were kindly sent me by Dr. Lilljeborg, but were unavoidably delayed until after this description was completed. There was no time to rewrite it, hence these remarks are in the form of addenda. The same is true of tryhomi, eiseni, and francisca7ius. *Lilljeborg's description and remarks from de Guerne et Kichard, 'b'Jb. North Americdu Species of Diaptomus. 167 Diaptomus ashlandi Marsh. (PL XXXII., Fig. 1-4.) Diaptomus sicilis var. imperfectus , Forbes '90, p. 703. Diaptovnis ashlandi, Marsh, '93, p. 198, PI. III., Fig. 11-13. Diaptomus ashlandi, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. GO, PI. VI., Fig. 4-6. Diaptonms ashlandi. Marsh, '95, p. 7, PL VIl., Fig. 2. A small, slender species, about the same width throughout. Suture between head and thorax distinct. Last two thoracic segments distinct, the last one strongly bifid and armed on each side with a small blunt spine. Abdomen long and narrow ; inclusive of the furca, about half as long as the ceph- alothorax. First abdominal segment as long as the remainder of the abdomen exclusive of the furcal rami ; dilated laterally ; with a small spine on each side (unarmed in the male). Second and third segments subequal. Furcal rami barely twice as long as wide ; hairy within. AntenniTB 2 5 -segmented, reaching to the base of the furcal rami or slightly beyond. Prehensile antenna (PI. XXXII., Fig. 4) moderately swollen; segments 19, 20, and 21, and 22 and 23, ankylosed ; process on the antepenultimate seg- ment extending almost to the middle of the last segment, the end knobbed and roughened or tuberculate at the inner margin. Fifth pair of legs of the male (PL XXXII., Fig. 3) rather slender ; left leg reaching about to the end of the first seg- ment of the outer ramus of the right leg. On the anterior surface of the first basal segment of the right leg is a large tubercle bearing at the tip a small acute spine. Second basal segment without special characteristics. First seg- ment of the outer ramus subquadrate, slightly broader than long ; inner apical angle somewhat produced, the process ending in an acute point. Second segment about three times as long as the first, with a sharp angle at end of proximal third, from the point of which springs the lateral spine. This is about half as long as the segment, with an angle near its base. Terminal hook long and slender, rather more robust than that of T). slcilis Forbes, but shaped very much like it; minutely denticulate on the inner margin. 168 Illinois State Laboratory of Xatmrd Historif. Inner ramus of right fifth leg one-segmented, very narrow, extendmg about half its length beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus; apex with an acute triangle, hairy at the tip ; sides parallel. First basal segment of the left fifth leg produced on the anterior aspect, near the outer margin, into a long tubercle ending in a minute, sharp spine ; second basal segment with delicate hair near the outer distal angle. First segment of the outer ramus subquadrate, shorter than the preceding, slightly longer than broad ; second segment about as long as the first and about twice as long as wide ; very similar to the corresponding segment of D. slcilis Forbes. Inner ramus of left fifth leg long and narrow, margins sin- uously curved ; extending about to the middle of the last segment of the outer ramus ; delicately hairy at the tip. Second basal segment of fifth leg of female (PI. XXXII. , Fig. 1, 2) with the usual delicate hair at the outer margin. First segment of the outer ramus about twice as long as wide ; second segment somewhat longer than the first, taper- ing to a rather sharp point and curving outward slightly, delicately denticulate on the inner margin; third segment wanting, represented by two spines, the outer about twice as long as the inner. Inner ramus one-segmented, extending slightly beyond first segment of the outer ramus, hairy, ending in acute tri- angular tip ; armed at the apex with two rather long sub- equal spines which are sometimes hairy. Length of female .97 mm. ; of male .9 mm. A reference to the " Distribution of American Species" (see page 183), will show the wide range of this form. In the collections of the U. S. Fish Commission from Lake Samma- mish. Lake Union, and Lake Washington, Wash. ; Tsiltcoos Lake, Tahkenitch Lake, and Klamath Lake, Oregon ; and Lake Pend d' Oreille and Gamble's Lake, Idaho, D. aslilandl was found in immense numbers, being either the only centro- pagid or occurring in connection with Epischura nevadensis Lilljeborg. XortJi Ameriecoi Species of Diaptomus. 169 Dlaptomtis aslilandl is very similar to Z>. slcills Forbes and hardly to be distinguished from it but for a slight difference in the last segment of the left fifth foot of the male and the position of the marginal spine of the right fifth foot. In the Laboratory collections from Yellowstone Park and the Flat- head region of Montana forms occur which seem to be inter- mediate between the two, and it was exceedingly difficult to decide to which, if either, of the two species they belonged, D. aslihnidl seems to me, however, to be a good species, since the form, as described by Marsh ('93 and '95) and as found by myself in other collections, exhibits constant, though some- what minute, differences from sic'd'ts hard to describe, but at once evident from the figures. A very peculiar modification of the inner ramus of the fifth foot of the female was noted in a specimen taken from an alkaline pond in Yellowstone Park. In this individual one of the feet (PI. XXXII. , Fig. 1) was normal in every respect, while the inner ramus of the other was armed on its outer margin, at the end of the proximal third, with a sharp, smooth spine about half as long as the ramus itself. D. sicUis var. imperfectus Forbes ('90) is here made a syn- onym of I), ashlandi, because unpublished Laboratory draw- ings of that variety clearly shoAV it to be such. Marsh's de- scription must stand, since the description of imperfectus was not complete enough to identify the form. This species was also noticed by Dr. Forbes in the collections reported on in '93, but was erroneously regarded by him as an immature form of D. sicilis. Diaptomus reighardi Marsh. (PI. XXYIIL, Fig. 1.) Diaptomus reighardi, 31arsh, '95, p. 9, PI. I., Fig. 1-4. A medium-sized species ; body about the same width throughout. Sutures between the first and second, and between the last two, thoracic segments distinct ; last thoracic seg- ment not produced, armed on each side with a very minute spine. First abdominal segment almost as long as the rest of the abdomen, dilated laterally, armed on each side with a 170 Illinois State Lahoratorii of Natural History. minute spine ; second and third segments subequal ; fiircal rami slightly longer than the third segment, about twice as long as wide ; and delicately hairy within. In the male the second abdominal segment and the furcal rami are subequal, and each is longer than any of the other segments. The furcal rami are considerably longer than the preceding seg- ment, fully twice as long as wide, and hairy within. Antennfe 2 5 -segmented, reaching well beyond the tips of the furcal setae. Eight male antenna not much swollen anterior to the geniculate joint- antepenultimate segment unarmed. Left fifth leg of male (PI. XXVIII., Fig. 1) short, extending beyond the middle, but not reaching the end of the second segment, of the outer ramus of the right leg. First basal segment armed at the outer distal angle with a short, sharp spine. Second basal segment aljout equal to the first, almost as wide as long. First segment of the outer ramus irregularly trapezoidal in form, about half as wide as the second basal segment, and delicately hairy on the inner margin. Second segment somewhat as in D. oregoncnsis Lilljeborg. It is pro- duced into two digitiform j^rocesses, the outer of which is more than twice as long as the inner and armed on the inner margin at the tip, with a small cushion-like, delicately hairy process. There is a distinct suture between the main part of the second segment and the inner of the two processes, and the process itself is minutely denticulate on the outer margin. Inner ramus of left fifth leg one-segmented, reaching to the base of the inner digitiform process ; outer margin hairy, almost straight ; inner margin somewhat sinuously curved. First basal segment of the right fifth foot of the male sub- quadrate, slightly longer than wide, armed at the outer distal angle wdth a short, sharp spine. Second segment about as wide as the first and one and a half times as long ; provided with the usual hair on the outer margin. First segment of the outer ramus a little more than half as long as the second basal segment and slightly longer than wide ; second segment less than half as wide as long and more than twice as long as the preceding segment. Marginal spine rather short, about Xo7-t]i. Aniericdn Species of Diaptomua. 171 as long as the segment is wide ; inserted near the beginning of the distal thiixi ; slightly curved and distinctly denticulate on the inner margin. Terminal hook rather slender, a little more than twice as long as the preceding segment ; not regu- larly curved, but divided approximately into thirds by abrupt angles, the upper one very sharp, below which on the inner margin, the hook is delicately but distinctly denticulate. Inner ramus of right fifth foot short, one-segmented, reach- ing just to, or extending very slightly beyond, the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; apex bluntly triangular and delicately hairy. First segment of the outer ramus of the fifth leg of the female subquadrate, about twice as long as wide ; second seg- ment slightly shorter than the first, moderately curved, the inner margin distinctly denticulate ; third segment wanting, being represented by two spines ; the outer short and thick and only about half as long as the inner. Inner ramus of fifth leg of female, one-segmented, extending slightly beyond the end of the first segment of the outer ramus ; delicately hairy at the apex and on the distal fourth, and armed in addition to this with two slender spines about as long as the shorter of the two representing the third segment of the outer ramus. Length of female, 1.1395 mm. ; of male, 1.0248 mm. The above measurements are those of Professor Marsh. The largest female I examined was 1.13 mm. in length, the smallest, 1 mm. ; while the largest male I measured was 1 mm. in length, the smallest, .96 mm. Prof. Marsh originally described this species, and I am greatly indebted to him for the specimens from which the above description was made. He found D. reighardl in only three localities, all in Michigan ; North Lake, on Beaver Island, Intermediate Lake, and Crooked Lake. I do not know of its having been recorded from any other place. At first sight D. reighardl, in respect to the fifth pair of legs of the male, is very like D. oregonensis Lilljeborg, but the details of structure are very different in the two, and there can be no doubt as to the validity of the species. 172 Illinois State Lahoratorij of Natural History. Diaptoraus birgei Marsh. Diaptomus birgei^ Marsh, '94, p. 16, PL 1., Fig. 4-6. Diapiomus birgei, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 79, PI. XLYII., Fig. 4-6. " Of moderate size. The first segment of the eephalothorax is nearly equal in length to the three following. The first segment of the abdomen of the female is as long as the remainder of the abdomen and the furca. It is much dilated in front. The second segment is nearly twice as long as the third, and about equal in length to the furca. The second and third joints are very closely united. "The antenna3 extend to the end of the furca. The right antenna of the male is much swollen anterior to the geniculat- ing joint; the antepenultimate joint is produced on its distal end into a short, blunt process, which makes very nearly a right angle with the longitudinal axis of the joint. ^'Tlie outer ramus of the fifth foot of the female is two- jointed, the third joint being represented by two spines. The inner ramus is one-jointed, hardly as long as the first joint of the outer ramus, and armed at the tip with minute setae and two rather long spines. " The basal joint of the right fifth foot of the male is elon- gated, trapezoidal in form, its greatest breadth being at its distal extremity. The first joint of the outer ramus is broader than long, armed on its inner margin with a broad, thin ex- pansion of the integument. The second joint is elongate, broader at base ; the lateral spine is situated at about the middle of its length, is long and stout, and armed on its inner margin with fine serrulations. The terminal hook is slightly angular, and armed with fine serrulations on its inner mar- gin. The inner ramus is one-jointed, equaling in length the first joint of the outer ramus. " The left fifth foot of the male reaches slightly beyond the first joint of the outer ramus of the right. The basal joint is quadrangular, considerably shorter than the right basal joint. The first joint of the outer ramus is about twice as long as broad. The second joint is slightly longer than the first joint ; it is expanded at base, where it is armed with fine hairs, and North American Sj^ecies of Diaptomns. 173 terminates in a finger-like process bearing a falciform spine. The inner ramus extends to about one half the length of the second joint. "Length of female, 1.5 mm. ; of male, 1.3 mm."* Marsh states, in connection with the original description, that the material in which this species was found — collected by Professor Birge at New Lisbon, Wisconsin — contained only a few individuals, and that his own search for it in other Wisconsin localities had been unsuccessful. He says also that the species resembles the European species Z). [iracilis more closely than any other American form. The description quoted above is the only literature on the subject, and while a request for slides or specimens of the species by Professor Marsh was kindly complied with in the case of most of his species, to his own as well as my regret he was unable to let me have either slides or specimens of D. hirgei. Unfortunately,as Marsh says, but few specimens were found, and further study of the species must consequently be deferred until later collections shall afford an opportunity. Diaptomus mississippiensis Marsh. (PL XXXIII., Fig. 1-4.) Diaptomus mississippiensis, Marsh, '94, p. 15, PJ. I., Fio^. 1-3. Diaptomus mississippiensis, Herrick and Turner, '95, p. 78, PI. XLVII., Fig. 1-3. A medium-sized species. Body slender, widest about the middle of the posterior third, the male a little more slender than the female, and the Avidest part slightly farther forward. Last two cephalothoraic segments indistinctly confluent; suture between the first two distinct. Last cephalothoracic segment, seen from above, not produced, but bearing a minute obtuse spine pointing backward ; seen from the side it is broadly rounded, with the spine in the middle, giving it the form of a brace (--^— ■ — ■). First abdominal segment about as long as the remainder of the abdomen (PI. XXXIII. , Fig. 4), with a short obtuse spine opposite the anterior margin of ♦Description quoted from Marsh, "94. 174 lUinois State Lahoratory of Natural History. the recejHaruluni scminis ; the second segment the shortest ; tMrd segment sHghtly longer than the second. In the male (PL XXXIII. , Fig. 1) there is little difference in the length of the abdominal segments. Furcal rami broad, but little longer than the third abdominal segment ; distinctly hairy within. Furcal setse thick at the base, tapering gradually toward the tip ; distinctly setose. The inner furcal seta is smooth in both sexes. Antemiffi 2 5 -segmented, reaching to or slightly beyond the tips of the furcal setfe. The right male antenna with the six segments preceding the geniculation greatly swollen ; ante- penultimate article unarmed; segments 19, 20, and 21, also 22 and 23 ankylosed. Fifth pair of feet of the female (PI. XXXIIL, Fig. 2) of moderate size. First basal segment trapezoidal, the longer base forming the inner margin. Second segment of the outer ramus long, narrow, acuminate, shorter than the preceding segment, perfectly smooth Avithin. Third segment wanting ; represented by two straight and pointed spines, an inner short one and an outer one more than twice as long. Inner ramus of fifth foot of female one-segmented, reach- ing almost to the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus; distinctly hairy on inner margin near the apex, where it is armed with two spines, the inner one being fully one third as long as the ramus itself. First segment of outer ramus of right fifth foot of male (PL XXXIIL, Fig. 3) subquadrate, slightly longer than broad, the second segment nearly twice as long as the first, its upper half about as wide as the first. A little l)elow the middle of this segment the inner margin is produced into a short spine- like process, concave toward the apex of the segment. Be- tween this and the apex the segment is produced into a narrow, triangular hyaline lamina, tapering from the broad upper part to the inner apical augle. Marginal spine long and curved, concave toward the apex of the segment and inserted very near the outer apical angle. Terminal hook long and very slender, with two sharp angles dividing it approximately into thirds ; upper third rather thick as North American Species of Diaptomus. 175 compared with the remainder ; lower two thirds very minutely spinose ; tip sometimes slightly recurved. Inner ramus of right fifth foot one-segmented, narrowing but slightly toward the tip. It reaches almost to the middle of the last segment of the outer ramus, but not to the hook- like process. Apex rounded ; unarmed or very delicately hairy. Outer ramus of the left fifth foot two-segmented. First segment irregularly trapezoidal ; small and inconspicuous, with a delicately hairy cushion-like process on the inner mar- gin. Last segment consisting of two digitiform processes, forming a forcipate structure. Seen from behind, the upper process is smooth, the base slightly swollen. It is a little longer than the other and about one and a half times as long as the preceding segment, tapering gradually from the thickened part to an obtuse point. The lower process (seen from behind) is about equally broad at the base and at the beginning of the last third, whence it narrows quite suddenly to form an obtuse point. It is provided within and at the apex with four or five small teeth. Inner ramus of left fifth foot paddle-shaped, considerably broadest at the apex ; reaching almost to the tip of the outer ramus ; either smooth or very delicately hairy. Length of female, 1.2 mm. ; of male, 1.1 mm. Most of the specimens examined were taken from Lake Maitland, Florida, from material kindly loaned me by Mr. Adolph Hempel. The above was prepared as a description of a new species, but when I saw Professor Marsh's slides there was no longer any doubt as to the identity of mississippiensis and this Florida form. Prof. Marsh ('94) figures the furca of the female as perfectly smooth within, while in all of the specimens from Florida, as well as in those which he kindly loaned me, they are distinctly, though not heavily, setose within. The inner rami of the fifth pair of feet in the male, however, differ con- siderably— probably a varietal difference, since in a few of my specimens they approached the form shown in his figures. In the Florida specimens I fail to find the asymmetry in the 176 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. abdominal spine mentioned by Marsh, but since the speci- mens from the two localities differ in other respects it is not unlikely that this difference also may exist. Found by Professor Marsh in collections from small lakes and ponds in Mississippi, and by the writer in material col- lected from a number of Florida lakes in March, 1896, by Mr. Adolph Hempel. Professor Marsh states that in collec- tions made in Mississippi in January and February, 1893, D. mississij)2'iensis was the only Diaptomus found ; but in the Florida collections this species occurred in connection with I), alhuquerquensis Herrick, the two being about equal in numbers. In general appearance these two species are very similar, but they are widely different in the details of their structure. Diaptomus tyrrelli Poppe. Diaptomus tyrrelli, Poppe, '88, p. 159. Diaptomus tyrrelli, de Guerne et Richard, '89b, p. 39, PI. I., Fig. 17,18; PI. IV., Fig. 26. Diaptomus fresnanus, Lilljeborg, i7i litt* Diaptomus tyrrelli, Herriclv and Turner, '95, p. 76, PI. X., Fig. 9. "Of medium size. Cephalothorax widest at the middle and at the lateral lobes of the last segment. Last two tho- racic segments confluent above, and the last, seen from above, produced obliquely into large lateral processes, almost ovate, acuminate posteriorly, with a rather large mucro. First abdominal segment almost as long as the rest of the abdomen, somewhat dilated anteriorly, and provided with long mucro- nate lateral processes. Second and third abdominal segments rather short, with a vestige of a transverse suture anteriorly. Furcal rami short, sparsely hairy, and almost one and a half times as long as broad. "First pair of antennae in the female, reflexed, reach almost to, sometimes to the end of, the furca ; composed of twenty-five segments. Antepenultimate article of the pre- hensile antenna of the male wholly unarmed, or minutely and scarcely perceptibly armed. *The description given herewith is that of D. fresnanus Lilljeborg, sent by him to de Guerne and Richard, and published by them under the name of D. tyrreUi. Xoiili AmcriccDi S2)cci(s of Diaj^toiitus. 177 " Outer ramus of the fifth pair of feet in the female l)iarticu- late ; uiiguiform process of the second segment almost parallel to the first segment, slightly curved within and minutely ciliate on the inner margin, the last cilia spine-like. Inner ramus simple and slender, about equal to the first segment of the outer ramus ; armed at the outer margin and neai? the apex with two medium-sized spines ; apex obtuse and finely hairy, "Eight fifth foot in the male slender and of medium size. First segment of the outer ramus with a small hyaline lamella near the inner apical angle. Second segment comparatively small and strongly curved ; the outer marginal spine at about the middle. Terminal hook slightly sigmoid ; inner margin smooth. Inner ramus minute and simple, not reaching the end of the first segment of the outer ramus. " Second segment of the outer ramus of the left foot of the same pair almost triangular ; inner margin slightly sinuate and ciliate and armed with two obtuse processes (one apical, the other lateral). Inner ramus indistinctly two-segmented extending about to the middle of the second segment of the outer ramus ; minutely hairy within and at the apex. "Length of female 1.9 mm. ; of male 1.8 mm."* " This Diaptomus is distinguished from all its related forms by the large lateral lobes of the last thoracic segment. These lobes, seen from above, are acuminate, but seen from the side, the posterior extremity is obtuse and armed with two spines. " The first abdominal segment is remarkable on account of its long, strong, pointed processes. " The female of this species slightly resembles I), (nuhifiniis Lillj., from Behring Isle, but the lateral projections of the first abdominal segment are wanting in the latter. 1). tiirrcUl differs from most other American species in the absence of a prolongation on the antepenultimate article of the male pre- hensile antenna. "The first specimens of this copepod were collected in Summit Lake, in the Eocky Mountains, at a height of 5,300 feet, and sent to Herr S. A. Poppe by Mr. J. B. Tyrrell, of Ottawa, Canada. *Lilljeborg"s description from de Gueriie et Richard, '89b. 178 IH'mois Sf. sJioshoiie Forbes has never been found outside of Yellow- stone Park. D. paUuUis Herrick is an exceedingly common species in central Illinois and has been recorded from Ohio, Wisconsin, and Minnesota. D. (dJniqtienpieiisis Herrick was first described from Albu- querque, N. M., and is also found in Florida. 1>. iiovdiuexiedirus Herrick has only been recorded from Albuquerque, N. M. D. oi'eijoiieusis Lilljeborg is a very common species in Illi- nois, occurring generally with J>. sicUoides Lillj. and D. jxiUi- das Herrick, It is also common in Wisconsin and is found in Michigan, Minnesota, and Oregon. D. sie'doides Lilljeborg is found in immense numbers at Havana, 111. I have found it also in Iowa and Indiana col- lections, and it was originally described from L. Tulare, Fresno, Cal. 7^. iii'iNiitiis Lilljeborg is prol)ably the common species in the northern tier of states. It has been found in Yellowstone Park, in the Great Lakes, and in Wisconsin, Michigan, Newfoundland, Greenland, and Iceland, D, fr<(iicisc(iniis Lilljeborg has been found only by G. Eisen, near San Francisco, Cal. D. etseiil Lilljeborg is also a California species. D. sigiiicdiidd Lillj., one of the most peculiar of American species, is recorded only from the Sierra Nevadas. D. tryhoiiii Lilljeborg is recorded only from Multnomah Falls, Oregon, D, ashlaiuli Marsh seems to be the most widely distributed of American forms, having been found in the Great Lakes, in Indiana, Michigan, AVisconsin, Oregon, Idaho, Washing- ton, and in Yellowstone Park. 184 lUiiio'is State LahormpZoHms nouveau du Congo (i>. /oueHJ). Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XV., pp. 177. 178. '90b. Description du Diaptomus alluaudi n. sp., recueilli par M. Alluaud dans un reservoir d'eau douce a Lanzarotte (Canaries). Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XV., pp. 198-200. '90c. On the Fresh-Water Fauna of Iceland. Ann. and Mag. Xat. Hist., Series VI., Vol. X., pp. 340-;U2. '91. (See Article II.) '91a. S.ynonj'mie et distribution geographique de Diaptomus alluaudi. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVI., pp. 213-217. '91b. (See Article 1 1., '91a.) '91c. Entomostrac^s recueillis par M. Charles Raboten Ilussie eten Siberie (Gouvernements de Kasau, de Perm, de Vologda, et de Tobolsk). Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVI., pp. 232-236. '92. Sur la faune des eaux douces de Flslande. Compt. rend, de TAcad. des Sci., T. CXIV., pp. 310-313. '92a. (See Article II.) '92b. Documents nouveaux sur la distribution gcographiijue des Calanides d"eau douce. Assoc, franc, pour Tavanc. des Sci., Con- gres de Marseille, 1891, T. XX.. Plate V. 5 pp. Paris. '92c. (See Article 1 1 ., '92b.) '93. (See Article II.) *'94. Diaptomus chenreuxi, Copepode nouveau d'Algerie. Bull, de la Soc. zool de France, T. XIX., p. 176. '96. Premiere liste des Copepodes et Cladoceres d'eau douce du Portugal. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XXL, pp. 157-159. '96a. D. hlanci, Copepode nouveau recueilli par M. Edouard Blanc a Boukhara (Turkestan). Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XXL, pp. 53-56. 5 Fig. Hacker, F. *'95. Die Vorstadien der Eireifung. Zusammenfassende Untei-- suchungen iiber die Bildung der Viei'ergruppen und das Verhalten der kernbliischennucleolen. Arch. f. mikr. Anat., Bd. 45, pp. 200- 273; Abstract, Zool. Centralbl., 11. Jahrg., Nr. 18, pp. 551-553. Hansen, H. J. '93. Zur Morphologic der Gliedmassen und Mundteile bei Crustaceen und Insekten. Zool. Anz., XVI. Jahrg., Nos. 420 u. 421, pp. 193-198, 201-212. XortJi A))U'ric(iii Sjwc'u's of Diaptomns. 193 Hartog, M. M. '80. On the Anal Respiration of the Copepoda. Quart. Journ. Micros. Soi. London, Vol. XX., pp. 244-245; Proc. Manchester Lit. and Philos. Soc, Vol. XIX., pp. 61, G2. '82. De r anl impair des Crustaccs. Compt. rend. Acad. Paris, T. XCIV., pp. 1430-1432; Ann. Mao-. Nat. Hist., Vol. X., pp. 71,72; Archiv Zool. Exporini., Vol. X., pp. 7, 8. '88. (See Article II.) Hartwig, W. '93. (See Article II.) '94. (See Article II.) '97. Znr Verbreituni;- dor niederen Crustaceen der Provinz Bran- denburg. Forschunusber. a. d. Biol. Stat, zu Pliin, Theil V., pp. 110-149. Stuttgart. Heller, C. '71. (See Article II.) Herrick, C. L. '77. A Xew Cj'clops.t Geol. and Xat. Hist. Surv. of Minn., 5th Ann. Rep., pp. 238-239. 2 Figs. '79. (See Article II.) '79a. Fresh-water Entomostraca. Am. Xat., Vol. XIII., pp. 620-629. 4 Pis. '82. (See Article II.,'S2a.) '83. (See Article II.) '83a. (See Article II.) '84. (See Article II.) '87. (See Article II.) '95. Micro-Crustacea from New Mexico. Zool. Anz., XVIII. .lahrg., Xr. 467, i)p. 40-47. 2 Taf. [B. aUmquerqnensis and D. novamexicanus.'] Herrick, C. L.. and Turner, C. H. '95. (See Article II.) Hoek, P. P. C. '7&. (See Article II.) *'77-'78. Zur Entwickelungsgeschichte der Entomostraken. II. Zur Embryologie der freilebenden Copepoden. Niederl. Arch. f. Zool. Bd. IV., pp. 55-74, Taf. V.-VI. '78. (See Article II.) Imhof, O. E. '83. (See Article IL) fDiaptomus sp. '; 194 Illniois State Lcthoratonj of Natxral Uistorij. '84. Resultate meiner Studien iiber die pelagische Fauna kleiner und grosserer Siisswasserbecken in der Sehweiz. Zeitsclir. f. wiss. Zool., Band XL., pp. 154-178. '84a. (See Article II., '84.) '85. (See Article II., '8,5a.) '85a. Uber die blassen Kolben an den vorderen Antennen der Siiss- wasser-( 'alaniden. Zool. Anz., VJII. Jahrg., Nr. 197, ]). 353. '85b. (See Article II., '85.) '86. (See Article II.) '86a. (See Article II., ^8Gb.) '87. Uber die microscopische Thierwelt hochalpiner Seen (600- 2780 m. ii. M.). Zool. Anz., X. Jahrg., Nos. 241 u. 242. pp. 13-17, 33-42 ; Abstract, Am. Nat., Vol. XXL, p. 071. '87a. (See Article IT.) '87b. (See Article II.) '88. Fauna der Siisswasserbecken. Zool. Anz., XL Jahrg., Xos*. 275 u. 276, pp. 166-172, 185-190. '88a. (See Article II., '88.) '90. (See Article IL,'90a.) '90a. (See Article II., '90.) '90b. Notizen iiber die Siisswasi«er-Calaniden. Zool. Anz., XIIL Jabrg., Xos. 349 u. 350, pp. 029-633, 654-658. '91. Uber die pelagische Fauna einiger Seen des Scbwarzwaldes. Zool. Anz., XIV. Jahrg., No. 355, pp. 33-38. '92. Ziisamnienselzung der pelagischen Fauna der Siisswasserbecken. Biol, ('entralbl., XII. Band., Nr. 6, 7 u. 8, pp. 171-182, 200-205. *'93. Les organ ismes Inferieursdes lacs a la region du Rhone. Arch. des Sci. phys. et nat., octobre — dccembre, 1893. '94. Fauna hochgelegener Seen, Seen der Rocky-Mountains, Nord- Amerika. Yon S. A. Forbes. Biol. Centralbl., XIV. Bd., Nr. 8, pp. 287-293. '95. (See Article n.) '96. Die Binnengewiisser-Fauna der Azoren ; Referat nach de Guerne und Barrois. Biol. Centralbl., XVI. Bd., Nr. 18, pp. 683-688. Jurine, L. '20. (See Article II.) Kafka, Josef. '92. (See Article II.) Kerville, H. (See.Gadeau de Kerville, H.) North American Species of Diaptomus. 195 King, B. L. *'55. Oil Australian Entomostracans. Papers and Proc. Roy. Soc. Van Diemen's Land, Vol. III., Pt. I. Koch, C. L. '35-'41. Deutschlands Crustaceen, ^Mj'riapoden, und Arachniden, Heft. XXI., XXXV. Kegensburg. Koelbel, C. '85. Caroinologisclies. Sitzungsber. d. K. Akad. d. Wiss. Wien, Math.-naturw. Klasse., Bd. XC, 1 Abteil., pp. 312-323, PI. I., Fig. 1-5. Kortchaguine, A. N. *'87. Fauna der I'uigebung Moskaus. I. Crustaceen [German title of Russian article]. (Arb. aus. d. Laborat. d. Zool. Mus. der Univ. Moskau.) Schriften der Gesellsch. v. Freunden d. Naturwissensch. zu Moskau, Bd. LI I. Ladenburger, R. '84. Zur Fauna des Mansfelder Sees. Zool. Anz., VII. Jahrg., Xr. 168, pp. 299-302. Iiauterborn, R. '94. i'ber die Winterfauna einiger Gewiisser der Oberrheinebene. Mit Beschreibungen neuer Protozoen. Biol. Centralbl., XIV. Bd., Xr. 11, pp. ;!91-398. '94a. Beitriige zur Siisswasserfauna der Insel Helgoland. Wissen- schaftliehe Meeresuntersuchungen, "Xeue Folge, ' Bd. I., Heft 1, pp. 216-221. Leydig, Fr. '59. Benierkungen iiber den Ban der Cyclopiden. Arcli. f. Xaturg. XXV. Jahrg., I. Bd., pp. 194-207, Taf. IV. Lilljeborg, W. '53. (See Article II.) '63. Beskrifning (ifver twa arter Crustaceer af ordingarne Ostracoda och Copepoda. Ofv. af K. Vet.-Akad. Forhaudl., Arg. XIX., p. 391. '87. On the Entomostraca collected by Mr. I-eonhard Stejneger, on Bering Island. 1882-83. Contributions to the Xatural Historj' of the Commander Islands. Proc. \I. S. Xat'n'l Mus., 1887, pp. 154-156. '88. Descriptions de deux especes nouvelles de Diaptomus du nord de I'Europe. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XIII., pp. 156-158, Lubbock, J. *'53. On two Xew Species of Calanid,t\ with Observations on the Spermatic Tubes of Fotitella, Diaptomns, etc. Ann. Mag. Xat. Hist., Vol. XII., pp. 115-124, 159-165, Pis. V., VI. 196 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. *'54. On the Fresh-water Entomostraca of South America. Trans. Entom. Soc. N. S., T. III. *'56. On some Entomostraca collected by Dr. Sutherhmd in the At- lantic Ocean. Trans. Entom. Soc. London, Vol. IV., Part II., pp. 8-39, Pis. II.-XII. *'57. Description of ejoht Xew Species of Entomostraca found at Weymouth. Ann. Mag. Nat. Hist., Vol. XX., pp. 401-410, Pis. X., XI. *'60. On Some Oceanic Entomostraca collected by Capt. Toynbee. Trans. Linn. Soc. London. Vol. XXIII., pp. 295, 29G; Ann. Mag. Nat. Hist., Vol. XL, pp. 488, 489. '63. (See Article II.) Maitland, R. T. *'74. Naamlijst van Xederlandsche Schaldieren. Tijdschr. Xederl. Dierk. Vereen., 1 Deel, pp. 228-269. Marenzeller, E. v '73. Uber Diaptomus amhhjodon n. sp. Verb. d. K.-K. zool.-bot. Ge- sellsch. Wien, Bd. XXIIL, p. 593, Taf. VI. Marsh, C. D. '91. (See Article II.) '92. (See Article I L) '93. (See Article II.) '93a. (See Article II.) '94. On two New Species of Diaptomus. Trans. Wis. Acad. Sci., Arts, and Letters, Vol. X., pp. 15-17, PI. I. \_D. mississippiensis and D. birgei, u. sp.] '95. (See Article II.) '97. On the Limnetic Crustacea of Green Lake. Trans. Wis. Acad. Sci., Arts, and Letters, Vol. XL, pp. 179-224, Pis. V.-XIV. Milne-Edwards, H. '34-'40. (See Article IL) '38. Extrait d' un Memoire sur la distribution geographique des Crustaces. Compt. rend, des Seances de I'Acad. des Sci. 9 pp. Moniez, R. '87. (See Article IL) '89. (See Article II. , '89a.) Mrazek, A. '91. (See Article II.) '93. Pfii^iievky k poznani sladkovodnich Copepodu [Contributions to the Knowledge of Fresh-water Copepoda]. Vestnik Kr^il. Ceske Spol. Nauk. Trida math.-pfir., 1893. 74 pp., 8 Pis.; Abstract, Zool. Centralbl., I. .lahrg., pp. 593, 594. North A)ncrican Sj^ecies of Diaptomus. 197 '93. (See Article II., "93c.) '95. (See Article II.) *'96. Zvir Eutwickeliingsgeschichte eiiiio^er Taenieu.f Sitzungsber. d.k. br>hm. Gesellscli. Wiss. Math.-nat. Classe. 16 pp., 1 PI.; Abstract, Zool. Ceiitralbl.. IV. Jahrg., Xo. 15, pp. 522. 523. ^ Muller, O. F. 1792. (See Article II.) Nicolet. *'48-'49. Crustac-eos. In Gay, C, Ilistoria fisica y politica de Chile etc.. Zoologia, Vol. III., pp. 288-292. Nordqvist, O. '86. (See Article II.) '87. (See Article II.) '88. Die Calaniden Finlands. Bidrag till Kiinnedom af Fiulands Natur och Folk. Utoifva af Finska Veten.sk.-Soc., Heft 47, pp. 192-275. 10. Pis. '89. Uber eiiien Fall von androgyner Missbildung bei Diaptomus gracilis G. O. Sars. Arch. f. Naturoesch. LA'. Jahrg., pp. 241-243, Taf. XII. '90. (See Article II.) Norman, A. M. '86. iMuseiim Normanianiim ; or a Catalog of the luvertebrata of Europe and the Arctic and North Atlantic Oceans, pp. 22, 23. Ouchakoff, N. *'55. Pontie de Wacarino. Bull, de la Soc. imp. des natural, de Mos- cou,T. XXVIII. Pavesi, P. '79. (See Article II.) '79a. (See Article 11.) '83. (See Article II.) Pickering, C. '44. Generic Description of Scopipliora vagans. Nat. Hist. N. Y., Zool., Part VI., Crustacea, p. 02. Pitard, E. *'97. Sur le Plankton du lac de Joux. Arch. Sci. phys. et nat., 4"^™"= p6r., T. III. 3 pp. *'97a. Sur le Plankton du lac Brenet. Arch. Sci. phys. et nat., 4*'°'^ per., T. III. 2 pp. Poggenpol, M. J. '74. (See Article II.) tContains reference to Diaptomus. 198 lUiiwis State Lahoratorij of Natural History. Poppe, S. A. '84. Bemerkungen zu R. Ladeiiburger's: Zur "Fauna des Mans- felder Sees" in No. 108 des Zoologischen Anzeigers. Zoo]. Anz., V]I. Jahrg., No. 17G,pp. 499, 500. '86. Ein neuer Diaptomvs aus dam Hirschberger Thai. Zeitschr. f. wiss. Zool., Bd. 43, pp. 285-289, Taf. X,, Fig. 1-12. '88. Diagnoses de deux espi-ces du genre Diaptouius Westvvood. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XIII., pp. 1.59, IGO. '89. (See Article II.) '89a. (See Article II.) '91. Ein neuer Diaptomus aus Brasilien. Zool. Anz., XIV. Jahrg., No. 368, pp. 248-250. 3 Fig, [D. deitersi n. sp.] Poppe, S. A., u. Mrazek, A. '95. Entomostraken des Naturhistorischen Museums in Hamburg. 1. Die von Ilerrn Dr. F. Stuhlmann auf Zanzibar und dem gegenliber- liegendeu Festlande gesammelten Siisswasser-Copepoden. 2. Taf. 2. Entomostraken von Siid-Georgien. 1 Taf. 3. Die von Herrn Dr. H. Driescli auf Ceylon gesammelten Siisswasser-Entomostra- ken. I Taf. Beiheft zum Jahrb. der Hamburgischen wissenschaftl. Anstalten. XII. 20 pp. Poppe, S. A., et Richard, J. '90. (See Article II.) '92. Description du Diaptouius schmackeri n. sp., recueilli par M. Schmacker dans le lac Tahoo (Chine). Bull de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XVII., pp. 149-151. G Fig. Rath, O. V. '91. (See Article II.) Rehberg, H. '80. (See Article II., '80a.) '80a. (See Article II., 'SOb.) Richard, J. '87. (See Article II.) '87a. Sur la faune polagique de quelques lacs d"Auvergne. Compt, rend. d'Acad. des Sci., 14 novembre et 12 decembre, T. CX., pp. 951-953. '88. Entomostraces nouveaux ou pen connus. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XIII.. p. 15G. '88a. (See Article II., '88.) *'89. Anomalie de I'antenne droite chez Diaptomus coerulens Fisch., male. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XIV., pp. 38, 39. Xorth Americdu Species of Diaptomtis. 199 '89a. Xole sur les pcclies effectiu'es par INI. Ch. llabot dans les lacs Euara, Imandra, et dans le Kolozero. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XIY.. pp. 100-109. '89b. Description du Mesochra blanchardi, Coin'j)ode iiouveau des Sebkhas al^iriennes. Bull, de la Soo. zool. de France, T. XIV., pp. 317-321. '90. (See Article II., "DOc.) '90a. Sur les Entoniostraces et quelqnes autres aninianx inforieurs des lacs de I'Auvergne. Rev. des Sci. Xat. Appliquces, 37" Ann., 1^^ Seiu., Xo. 10, pp. 472-481. 10 Fig. '90b. (See Article II., '90a.) '90c. (See Article II., "UOb.) '90d. Xote prcliniinaire sur le systcme nerveux de quelques cspoces de Diaplomus. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T, XV., pp. 212-219. '91. (See Article II.) '91a. (See Article II.) '91b. Kecherches sur le sj'stcnie i^landulaire et sur le sj-stenie ner- veux des Copcpodes libres d'eau douce, suivies d'une revision des cspeces de ce oroupe qui vivent en France. Ann. Sci. nat. zool., T. XII., pp. 113-270, PI. V.-VIII. '92. P'ree Fresh-water (opepoda. Ann. Sci. Xat., Vol. XII., pp. 113- 270; Abstract, Journ. Roy. Micr. Soc, 1892, p. 478. '93. Copcpodes recueillis par M. le Dr. Theod. Barrois en Egypte, en Syrie et en Palestine (Mars — Juin, 1890). Rev. Biol, du Xord de la France, 5"^ ann., Xo. 10. juillet, 18!)3. 3G pp., 51 Fig. '94. Entoniostraccs recueillis par M. E. Modigliani dans le Lac Toba (Sumatra). Ann. del Mus. Civ. di Storia Xat. di Genova, Ser. II. "• , Vol. XIV. (XXXIV.), Oct., 1894, pp. 565-578, Fig. 9-14. [Di'iptoiiius dorlai n. sp.] '95. (See Article II.. '95a.) '95a. (See Article II., '95b.) '97. Sur quelques Entoniostraccs d'P^au douce des environs de Buenos Aires. Anales del Mus. Xac. de Buenos Aires, T. \'., pp. 321-332, Fig. 1-G. [Diaptomus hcrgi n. sp.] '97a. Entoniostraccs recueillis par M. leDirecteur Steindachner dans les lacs de Janina et de Scutari. Ann. d. K. K. Xaturbist. llofmus., Bd. XII.. Heft 1, pp. 63-GG, Fig. 1-4. [Diaptomus steindaclineri n. sp.] '97b. Eutomostraccs de TAnierique du Sud recueillis par MM. U. Deiters, J. von Ibering, G. W. ^liiller et G. O. Poppe. Mem. de la Soc. zool. de France, T. X., pp. 263-301, Fig. 1-45. 200 Illhio'is State Lahoratory of Natural History. '97c. Sur deux Entomostraces d'Eau donee recueillis par M. Chaf- fanjon en Mongolie. Bull. du. Mns. d'hist. nat., 1S!)7, Xo. 4, pp. 131-135, Fig. 1-5. \_Diaptomus chaff anjoni n. sp.] Riickert, J. *'94. Zur Eireifung bei Copepoden. Merkel-Bonnet's Anat. Hefte, I. Abt., XII. Heft, pp. 2G1-351, Taf. XX.-XXY.; Abstract, Zool. Centralbl., II. .Jalirg., Xo. 10, pp. 291-295. Russki. *'89. Le fanne pclagi(]iie du lac de Kal)ane. [French title of Russian work.] Trav. Soc. imp. des nat. de I'Univ. de Kasan, T. XIX. Sars, G. O. '62. (See Article II.) '63. (See Article II.) '64. (See Article II.) '86. Crustacea. II. Den norske Xordbavs-Expedition 1870-78, pp. 76-79. Christiana. '89. On some Fresh-water Ostracoda and Copepoda raised from drj^ Australian mud. Forh. i Vidensk.-Selskab. i Christiania, pp. 1-77, Pi. I.-VIII. (Pis. I. and II. colored.) '95. On some South African Entomostraca raised from dried mud. Vidensk.-Selskab. Skrifter, I. Math.-naturw. Klasse, 1895, Xr. 8, pp. 1-55. 8 Pis. [Pa)'nch'a]itornus lamellattis^ n. gen. and n. sp.] '96. On a new Fresh-water Ostracod, Stenocypris chevreuxi^ G. O, Sars, with notes on some other Entomostraca raised from dried mud from Algeria. Arch. f. Math, og Xaturvid. Kristiania. 27 pp., 3 Pis. '97. Pelagic Entomostraca of the Caspian Sea. Extrait de 1' Annuaire du MusC-e Zoologique de TAcademie Imperiales des Sci. de St.- Pctersl)Ourg, 1897. 73 pp., 8 Pis. Schmeil, O. '89. Uber den Diaptomus des salzigen Sees [Diaptomva richanli n. sp.). Zool. Auz., XII. Jahrg., No. 323, pp. 646-6J9. '91. (See Article II.) '92. Deutschlands freilcbende Siisswasser-Copepoden. T. Teil : Cj^- clopidic. Bibliotlieca Zoologica, Heft 11. 191 pp., 8 Pis. '94. (See Article II.) '94a. Einige neue Ilarpacticidenformen des Siisswassers. Zeltschr. f. Xaturwis.sensch., Bd. LXVIL, pp. 341-350. '95. Xeue Spaltfusskrebse der Fauna der Provinz Saclisen. Zeitschr. f. Xaturwissensch., Bd. LXVIII., pp. 12(5-130. XortJi Amer'u-an Species of Diaptoiniis. 201 '96. Deutsclilands freilebeiide Siisswasser-Copepoden. III. Teil : CentropafjidjB. Abt. I. u. II. Bibl. Zool. Heft 21, Lfg. I. u. II., Taf. I.-XII.. 3 Fig. in Text; Abstract, Biol. Centralbl., XVI. Bd., Nr. 23, pp. 845-847. '97. Deutschlands freilebende Siisswasser-Copepoden. Xachtrag. Bibl. Zool. Heft 21, Xachtrag, pp. 145-188, Taf. XIII., XIV. Scott, T, *'94. Diaptomus se)7-ico?"n?s Lilljebor"^, inLoebsiu Barraand North Uist. Ann. Scot. Xat. Hist., Oct., pp. 258, 259. Scourfield, D. J. '93. (See Article II.) '94. Entomostraca and the Surface-film of Water. Journ. Linn. Soc, Vol. XXV.. Zoology, Xo. 158, pp. 1-1 9, Pis. I., 11. '95. A Preliuiinary Accoinit of the Entomostraca of Xorth Wales. Journ. Quekett Micr. Club, Vol. VI., Ser. II., Xo. 37. pp. 127-143, Pi. VIII. '97. Verzeichniss der Entomostraken von Plon. Forschungsber. a. d. Biol. Stat, zu Plon. Theil V., pp. 180-183. Stuttgart. Seligo. A. '90. (See Article II.) Siebold, C. Th. *'39. Beithige zur Xaturgeschichte der wirbellosen Thiere. II. Vber das Begattungsgeschjift des Cyclops castor. Neueste Schrift. Nat. Ges. Danzig, Bd. III., Heft 2, pp. 36-50, Taf. 2. Fig. 41-44. (Ubersetzt in: Ann. Sci. Nat. Paris, T. XIV., pp. 26-38, Taf. V. Xach Giesbrecht.) \_FiiJe Schmeil.] Sowinsky, W. '91. (See Article II.) *'91a. Sur la nouvelle espece du genre Diaptomus, trouvee dans le lac Ribnoye-Ozero pros de la ville Stawropol. [French title of Rus- sian article.] Mem. de la Soc. des natural, de Kiew, T. XL, Part I. 4 pp., 1 Fig. in text. Stack. Th. '93. Beitriige zur Biologic des grossen ^loosseedorfsees. Mitt. d. naturf. Gesellsch. in Bern, Jahrg. 1893, pp. 20-73. Stuhlniann, F. '91. Beitriige zur Fauna central-afrikanischer Seen. Zool. Jalirb., Abteil. f. System., Bd. V., pp. 924-926. Szekely, B. *'82. Tanulmanyok a Diaptomus petefejludescnek else* phasisairol a blastoderma fellcpeseig. Kolozsvart. 202 lUinols State Lahoratori/ of Natural History. Thallwitz, J. *'91. Die Siisswasser-Calanideii Deutschlands. Nat. Rundschau. Bd. YL. pp. 131,132. Berlin. Turner, C. H. '92. (See Article 11.) Ulianin, W. N. *'74. Ciadooeren und Copepoden einiger Seen des centralen Euss- lands. Schriften d. Gesellsch. v. Freunden der Naturwissensch., etc., zn Moskau, Bd. X., Abt. II., pp. 78-81. '75. Crustaceen von Turkestan. Reise A. P. Fedtschenko'sin Turk- estan. [German title of Russian article.] Schrift. de Gesellsch. v. Freunden der Xaturwissensch., etc., zu Moskau, Bd. XI., Abt. VI., Copepoden, pp. 22-41, Taf. Vl.-Xll. Underwood, L. M. '86. (See Article II.) Vejdovsky, F. '82. Thierische Organismen der Brunnengewiisser von Prag. 66 pp., 8 Pis. Prag. Villepoix, R. M. de '88. (See Article II.) Vosseler, J. '86. (See Article II.) '89. (See Article II.) '91. Die Krebsfauna unserer Gewilsser. In Zacharias's "Die Thier- und Pllanzenwelt des Siisswassers,"' Bd. 1., pp. 323-3S0. 6 Fig. Leip- zig. Weber, Max. '92. On the Fresh-water Crustacea of the Indian Archipelago with Observations on the Fauna of Fresh-water in General. Ann. Nat. Hist., Ser. 6, Vol. Xn., pp. 237-253. '92a. Die Siisswasser-Crustaceen des Indischen Archipels, nebst Be- merkungen tiber die Slisswasser-Fauna ini Allgemeinen. Zool. Er- geb. einer Reise in Niederliind. Ost-Ind., pp., 528-571, Taf. XXX. Leiden. Westwood, J. O. *'36. Cyclops. Partington's Cyclopedia. Nat. Hist. Wierzejski, A. '82. Materyjaly do fauny jezior tatrzanskich. [Materials for the Fauna of the Karpathian Lakes.] Copepoden. Sprawozd. Kom. fiz. Akad. Umiej., T. XVI., pp. 233, 234, Taf. 111. XortJi .iiiicy'ican SjK'cics of Diaptoiitus. 203 *'83. Zar3S faiinj' stawow tatrzaiiskich. Pamietn, Tow. tatrz., T. VIII. Krakau. '87. O Krajowych skorupiakach z rodzinj' Calanida\ [On the na- tive Copepoda of the Faioilj- Calanida'.] Kozpr. i Sprawozd. Wydz. mat.-przyr. Akad. Umiej. Krakow, T. XVI. 13 pp., 1 PL '95. Prze^jlad fanny skorupiakow galicj'jskich. [Kev'iew of the Crnstacean Fauna of Galicia.] (See Article II. for citation.) Wille. N. '96. Mitteilunoen aus der biolos^ischen Gesellsehaft in Christiania. Biol. Centralbl., XVI. Bd., >Jr. 3, pp. 124-126. Zacharias, O. *'85. Studien iiber die Fauna des Grossen und Kleiiien Teichs im Riesenoebirge. Zeitschr. f. wiss. Zool., Bd. XLL, pp. 4S3-51G, Taf. XXVI. '87. (See Article II.) '87a. Zur Eutomostrakenfauna der Umgebung von Berlin. Biol. Centralbl., Bd. VII., Nr. 5, pp. 137-139. '87b. (See Article 11.) '88. (See Article II., 'S8a.) '88a. Die Tierwelt der Eifelmaare. P.iol. Centralbl., VIII. Bd., Nr. 18, p. 574. '88b. i'ber die geographische Verbreitung des Genus Diaptomus. Biol. Centralbl., Vlll. Bd., Nr. 18, p. 575. '89. Bericbt iiber eine Zoologische Exkursion an die Kraterseen der Eifel. Biol. Centralbl., IX. Bd., Xos. 2, 3, pp. 56-64, 76-80. '90-'91. Uber ein interessantes Kapitel der Seeukunde. Biol. Cen- tralbl., X. Bd., Xr. IS. pp. 123-128. '93. Fauna des grossen Plihier Sees. Forschungsber. aus der Biol. Station zu P]r)n, Theil I., pp. 3-13; Extract, Biol. Centralbl., XIII. Bd., Xr. 11 u. 12, pp. 377-382. '94. Faunistlsche Mitteilungen. Fauna des grossen Ploner Sees. Forschung.sber. aus der Biol. Stat, zu Plon, Teil. II., pp. 57-66. '95. Uber die horizontale und vertikale Verbreitung limnetischer Organismen. Forschungsber. aus der Biol. Stat, zu Plon. Theil III., pp. 118-128. Extract, Biol. Centralbl., XIII. Bd., Xr. 11 u. 12, pp. 377-382. '95a. Statistische Mitteilungen aus der Biologischen Station am grossen Ploner See. Zool. Anz., XVIIl. Jahrg., pp. 28,70,87, 125, 140, 190, 256, 305, 367, 414, 448. '96. Quantitative Untersuchungen iiber das Linuioplankton. 64 pp. Berlin. 204 Illinois State Lahoratory of Natural History. '97. Biologische Beobachtungen an den Versuclisteichen des Schles. Fischerei-vereins zu Trachenberg. Forschungsber. a. d. Biol. Stat, zii Pliin, Theil V., pp. 10-28. Stuttgart. Zaddach, E. G. '44. Synopseos Crustaceorum Prussicorum Prodromus. Dissertatio Zoologica. 47 pp. Regiomouti (Konigsberg). Zenker, W. '54. (See Article II.) '54a. System der Crustaceen. Arch. f. Naturgesch., XX. Jahrg,, Bd. I., pp. 108-118. '54b. Critik der Erichson'schen Gliedmassentheorie. Arch. f. Na- turgesch., XX. Jahrg., Bd. I., pp. 118-138. Zograf, N. *'96. Essai d'explication de Torigine de la fanne des lacs de la Rus- sie d'f:]urope. Compt. rend, des seance dn troisieme congrt'S internat. de Zool., Leyde, lG-21 sept., 1895, pp. 183-195. Leyde. Abstract, Zool. Centralbl., III. Jahrg., No. 14, pp. 481-483. Zopf, W. '95. Cohn's Hiiraatochrom ein Sammelbegrifl". Biol. Centralbl., XV. Bd., Nr. 11, pp. 417-427. Zschokke, F. '90. (See Article II.) '90a. (See Article II.) '91. (See Article TI.) *'91a. Die zweite zoologische Excursion an die Seen des Rhiitikon. Verhandl. Xaturf. Gesellsch. Basel, Bd. IX., 2 Teil, pp. 425-508; Abstract, Journ. Roy. Micr. Soc, 1892, p. 194. '94. Die Tierwelt der Juraseen. Rev. Suisse de Zool. et Ann. du Mus. d'hist. nat. de Geneve, T. II., Liv. II., pp. 349-376, PI. XIV. '94a. Die Fauna hoch gelegener Gebirgsseen. Ein Beitrag zur Kenntniss der Vertikalen Verbreitung niederer Tiere. Verb. d. Naturf. Gesellsch. in Basel, Bd. XI., Heft 1, pp. 3G-133, Taf. 1. '95. Die biologische Station zu Plun nach den Forschungsberichten. Teil II. u. III. Biol. Centralbl., XV. Bd., Nr. 10, pp. 408-415. Nortlt, A)nerlcaii S2)ecics of Diaptomns. 205 EXPLANATION OF PLATES. Plate XXI. Fio. 1. Diaptnmus sicilis, fifth feet of male. X 280. Fig. 2. Fifth feet of female of same (minus one outer ramus). X 280. Fig. 3. Last thoracic segment and abdomen of female of same. X 140. Plate XXII. Fig. 1, Diaptomns pisclna\ fifth feet of male. Fig. 2. Fifth foot of female of same (Portage Slough specimen). X 280. Fig. 3. Last thoracic segment and abdomen of female of same. X 140. Fig. 4. Fifth foot of female (Yellowstone Park specimen). X 280. Plate XXIII. Fig. 1-5. Diaptorims sanguineus, second basal segment of right fifth foot of male. X 210. Fig. 6-8. Terminal segments of right male antenna of same. X 210. Plate XXIY. Fig. 1, 2. Diaptomus sanguineus, first abdominal segment of female, seen from the side. X 110. Fig. 3. Last thoracic and first abdominal segments of female of same. X 110. Fig. 4. Fifth feet of male of same. X 210. Fig. 5, 6. Dorsal outline of female of same, showing hump, x 110. Plate XXV. Fig. 1, 2. Diaptomus sanguineus, fifth foot of female. X 240. Fig. 3, 4. Right fifth foot of male of same. X 210. Fig. 5. Fifth feet of male of same (variant). X 210. Plate XXYI. Fig. 1. Diaptomus slioslione, last thoracic segment and abdomen of female. X SO. Fig. 2. Fifth foot of female of same. X 280. Fig. 3. Abdomen of male of same. X 128. Plate XXVII. Fig. 1. Diaptomus lintoni, fifth feet of male. X 280, Fig. 2. Diaptomus jyallidus, Mth foot of female. X 280. Fig. 3. Fifth feet of male of same. X 280. Fig. 4. Diaptomus aWuquerquensis, fifth feet of male. X 400. 206 lUnwis State Laboratory of XatiDud History Plate XXYIII. Fig. 1. Diaptomus re/ghardi, fifth feet of male. X 400. Fig. 2. Diaptomus staijnalis, rioht antenna of male. X 80. Plate XXIX.* Fig. 1. Diaptomus oregonensis. fifth feet of male. X 240. Fig. 2. Fifth foot of female of same. X 300. Fig. 3. Diaptomvs signicaiida. fifth feet of male. X 200. Fig. 4. Ten^iinal segments of right antenna of male of same. X 200. Fig. 5. Fifth foot of female of same. X 200. Fig. 6. Last thoracic segment and abdomen of female of same. X 100. Plate XXX.* Fig. 1. Diaptomus franciscanus. last thoracic segment and abdomen of female. X 40. Fig. 2. Terminal segments of right antenna of male of same. X 200. Fig. 3. Fifth pair of feet of male of same. X 200. Fig. 4. Fifth foot of female of same. X 200. Fig. 5. Diaptomus minutus, fifth foot of female. X 300. Fig. 6. Fifth foot of male of same. X 300. Fig. 7. Terminal segments of right antenna of male of same. X 300. Fig. 8. Last thoracic segment and abdomen of female of same. X 250. Plate XXXI. Fig. 1.* Diaptomus trybomi, terminal segments of right male antenna. X 100. Fig. 2.* Jvast thoracic segment and abdomen of female of same, seen from right side. X 96. Fk;. 3. The same, seen from above. X 140. Fig. 4.* Fifth pair of feet of male of same. X 210. Fig. 5.* Fifth foot of female of same. X 240. Plate XXXII. Fig. 1. Diaptomus ashlaJidi, fifth pair of feet of female (a variant). X240. Fig. 2. Fifth foot of female of same. X 240. Fig. 3. Fifth ])air of feet of male of same. X 240. Fig. 4. Anterior fifteen segments of right antenna of male of same. X 240. *After de Guenie and Richard, '89b. North American Sju'cies of Diajytomus. 207 Plate XXXIII. Fig. 1. Diaptomus mississippiensis, last thoracic segment and abdomen of male. X 25(i. Fi<;. 2. Fifth foot of female of same. X 256. Fig. 3. Fifth pair of feet of male of same. X 256. Fig. 4. Abdomen of female of same seen from below (Prof. Marsh's specimen). X 256. Plate XXXIY. Fig. 1. Diaptomus clavipes. right fifth foot of male (inner ramus want- ing). X 280. Fig. 2. Right antenna of male of same. X 140. Fig. ;}. Fifth foot of female of same. X 400. Plate XXXV. Fig. 1. Diaptomus clavipes, fifth feet of male. X 280. Fig. 2. Last thoracic segment and abdomen of female of same. X 140. INDEX. (Synonyms Amphaskaiuliia, 102. Candacida'. 104. (•entropaoidas 97, 101, 102, 103. Centropa^ina, 103. Cyclops, 100, 100, 141. Cyclops. 97, 106, 132. lomjicornis, 130. Cycloj'sina, 97, 105. Diaptomus, 102, 103, 105. albuquerqiiensis, 98, 113, 115, 146, 176, 183. ambiguus, 177. armatvs, 133, 135, 136. • ashlandi,98,100. Ill, 120,124, 158, 167, 183. bacillifer, 107. birgei, 99. 108, 117, 172. caroli, 181. castor, 98, 106. . castor, 130. elavipes,98,108,119,127,178,184 cct'ruleus, 107. deitersi, 99. drieschi, 99. eiseiii. 98, 110, 115, 162, 166,183. franciscanus, 98, 110. 118, 132, 160,166,182,183. fresnanus, 176, 178. gibber, 99. giijanteus, 138. gracilis, 98, 173, 182. graciloides, 98. incoiigriiens. 99. kentXLckyensis, 97, 130, 132. leptopus, 97, 112, 117, 125, 127, 130, 135, 181. 182. lintoni, 113,118, 127,134,160,182 lonyirornis, 132. var. leptopus, 130, 132. var. siinilis, 132. 162, 182. minnetonka. 133, 135, 136, 138. minutus, 98, 106, HI, 116, 129, 134, 156, 183. mississlppiensis, 98, 109, 122, 149, 173, 184. novamexicaiius, 99, 111, 116, 149, 183. oregonensis, 109, 119. 124.151, 169, 171, 183. in Italics.) Diaptomus — continued. pallidus. 100, 108, 121, 124. 137, 144, 156, 183. var. sicilis, 122. piscinre, 98, 109.116,118, 125, 127. 181. 182. reighardi, 98, 109, 121, 169,184. roil bail i, 166. salinus. 99. sanguineus, 97, 112, 117, 12&, 133, 160, 166, 183. serricornis. 162. shoshone,110,110, 141,164,183. sicilis, 97, 100, 111, 121, 122, 145, 155, 169, 182. var. hnperfrvi)iA Moore Hart, Artist. SEP 20 \99^ Article IV. — The XortU A)iicricv. '22() Illinois Stiiff Tj(ihi)}-(itt)yii of Xiitiiral Jlistori/. the species in question ilitfer, however, so considerahly in these two articles that, as Schmeil ('08) says, nothing certain can l)e said of this species until Herrick declares himself as to wliicdi of the two sets of drawings are correct. Schmeil regards Herrick's form as possil)ly a new species. The recent dis- covery of a new species of -this genus, Euri/fcniord lierdmani I. C. Thompson and A, Scott, in the St. Lawrence Eiver and Gnlf removes all douht as to the presence of the genus in American waters.* Of the three genera treated in this paper, OspliriDitictiiit, containing a single species, and Episrlmrd, containing three' , are, st) far as now known, confined strictly to North America and are strictly fresh-water in their hahitat. ()sj)]t,r(iiiticuni is ordinarily found in shallow or stagnant lakes and ponds (Forhes) or in running water (Herrick), while Kpisclnird occurs, as a rule, in deep clear lakes. The genus LimnocidanuH is peculiar in its hahitat. One of the two species, L. i^lnoisis Poppe, from China, is, so far as known, a strictly fresh-water form, while the other, L. nuimirus Sars, although found as yet in America in freshwater only, occurs in Europe and Asia in l)()fh fresh- and salt-water lakes and in the ocean. Since there are only these two species known, it was thought hest to treat hotli in this paper. 1j. (jriiiuddii de Guerne is re- garded l)y the writer as a synonym of /.. iinicniniH Sars*, for reasons given in the discussion of the latter species. A l)rief discussion of the structural similarities and differ- ences indicative of the relationships of the genera Osphranti- ciim, Lii)iiio<-(d(iin(s, Diaptonins, and Kpischura may properly precede this paper, special attention heing given to characters whicli are regarded as of generic or specific value. . Gieshrecht, in his "Monograph" ('1)2), gives sx)ecial rank to the structure of the first pair of antenna as a distinguish- ■i-See "On the FlanUtou nollected continuously during two Traverses of the Xortli Atliuuic in the Sunnuer of 1897; with Descriptions of New Copepothi: and an Ap- ])endix on Uredsing in Puget Sound." By W . A. Herdman, I. ('. Thompson, and An- drew Seoit. Trans. Liverpool Biol. Soc, S'ol. Xn. (1S97), p. T9. ■\E- fluvialilis Herrick is not considereil one of these. iThe Z lologisches Oentratb/att (-hihr^^.. HI., p]). 481-4S3) contains a review of an article by N. Zograf entitled " Essai d'Kxplication de I'orlgine de la Faune des lacs de laHussie d'Kurope"in which a reference occurs to L. macronyx O. (), S. This is (M'obably an error, since it is the only reference to a species of that name which 1 iiHve been able to tind. X(/itli A)turn-iiit C'ciitrop(ig'ul«'. 2'27 ing character in the CopepixJa. If this he taken as a hasis of chissification here, O.yiJn-diiticiiiii, with its 23-segmeiited antenn;t, wouhl form a gronj) l)y itself, while Lhnnocalanus, DiapfoiitKs, and Kpl^ichuid, with their 2 5 -segmented antcnnsr would constitute another group. Osphnutt'icnm seems to he the most primitive of the Amer- ican Centro])(tf/i(1(e, the fifth legs especially heing less differ- entiated than in any of the other genera. This is particularly true of the female, in which all of the legs are biramose, each ramus consisting of three segments. In the male the left fifth leg is similar to the preceding legs, hut the right one has a two-segmented outer ramus, the second segment being ap- parently formed by the coalescence of the second and third segments. In both sexes the inner rami of all the pairs of legs are alike. Liunioealanufi apparently approaches most closely to Os- plirntitlruni, the fifth pair of legs of the female being very similar in general structure to those of 0>>plir<(ntlcu))i, as is perhaps most strikingly illustrated in the case of L. iiKicni- rus Sars and 0. lahyoiiectnm Forbes. In I/nnnocalanu^ both rami of the four anterior pairs of legs in both sexes are three- segmented and but slightly modified, as are also those of the fifth pair of legs of the female ; but in the latter the second segment of the outer ramus is produced on the inner margin into a hook-like process, as in Osplirant'icnm. The inner rami of the fifth pair of legs of the male are still three- segmented and similar to those of the preceding legs, but the outer rami are modified and are two-, or indistinctly three-, segmented. I>i((pt()niiis is perhaps next in respect to modification. In this genus all the legs are biramose, but the first pair con- sists of a three-segmented outer, and a two-segmented inner, ramus. The following three pairs have* both rami three-seg- mented. In the female the fifth pair of legs has a two- or, more rarely, three-segmented outer ramus, and a one- or, occasionally, two-segmented inner ramus. In the male the inner ramus is one- or, rarely, two-segmented, while the outer ramus of the right leg is three-segmented and that of the left leg two-segmented. 228 lUUio'iH State Luluynitorii of Ndtiiral Jl'tHtorii. In EphcliKra, as in the other three genera, the cephalotho- rax is six-segmented. All of the swimming legs have a three-segmented outer, hut a one- segmented inner, ramus. In the female the inner ramus has entirely disappeared in the fifth pair of legs, and the outer ramus is two-segmented. In the male also the fifth pair of legs are wdthout inner rami, and the outer ramus of the right leg is two- or three-segmented, that of the left leg three-segmented. A peculiarity of this genus is the modification of the abdomen of the male into a clasping organ. The abdomen of the female is also modified in at least one species (htciistris). So much for the relationships indicated by the structures considered. According to the above, Osj)]ira)itlcuni must be regarded as the most primitive form, Ejit-srltura as the most modified, and Linuiocdldiuix aiul I>iitipto- ■uiiii^, and Ephrh.niut the spermatophore persists for some time ; but I have not seen a single female Limnocalainis with a spermatophore, although according to Giesbrecht the fertili- zation by means of a spermatophore is about the only cliarae- teristit- which all Copcpoda have in common.* The material at my command for the preparation of this paper has been complete ; that is to say, I have had si^eci- mens of all the known species of the genera treated, and access to the most recent literature. The collections exam- ined belong in great part to the Illinois State Lal)oratory of Natural History, in part to Prof. Frank Smith, of the Univer- sity of Illinois, and in part to myself. . The following localities are represented : Norway, the Caspian Sea, Lake Sitai and the Whangpoo Eiver in China, Newfoundland, and the States *" The sexually niftture iniliviiltials are to some extent so transformed by para- sitism that unless the fertilization by means of spennatophores be excepted they seem to have no characteristic common to all which would at the same time distinguish the oi'der dopepoda from the other orders of Entomostraca-'' (Giesbrecht, 'Oi, p. 4U.; Xoiili AxuTKuiii ( 'ciitrojxiriithf. '229 of Illinois, Indiana, Ohio, Mieliij^an, ^\ asliiugton, Oregon, Montana, Wyoming, Idaho, and Nevada. Through the kindness of Professor Smith I was able to examine collections from Lake George and Lake James in Steuhen Connty, Ind., in which I found specimens of Epis- rhura JacKstri-s and 1 >iiipti>iiii(s orcfjonensis. Mr. Chancey Juday, Curator of Collections, University of Indiana, kindly sent me collections from Tippecanoe Lake, Eagle Lake, and Turkey Lake, in Indiana, in which occurred Epischura laciin- trU, Diapto)nuii slc'ilh, 1>. ori'fionen-sis, and D. siciloides. I also acknowledge my indebtedness to Prof. G. 0. Sars, who kindly furnished me with specimens of L'nnnordlaniis grimald't'i, thus enabling me to compare them with L. iinicrurus — also fur- nished by him to the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History; to Herr S. A. Poppe, for specimens of LimnocahiniiH ■"ihtensi^ ; to Professor Lillejeborg for Eplschiira Jievadensis ; and to Dr. C. A. Kofoid, Superintendent of the Illinois Biolog- ical Station at Havaiux, to whom I owe thanks for his many kindnesses during my stay at the Station in July, 1896, and while at the University. No illustrations accompany this paper, since the species treated may ])e identiiied by figures already published. OSPHRANTICUM FoKBES. Osphranticum. Forbes. 'S2a, p. 04."t. rotomoichetof*, Herrick, '82. p. 2,5. Osphrantlcwn, Herrick, "84, p. 134. Osphranticum, Herrick, '87, p. 12. Osphranticum, de Guerne et Richard, "89b. p. IJ'J. Osphranticum, Herrick and Turner, '!)5, p. 85. Cephalothorax compact, six-segmented, the first two seg- ments confluent above, the last segment produced into a bluntly-rounded lobe on each side. Abdomen (furca in- cluded) composed of five segments in the female, of six in the male. Unreal rami hairy on the inner margins ; armed with live plumose setaj, the second from within the longest, and with a delicate smooth seta on the inner margin of the *Sj>elled Fotamoichetor in Ilerriek's siibseiiuent references. 230 lUiuo'ni State Tjiihurdtori/ of Ndtiinil nhtovji. dorsal surface. First pair of antenna:' 23-seomente(l ; right male antenna geniculate between the 18th and 19th seg- ments, and the 19th and 20th segments ankylosed. Second pair of antenna^ mandibles, and first, second, and third pairs of maxilbe as in Viaptomus, l)ut stouter. All the swim- ming legs biramose, with three-segmented inner and outer rami ; armed with stout seta-. In the female the legs of the fifth pair are alike, biramose, the rami three-segmented, the inner ramus the shorter. Fifth pair of legs of male bira- mose, dissimilar. Both rami of left leg three-segmented, the inner ramus the shorter. Outer ramus of right leg two- segmented, the inner three-segmented and like the inner ramus of the left leg. Egg-sac obovate. Osphranticum labronectum Forbes. O^pJirantirum lahronrrtHiu, Fovhii$.'S2, p. 645. PI. VI 11., Fig-. 24. 28. 2i); PI. IX., Fig. 1,2. ^.5, 7, 9. Potomoiclietor* fucosns, Herrick, '82. p. 224, PI. II., V\g. 12-14: PI. 111., Fig. 1-8, 13, 14. OspJiranticum hihronertiun, Herrick, '84, p. 134,PJ. <^)2, Fig. 1-8.13, 14. OspJiranticum labronectum, Herrick, "87. p. 12. Osphranticum labronectum, deGuerneet Richard. 89b, ji. 14!), Fig. 1. 2. Osphranticum labronectuin, Herrick and Turner, "95, p. 8G. PI. XII., Fig. 1-8, 13, 14; PI. LIX.. Fig. 7, 8. Of medium size, body compact, widest before the middle. Cephalothorax comi)osed of six segments decreasing gradu- ally in length from before backward; first two segments con- fluent al)ove, the last segment slightly produced at the angles into l)luntly-rounded points, but unarmed. Alidomen (furca included) composed of five segments, decreasing in length from before Ijackward. Furcal rami, how^ever, slightly longer than the i)recediDg segment and about twice as long as wide ; hairy on the inner margin and armed with five long plumose sette of which the second from within is the broadest and longest, the middle one l)eing next in length, and the other three subequal ; dorsal surface of each ramus armed near the inner apical angle with a delicate smooth seta. Abdo- men of male composed of six segments : the first shorter •'•Spelled Fotamoichetor in Heriick's subsequent references. Xortli Arito'icdii ('ciifro/xiiiKhr. 'I'iM fluiii any of the others except the iifth, which is the shortest; the second, third, and fourth segments decreasing in h'ngth in reguhir order ; the st'cond slightly shorter than the furcal rami, Avhich are armed as in the female. Antennse 23-segmented, extending about to the end of tlie cephalothorax, or barely surpassing it. Pdght male antenna geniculate between the 18th and 19th segments; 19th and •20th segments ankylosed ; six segments preceding the genicu- lation rather thickly swollen ; peiniltimate segment produced at the inner apical angle into a Itroad bluntly-rounded process extending slightly beyond the end of the segment. Fifth i)air of legs of male l)iramose. Second basal segment of right leg armed above the middle of the outer margin with a delicate hair slanting ni)ward. First segment of outer ramus slightly longer than the width at the base, irregularly trapezoidal, the outer margin forming the longest side ; armed at the outer apical angle with a stout spine about as long as the segment itself and i)rovided on each margin with a nar- row hyaline lamella; just within this, another very minute spine. Second segment irregular in form, the proximal third subquadrate, al)out as wide as the preceding segment, pro- duced at the inner apical angle in the form of a rather large cushion-like pad sparsely covered with delicate hairs ; distal two thirds subquadrate, about half as wide as the proxinnil third, provided on the inner margin with delicate hairs, and armed a short distance above the middle of the outer margin with two spines, one large and one small, similar to those on the preceding segment ; apex of segment armed with three spines fully as long as the segment itself, the outer two straight, the inner curved inward slightly, and each of them provided with a hyaline lamella, the edges of which seem to be plumose. Just posterior to tiie inner apical seta is a short slender spine. First segment of inner ramus of right leg irregular in form, about as long as wide, provided on the inner margin with a few fine hairs. Second segment slightly wider than the pre- ceding, barrel-shaped, and slightly longer than wide; pro- vided on the inner margin with a few fine hairs, and at the 232 7//i»o/.s' State JjaltDvntorii of Xatiinil Uistofi/. outer apical angle with a long delicate plumose seta. Third segment slightly narrower than the second ; margins sulcate, armed with six subequal plumose seta- similar to the seta on the preceding segment, of which three are apical, two are on the outer margin, and one is on the inner. The seta' are so placed as to form two groups of three each. Basal segments of left tifth leg like those of right leg. First segment of outer ramus similar to the corresponding segment of the outer ramus of the right leg and similarly armed, but not quite so broad. Second segment subquadrate, about one and a half times as long as wide ; outer apical angle armed as in the preceding segment ; inner margin provided with a few delicate hairs. Third segment considerably narrower than the second and slightly shorter; armed at the apex with two lamellate seta^ and a short sharp spine. Inner ramus like that of right leg. Fifth i)air of legs of female l)iramose. Second basal seg- ment provided on the outer margin, a short distance above the middle, with a delicate hair slanting upward. First seg- ment of outer ramus subcpiadrate, slightly broader than long ; armed at the outer distal angle wdth a long lamellate spine, and on each side of this with a very minute smooth spine. Second segment somewhat shorter and narrower than the preceding ; armed at the outer distal angle like the lirst seg- ment, except that the inner of the small spines is wanting; inner apical angle produced into a long, moderately stout lamellate hook, shaped about like the blade of a pruning knife; both margins provided Avith a few tine hairs. Third segment slightly longer tlian the second, about twice as long as wide ; armed at the outer apical angle with a plunmsely lamellate spine almost as long as the segment itself, and at the apex with two similar subequal spines (about twice the length of the lamellate spine) and a short smooth spine ; outer mar- gin provided witli a few long line hairs; inner margin sulcate and armed with four slender subequal plumose seta' al»out as long as the segment. Inner ramus of tifth leg of female three-segmented, the first segment irregular in shape, wdth a somewhat ])rojecting Xortli A iiicricdii < '('iitrojHU/iihr. '233 inner apical angle. Second segment subquadrate, about one and a half times as long as wide; armed at the outer apical angle with a plumose spine almost twice as long as the seg- ment, and on the inner margin with a few fine hairs. Third segment slightly longer and narrower than the preceding ; irregularly triangular, with sulcate margins and truncate apex ; armed on the outer margin with two long, slender, plu- mose settle, at the apex with two similar seta; and a short smooth spine, and on the inner margin with one seta similar to those already mentioned and one shorter lamellate seta, and provided on the upper half with a few fine hairs. Length of female, 1.703 mm.; that of male, 1.3G2 mm. The above description was prepared from specimens col- lected in the summer of 1896 at the Illinois Biological Station, at Havana, 111. ; from type specimens ; and from other State Lal)oratory material collected at various times and places, mostly in Illinois. The single species of this exclusively North American genus was first described by Herrick in a paper read before the Minnesota Academy of Sciences .in 1870, but which, owing to a fire, was not published until 1882. The descrip- tion then ai)])etoiiuis in that they are more regular. The motions of these three genera might perhaps be expressed by tele- graphic symbols as follows : Cifdops, ; D'nipto- iniis, ; and O^jthydiit'iciDii, ■ . (J.y)Jir(()ificiim swims equally well on the dorsal or ventral surface, seeming, however, to prefer the former position. As in Diaptomus, the anterior end is ele- vated in swimming, and the antenna; are actively employed. Sometimes it will turn backward somersaults, going over and over in the water, l)ut I have seen this done only when indi- viduals were swimming on the back. When startled they would dart to the l)ottom, hide for an instant under a bit of debris, and then make another dash, repeating the perform- ance until they deemed themselves out of danger. Since O. lahroncctum is the only species known, no key will be required. LiMNOCALANUS G. 0. Saes. LimnocaJanus, Sars, '(l-i, p. '2'li'>. Centropagi'S. de Guerne. 'S(j, pi^. 27()-2S5. Body long and narrow, the front armed with two book-like processes. Cephalothorax widest at the middle, composed of six well-defined segments ; last thoracic segment not pro- duced laterally but slightly projecting posteriorly and armed on each side with a minute blunt spine. Abdomen slender; in the female composed (furca incduded) of four {macritrus) or five (shiensis) segments. Furcal rami very long, hairy on the inner margin ; armed with five stout plumose seta? (the second from within the longest), and one slender seta (plu- mose in sinensis), shorter than the rest, on the dorsal surface. 28() Illnio'ix Stiite Lithnrdtnyii of Xdliiral Ilhtorti. near the inner margin and opposite the outermost of the other seta^ First pair of antenna; shorter than the hody, 25-segmented, the last segment very small. Eight male antenna geniculate between the 18th and 19th segments, each of which is armed with a hyaline lamina. Outer ramus of second pair of antennne seven-segmented* and armed with very long seta-. Mandil)les produced at the inferior extremity into nine teeth, of which the outer two are longer than the rest, the inner two slender and setiform ; palpus long and narrow, three-segmented, the last two segments very short, outer ramus snuill, armed with long seta^. First pair of maxilla? about as in Jt'utptonins. Second pair of maxillae robust, eight-segmented, the last segment proiluced into long stout claws; margins otherwise sparsely hairy: the falcate apex bare or armed with very small dense spines, Maxillipeds seven-segmented, much elongated and narrow, directed for- ward, and armed with immerous long seta-. All the swimming legs biramose. Both rami of the four anterior pairs of legs three- segmented, the inner shorter than the outer. Outer ramus of fifth pair of legs of female three-segmented ; armed within, on the second segment, with a very strong, cur\ed, hook-like process. Inner ramus as in the other legs. Outer ramus of right fifth leg of male two- {nin.ensis) or indistinctly three- {ntarriii'inii) segmented, the second segment produced into a stout hook-like process. Outer ramus of left fifth leg two-segmented, the second segment armed with a slender digitiform process. Inner rami three-segmented, alike, and similar to those of the preceding pair ()ii((cniri(s), or differing from one another (>;iu<'ns'is). Eye single, near the lower margin of the head. This genus was established l)y Dr. Sars in 1862 to receive *The parts of the generic description referring to the structure of the second pair of antenna', the mandibles, maxillse, maxillipeds, and the swimming legs are compiled from Sars I'li-i and '971, Xordqvist ('iS,s),and de Uuerneand Richard ('89b). In regard to the second jiair of antenna.- of macrurus the writers mentioned state that the "Uter ramus is seven-segmented, and Nordqvist says further that the suture between the second and third segments is indistinct, and figures the antenna with six segments. Sars ('97) says of griinatdii that the outer ramus is six-segmented and so figures it. After careful examination. I find no difference in the second pair of an- tenna'of macruru.i and grimaldii. the segmentation being ecjually distinct, each of the four spines lietween the second and last segments marking a segment. }\()rtli, Aiiu'iii-dii ('ciitnq)ti(/i(/ic. '237 a fresli-water centropa.uid closely resembling- the inavine genus Cdhoiii-s, aiid until 18(S9 L. inacnirns was the only rep- resentative known. In that year Poppe described (de Ciuerne et Richard, '891)) a new species, L. sinoisi^, from China. The latter, so far as now known, is a purely fresh-Avater form, and L. )n(icn(n(s was at first so regarded, but in Asiatic and European countries it has l)een found to occur in both fresh and salt water, — in America it has as yet been found only in fresh water, — and further search may show that /.. suicui^is, too, is common to liotli. L. iiKicrnnis is the only American representative of the genus, but it was deemed best to in- clude i^inoi-sis in this paper, thus making the revision of the genera treated complete. As already stated, the genus is represented liy only two species, nuiminis and niiiciisix. The former is common to America, Europe, and Asia, liaving been found in the river Jana (in East Siberia), in the Caspian Sea, in the x\rctic Ocean, in the lakes of northern Norway, Sweden, and Fin- land, and in the deeper northern lakes of North America ; the latter, siiieitsin, has been found only in eastern China. Marsh, in his "Limnetic Crustacea of Green Lake" ('97), records some observations on the habits of LtmKocdhdinx, and states that it is repelled by l)right light and high tempera- tures, and hence performs diurnal migrations which are more pronounced in cold weather. It seems to have tv.'o periods of maximum occurrence. May and November, but is found at all times, although never very abundantly. Li March and April most of the individuals are immature. To my knowledge Limnovcdanus has never been found with an egg-sac, differing in this respect from Osphnini'icnm and DiaptoviKS but agreeing with Kphchiird. The spermatophore, a slender tubular structure, adheres to the female for a con- siderable time after attachment. From a practical and economic standpoint Limnoralaniis is of importance as contributing to the first food of ('ore(ioinis cbijjciformis (Forbes '83a), of Lnhulcxf^ic^ >iicculiis^ , and probably of other lake fishes. *See Forbes "Oii the Food Ixclations of Fresh-water Fishes: a Sumraarv and Dis- cussion.' Hull. 111. State Lab. Nat. Uist.. Vol. II., Alt. Vin.. p. 5y,'. 1885. 238 Il'iiioi.s St((tc Lahonitorji of Ndtiiral HiHtovji. Since there are only two species of L'nuiiocdhnius known, the key is naturally very simple, and only the most striking differences are used. KF.Y TO THE SPECIES OP LIMNOCALANUS. Ba>iC(l on tJw ClKtractcrs of tlw Female. 1 (2). Hook-like process at inner apical angle of second segment of outer ramus of fifth leg armed for the entire length of hotli margins with fine symmetrical teeth. Outer apical angle of same segment armed with a stout serrate spine. Second basal segment without plumose seta at outer apical angle. VHicriirns. 2 (1). Hook-like process at inner apical angle of second segment of outer ramus of fifth leg armed on the en- tire inner margin with large teeth aiul on the outer margin with a few tine ones*. Outer apical angle of same segment without spine. Second hasal segment without ])lumose seta at outer apical angle. sillOts/.S. B((sed on the ('Jtdrdcterfi of the JSLde. 1 (2). Eight outer ramus of fifth legs 3-segmented (third segment indistinct). Hook-like process of second seg- ment of this ramus simply and but slightly curved ; provided with hyaline plate. Inner rami alike. luacriii'it^. 2 (1). Plight outer ramus of fifth legs clearly 2-segmented, Hook-like x'l'ocess of second segment of this ramus ■ somewhat sinuously curved. Inner rami unlike. >i'ine)iH'iH. Liranocalanus macrurus Saks. Limnocalanus mdcnrrns. Sars. "()2, p. 2"2(). lAinhocalanus inncnirxs., Forbes, ■82a, ]). 049. Cenlropagen grhnaldii, de Guenie, '86, j). 27(5. Liinnocalamis riiacniriis, Nordqvist, "88, p. 31. PI. 1.. Fii;-. 9-11; PI. II., Fi^. 1-5; PI. IIL. Fig. 1-4. *Iii (le (iuenie and Richards "Revision."" Fig. 5a in the description of Plate IV. .sliould be Fig. 15a. Xorth Aiitvricdii ('ciifrojKn/idc'. 239 Limnocalanns mncrurus, tie Giieriie et Richard, '89b. p. 77. PI. IV^., Fis- 5. 11, 12. Limnocalanus marrin-»ts anctus. Forbes, "90. p. 6-lS. Limnocalanus macrwus. Marsh, '93. p. 201, PI. IV., Fi^;. 7. Linmocahmus marriinis. Marsh. ''.)'•>. ]^. 11, PI. IV., Fi^j. 1, 2; PJ. V., Fi-. 1-5. TJnmocalanxs mafmrus. Ilorrick and Turner, "95. p. 49, PI. I.,Fi»;". 1— I. Limnocalanus ical angle. In the male the first and fourth abdominal segments are subequal, each about a fourth longer than the fifth, which is the shortest; second and third seg- ments subequal, each about twice as long as the fifth ; second, third, and fourth segments armed like the second abdominal segment of the female. Furcal rami proportioned about as in the female and similarly armed. Antennse 25-segmented ; right male antenna geniculate between the iHth and 19th segments. The armature of the segments is as follows: 1 and 10 have a short seta and two sense-hairs ; 2, a short seta and three sense-hairs ; 3, a short '240 Illhtoh State Lahnriitorii i>f XatiDud Tfistori/. seta iuid a sense-hair; 4, a short seta and a short spine; 5 and 7, a h^no- seta, a short one, and a sense-hair; 6, a short stunted spine; 8, a short hroad seta, a short curved spine, and a sense-hair; 9, a long In'oad seta and a sense-hair; 11, a short l)road seta and n sense-hair; 12, a sense-chib, a short curved spine, and a short broad seta; I'ii, a short broad seta and a sense-chib ; 14, a long seta and a short broad seta; 15, a sense-club and two short broad settB ; 16, a long- seta, a sense-clul^, and a short broad seta; 17, a sense-club, and abroad, pointed, knife-like process; 18, along sense- clul), and a hyaline lamella armed with teeth and extending almost the entire length of the segment; 19, 20, and 21 (ankylosed, the suture between 19 and 20 ol)scurely indi- cated), a blunt digitiform process at the inner apical angle, a seta, a l)lunt stunted sx)ine slightly below the middle, and a stunted, spine and a knife-like process still lower down ; 2*2 and 23, (ankylosed, suture indistinct), two seta? and a sense- hair; 24 two sette ; and 25 (very short), four sette and a sense-club. First Inisal segujent of right fifth leg of male subquadrate. Second l)asal segment al)0ut as ■wide as the first and about twice as long, provided at the outer apical angle with an in- conspicuous hyaline process. First segment of outer ramus considerably narrower than the second basal segment, less than twice as long as wide ; armed 'di the outer apical angle with a stout spine, .serrate on the inner margin, and on the inner margin below the middle witli a hyaline process. Sec- cond segment slightly narrower than the first ; produced at the inner apical angle into a hook-like process, which is armed on the outer margin, near the l)ase, with two sharp slender spines, and provided on both margins with a hyaline lamina having an appearance of transverse striation. The hook is fully three times as long as the segment itself. Inner ramus of right fifth leg three-segmented, the first segment irregular in form, about twice as long as wide; armed on almost the entire outer margin with a few fine hairs, and at the l)eginning of the distal third with a slender plumose seta. Second segment somewhat wider than the ^ordi A iiicr'icdii ( 'ciitrojxtfiido'. 241 tirst, aiul rather more than twice as long as wide ; armed on the outer margin witli a few hairs and a moderately stout phimose seta. Third segment ahout as wide as the second, with margins sulcate ; outer margin armed with two stout pkimose seta?, the proximal third with a few fine hairs ; inner margin and apex each armed with two stout plumose sette. First basal segment of left fifth leg subquadrate, having near the inner apical angle a large tubercle bearing a few rather long hairs. Second basal segment somewhat narrower than the preceding and not twice as long as wide ; armed at the outer apical angle with a prominent hyaline process. First segment of outer rannis subquadrate, rather more than twice as long as wide ; armed on the inner margin, at the be- ginning of the distal third, with a small process provided with hairs, and at the outer apical angle with a short l)lunt spine and a long stout movable spine serrate on the inner margin. Second and third segments ankylosed, forming one very long narrow* segment, slightly narrower than the first and more than tw'ice as long ; provided for the greater part of the inner margin with hairs, and armed on the outer margin with three spines, the upper two similar to the larger one of the preced- ing segment, the third sometimes serrate on both margins ; provided at the inner apical angle with a narrow digitiform process about half as long as the segment itself and serrate on the outer margin. Inner ramus of the left lifth leg very similar in every re- spect to that of the right leg. First basal segment of lifth leg of female of the ordinary form. Second l)asal segment about as wide as the first and barely twice as long as wide ; outer half of the distal margin produced in the form of an irregularly triangular flap extend- ing over the margin of the first segment of the outer ramus. First segment of outer ramus quadrate, about twice as long as wide ; armed at the outer apical angle with a stout spine serrate on the inner margin. Second segment somewhat nar- rower than the first and not quite twice as long as wide ; armed with hairs on l)oth margins and at the outer apical angle with one short spine and a longer, stouter one serrate 24'2 Illinoi>i State Tjdhnrdtorii of Natural Histori/. on the inner margins ; inner apical angle produced in the form of a moderately curved hook armed on both margins with spines or teeth. Third segment narrower than the second and fully three times as long as wide ; hairy on the upper part of both margins, and armed on the outer margin, at the beginning of the distal third, with two spines, one stout and serrate and the other short ami smooth ; outer apical angle armed with three spines, two short and smooth, the other long and serrate on the inner margin ; inner margin sulcate, and armed with two stout plumose seta^ ; apex armed with two set;e, the inner seta plumose on both margins, the outer plumose on the inner margin and provided on the outer with a hyaline lamina. Inner ramus of fifth leg of female three-segmented. First segment hairy on the outer margin ; outer apical angle armed with a moderately stout plumose seta. Second segment sub- quadrate, more than twice as long as wide ; hairy on both margins ; armed at the outer ai)ical angle with a plumose seta. Third segment somewhat longer and broader than the second ; margins sulcate, both hairy at the upper part ; armed with six stout plumose seta^, two apical and two on each margin. Length of female '2.2 — 2.(>mm.; that of male 2.05 — 2.4 mm. The above description was prepared from specimens of L. iiutcnirus sent by Professor Sars to the Illinois State Labor- atory of Natural History, and from specimens of L. (irhiuildit kindly sent l)y him to me. Nothing further need be said al)Out L. iii(irnint-'<, the type of the genus, except in regard to syn- onymy and distribution. The original description of the species appeared in the " Forhandlinger i Videnskabs-Selskabet i Christiana " (Sars '62). De Guerne ('8G) described it under the name of Ccittro- piKjcs (iriiiKihVi't ; Nordcjvist, in "Die Calaniden Finlands" ('88), made this a synonym of L. inacnini^ ; and de Guerne and Eichard, in their " Bevision " t'89b), acknowledged the cor- rectness of Nordqvist's view. Eecently, however. Professor Sars, in his "Pelagic Entomostraca of the Caspian Sea" ('97), re-established de Guerue's form as a new species of North A)/icric(iit i'e)(tropnii<) ; in the males of all species, second, third, and fifth segments pro- vided on the right side with ])rocesses. Furcal rami hairy on the inner margin, provided in both sexes with three plu- mose terminal seta^, one slender simple seta at the inner apical angle, and a stout spine at the outer apical angle. First pair of antennne 25-segmented. Pdght male antenna geniculate between the 18tli and 19th segments; segments 250 Iliiiwh St((fc Ijahoy. 85, PI. XL, Fig. 2, 5, 9. Epischura nordenskioldi. Solimeil, "98. p. 183. About medium size, l)ody rather rolnist, widest in front of middle. Cephalothorax six-segmented, the first two segments confluent and together somewhat longer than the remainder ; third segment slightly longer than either of the last three, which are suhequal ; last two segments distinct, the last segment produced on each side at the posterior angle into a bluntly-rounded lobe armed at the tip with a minute spine. Abdomen (including furca) five-segmented, slender, a little less than half as long as the cephalothorax; first two segments indistinctly confluent below ; third segment slightly longer than the fourth. Furcal rami al)Out twice as long as broad and ciliate on the inner margin ; armed at the apex with three slender plumose seta- fully three times as long as the ramus itself, at the outer apical angle with a short stout spine, and on the dorsal surface, near the inner margin, Avith a delicate smooth seta. Abdomen of male (furca included) six-segmented, the second, third, and fifth segments armed on the right side with prehensile ])rocesses ; flexed to the right but slightly or not at all. First segment somewhat broader than long, slightly i)roduced along the left margin into a process ending at the posterior angle in a lobe-like expansion. Sec- ond segment slightly narrower and longer than the first ; ]n-o- duced on the right side in the form of a subtriangular phite, somewhnt longer than wide and pointing obliquely backward. The process is armed at the tip with a small sharp spine, on the inner margin, near the apex, with two or three rather large teeth, and within these with a number of smaller NortJi Amcy'iciin CcntrojxKi'Khf. 2o3 ones. Third segment sliglitly shorter thiin the ]) receding; process very simple, small and inconspicuous, bluntly pointed, extending almost straight backward ; armed on outer margin, near the tip, with a slight, blunt protuberance. Fourth seg- ment unarmed, about half the length of the first. Fifth segment about as long as the fourth ; armed with a narrow triangular plate, l)r()adest anteriorly and bluntly rounded at the apex. Dextral margins of the fourth and fifth segments tuberculate. Furcal rami about as in the female. Antennie 25-segmented, extending almost to the base of the furca. Eight antenna of the male geniculate between the iSth and 19th segments ; segments preceding the geniculation slightly or not at all swollen. Eight fifth leg of the male three-segmented. First seg- ment irregular in form, al)oat twice as long as wide, armed on the outer margin, near the distal angle, with the usual deli- cate hair; inner margin provided Avith a curious, smooth, bluntly-pointed hook-like process extending downward almost parallel to the margin. Second segment irregular, about twice as long as wide ; outer margin smoothly convex, armed near the distal angle with a small spine ; outline of inner margin sinuous. Third segment long and narrow, with a broad basal portion about half as wide as the segment is long ; curved inward slightly at the tip and armed here, on the outer margin, with a minute spine. First segment of left fifth leg with a subquadrate main por- tion produced on the inner margin into a long, smooth broad hook but slightly curved ; armed at the outer distal angle with the usual hair. Second segment somewhat narrower than the first, subquadrate, about twice as long as wide ; outer distal angle armed with a small sharp spine ; inner margin sometimes with indications of minute teeth or serrations at about the middle. Third segment curved inward slightly, about as broad as the second and fully four times as long as broad ; armed on the outer margin with four rather small sharp spines, the first at about the middle, the second midway between this and the apex of the segment, the other two near the apex and nearer together than the upper ones ; armed on 254 lU'uwis St((tc Tjdlxn-Ktori/ of Natural Hisfori/. the distal part of the inner margin with long delicate hairs. This segment is much simpler than the corresponding seg- ment of lacustris and nevadensis. Fifth pair of legs of the female uniramose, three-segmented. First segment snbquadrate, somewhat longer than wide, armed near the onter distal angle with a hair or delicate spine. Second segment somewhat narrower than the first and slightly longer ; armed at the outer apical angle with a small sharp spine. Third segment slightly narrower than the second and barely one and a half times as long ; armed with five or six spines*, two (one) outer, one inner, and three apical. Of the outer spines, the upper one is at a])out the mid- dle of the segment and the lower one is directly opposite the inner spine. Of the apical spines, the middle one is spinu- lose on l)otli margins and the outer one on the inner margin. + Length of female 1.9 mm. ;t that of male 1.1 mm. The aljove description was prepared from specimens kindly sent me l)y Dr. Lillejeborg, the measurements, however, with the modification explained in the foot-note, being those given in the original description. The material w'as a part of that collected by Dr. C. Nystrom, a member of the Nordeuskiold expedition to Greenland in 1871, and was not in the best state of preservation, owing no doubt to the length of time since its collection. Figures of this species may be found in de Guerne and liichard's "lievision" ('89b), and imperfect copies of these in Herrick's "Synopsis" (Herrick and Turner '95). The fifth pair of legs of the male are correctly represented in the "Eevision" except that the spine at the outer apical angle of the right leg is not shown; indeed it is not mentioned in the description. The spine figured on the outer margin of the * The armatu''e of this segment differs somewhat in different specimens. See on a subseiiuent page the discnxsion In regard to the fifth leg of the female. t Having only a few s]iecimens to study, I could not satisfactorily determine whether the other sjiines were also spinnlos'e or not. bnt I am quite [lositive with re- gard to the two mentioned. J think it likely that tliey are armed as In lacustris. X U is quite evident that a mistake was made in regard to the measurements given in the original de.scription: •■ Length of female, caudal seta- excepteil, about 2.9 mm., and of male 1.1 mm." In the siiecimens I examined there was no such difference in length in favor of the female: in fact the single entire female I had the opportunity to measure was 1.3.33 mm. in length, while the average length of five males was con- siderably above this— l.G'.ls mm. I have hesitated to substitute these measurements because of the limited number examined, and have altered Lillejeborg's figures to what 1 think they were intended to be. Xorfli .1 ntcr'Kiiii ( 'ciitropiKi'ithf. 255 second segment of the right leg, which Schmeil ('98) says he could not find, was present in all the specimens examined hy the writer. In one of the two specimens of females examined the last segment of the fifth leg was armed with five spines, as shown in the original figures, while the other had six. I think that six may perhaps he found to he the rule, in which case the species approaches nevadcusis and lacustria more closely, the former having six and sometimes seven spines, and the latter constantly seven. The fact that none of the other writers, Lilljehorg, de Guerne and Eichard, and Schmeil, have mentioued the existence of a sixth spine would, however, militate against this assumption. The male of nordoisi.iabJi is very easily distinguished from the males of the other two species. The fifth pair of legs, while of the same general type as in the rest of the genus, are less modified and yet very characteristic. But for the fact that it is, as a rule, difficult to make out, the hook-like process on the first segment of the right leg would alone serve to distinguish norden^hwld'i. Further, the right leg is three- segmented instead of two ; the last segment is armed t)U the outer margin, at the apex, with a small spine ; and the hook on the first segment of the left leg is comparatively simple. The ahdomen is also less modified than that of ncradcitai.s and laciisiris. Instead of heing quite strongly fiexed to the right it is almost or entirely straight, while the processes are small and inconspicuous, there heing some difficulty in dis- cerning the one on the fifth segment. The fifth pair of legs of the female also serve, though not so readily, to distinguish this species. They differ from those of lacnstri>i in that the last segment is armed with only five or six spines, instead of seven, and in the relative length of the segments. From the fifth legs of nevadoisis they may he distinguished by the difference in proportions, those of in ra- dciisisi heing much more robust than those of nordoi-sJ.-'uddi, which are intermediate between the other two. The ditt'erent arrangement of the spines on the last segment, the occasional absence of the sixth spine on this segment, and the presence, at least o(;casionally, of a second spine at the outer 'apical *256 Illinois State Laborntorji of Ndtarol Uiatory. angle of the second segment of the leg of necodciiais, will all assist in determining the species. De Gnerne and liicliard (89b) make the statement that the females always have the spermatophore — wdiich they describe as curved in a semicircle around the abdomen — attached. On none of the females examined by the writer was this structure present. It may of course have been torn off, although even then the statement that it is always present seems to me too strong, since in K. lacKxtri^i and K. ncriKlcn.^].^ the female, even when mature, is very often found without a spermatophore. Epischura nevadensis Lilljeborg. Epischura tiPi-adensi.s. (\e Guerne et Richard. "S9b, i). 'Xi. PI. II., Ki^^'. 17.24; PI. III., Fig. 21. Epischura neiiadensis Columbia', Forbes, '03. p. 2.54. PI. XL!.. Fiy-. 19-21 . Epischura nevadensis^ Ilerrick and Turner, "95, p. 84. PI. XI., Fi"". 1, 6, 8. Epischura nevadensis columtiin\ Herriuk and Tnrnei', "95, p. 84. PI. XI., Fig. 4. 10. Epischura ■nevadensis, Sflmieil. "97, p. 183. Of medium size and somewdiat oval in form, broadest before the middle. Front armed on each side with a hook- like process pointing downward. Cephalothorax six-seg- mented, the second segment the longest, about twice as long as the first or last, which are subequal, the remaining three segments subequal, each about a fourth the length of the second. First two segments somewhat confluent, as are the last two ; last segment, seen from above, not produced and entirely unarmed. Abdomen (furca included) composed of five segments, the first two confluent and together almost as long as the two following, which are subequal and slightly longer than the furca. Furcal rami subquadrate, very short and broad, and provided on the posterior part of the inner margin with a few fine hairs ; armed at the outer apical angle with a stout pointed spine, and at the inner apical angle with a slender smooth seta, posterior margin armed with three long delicately plumose sette, of which the inner is the longest, the other two being about equal. In the male the abdo- Xortli ^iiiwricdu C'entropagidce. 257 men is asymmetrical, flexed to the right, and consists of six segments (furca inchided). The segments vary but little in length, the furea being, however, the shortest, the fifth, second, and first increasing in length in the order of their mention, the third and fourth subequal, each slightly longer than the first. Seen from above, the first segment is pro- duced slightly to the left at its posterior margin. Second, third, and fifth segments armed with processes on the right side. The process on the second segment is a broad thin lamina about as long as the segment is broad, smooth on the convex anterior margin and for about the distal fourth of its posterior margin (which is almost straight), but for the re- maining three fourths of this margin provided with minute irregular teeth having a tendency to point toward the abdo- men; apex acute and slightly recurved. The process on the third segment springs from the posterior part as a broadly rounded smooth hyaline lamina slightly longer than broad. Fourth segment unarmed. Fifth segment provided with two processes, the anterior one (pointing forward and upward) consisting of a narrow irregularly triangular plate with an acute apex and smooth margins, the posterior one having the form of a truncated triangle, nrmed at the apical margin with three or four large equal teeth and one or two much smaller ones. Posterior to this process the right margin of the seg- ment is armed with a row of bead-like tubercles which, near the suture between the furca and this segment, lengthen to form two or three blunt spines. Furcal lami slightly longer proportionally than in the female, but similar in other respects. Antenna' 25 - segmented, long and slender, extending slightly beyond the posterior end of the third abdominal seg- ment in the female and beyond the fourth segment in the male. Right male antenna geniculate between the 18th and 19th segments; segments 19, 20 and 21, and 22 and 23 ankylosed ; antepenultimate article unarmed. Flight fifth leg of male two-segmented. First segment irregularly pentagonal, the longest base forming the outer margin, which is armed near the distal angle with a delicate seta; basal half of inner margin armed with a broad irregu- 258 Illinois State Lahordtory of Katiiral Ihstortj. lar hyaline plate wliicli near its middle is somewhat produced and provided with a number of delicate serrations. Second segment consists of a bronder basal portion and a narrow terminal part, the latter constituting about three fourths the entire length, and extending upward to the middle of the inner margin of the preceding segment ; apex produced at the inner margin, forming a kind of hook. Left fifth leg uniramose, three-segmented. First segment armed near the outer apical angle with a delicate seta and produced on the inner margin into a large plate-like hook almost as broad as the segment and strongly curved inward. Second segment irregular in shape, slightly longer than broad, and unarmed.* Third segment or terminal hook contorted, about twice as long as the second segment ; basal portion broad, with a projecting inner angle; inner margin sinuous, the lower curve densely provided with fine long hairs ; outer margin armed with three short, sharp unequal spines increas- ing in size from aljove downwards ; the attenuate apex pro- vided with a spine considerably larger than the others. Fifth leg of female uniramose, three-segmented. First segment subquadrate, with flaring sides ; armed near the outer apical angle with a rather delicate smooth seta. Sec- ond segment subquadrate, al)Out one and a half times as long as the first and about two and a half times as long as broad ; armed at the outer distal angle with a short sharp spine (occasionally with two subequal spines). Third segment (terminal spines excluded) aljout as long and wide as the second ; outer margin armed with a short sharp spine at about the beginning of the distal half (another spine occa- sionally present a short distance above this) ; apex provided with three spines, the two outer ones subequal and the mid- dle one considerably larger ; inner margin armed with two spines near the apex of the segment, the upper about half the size of the lower, and the margins of both denticulate. Length of female 2-2.5 mm.; that of male 1.7-2.1 mm. The al)ove description is based on type specimens of E. *(Jii (ine or two .specimens I noticed quite a large tubercle, with a roughened ii|i, projecting from the anterior a.spect of this segment near the outer proximal angle, but' did not lind it at all constant. North A)ni)ic(t(/i(l(e. 268 locality as the type,— Normal, 111., — and from other speci- mens collected at various times and places in Illinois, Indiana, and Michigan. This species, the type of the genus, was first described in the "American Naturalist" {Forbes, '82a), and de Guerne and Eichard, Forbes, Herriclc, and Marsh have since published descriptions and figures. Scoplp](or. inimitiis, Lilljeborg, and sometimes with two or more of these species. It has been found in Illinois, Indiana, Ohio, Minnesota, Michigan, Wisconsin, and also at East Portland, Oregon. DOUBTFUL SPECIES. Epischura fluviatilis Herrick. Epischura jlxviatilis , Herrick. '83a, p. 381, PI. V.. Fig. 10-20. Epischura flvviatilis, Herrirk, "84, p. 133. PI. Q, Fig. 14-16. Episdnir(ifl%Lviatilis, Herrick, "ST, p. 13, PI. 11., Fig. 21-24. EjnschHraJfiiviatiiis, de Guerne et Richard, "891), p. 92, PI. IV., Fig. 13. 20. Epischura jlxvidtiUs, Forbe.^, "93, p. 254 (foot-note). Epischura jluviatiUs^ Herrick and Turner, "95. p. 83, PI. XHI., P'ig. 14-1 G. Lamfflipodia [Epischura'] fa viatilis. Schmeil, *9S, p. 183. Of small size, body rather slender ; color greenish blue. Cephalothorax imperfectly six-segmented. Abdomen three- segmented,-diflfering in no way from that of iJiaptomns except in the number of furcal setiie. In the male the second abdom- inal segment bears on its left side a peculiar process con- sisting of two parts forming a clasping organ, the inner part of which is about as long as the third segment and armed at the apex with two small spines, the outer part being slender, curved, and about twice as long as the inner. Antenna; 2 5 -segmented, extending somewhat beyond the end of the thorax. Eight male antenna geniculate between the 18 and 19tli segments; last six segments not ankylosed, enlarged portion not greatly sw^oUen. Swimming legs biramose, the outer ramus consisting of three segments, the inner ramus of one segment. Basal seg- ments of the two legs fused beyond the last. Fifth pair of legs of male uniramose, the two basal seg- ments entirely fused. Right fifth leg three-segmented, the first two segments subquadrate and subequal, about three times as long as wide and entirely unarmed. Third segment slightly longer and broader than the second, tapering to a '2(j(j Illinois State Lahuratori/ of Natural Historf/. blunt point and armed on the outer margin with three spines. Left fifth leg very peculiar, consisting of a single lamelli- form subcircular segment, armed on the flat surface with two opposable claws forming a forcipate structure. Fifth pair of legs of female uniramose, three-segmented (two l)asal segments). First segment about twice as long as broad. Second segment narrower than the preceding and about twice as long ; armed at about the middle of the outer margin with a spine. Third segment curved inward, some- what longer and narrower than the second, ending in a sharp point, and armed on the outer margin with two spines divid- ing it approximately into thirds. Mulberry Creek, Cullman county, Alabama. Length, al)Out 1.103 mm. The above description was compiled from drawings and descriptions found in Herrick's writings (lierrick, '83a, '84, and '87, and Herrick and Turner, '95), since all attempts to obtain material from Cullman county, Ala., or from any other part of that State, were unsuccessful. A lu'ief discussion of the published figures and descriptions will not be superfiuous in connection with a doubtful species. Li the American Naturalist, Vol. 17 (Herrick, '83a), is pub- lished the original description of K. fliir'Kttilis, and a figure representing apparently a ventral vieAv of the last thoracic segment and abdomen, and the fifth pair of legs of the male. In this drawing the process on the third segment is on the right side, making it sinistral in the animal as Herrick says it is ; but in his " List of Fresh-water and Marine Crustacea of Alabama" ('87) he gives another figure, which is just as apparently a ventral view of the same thing. Li this latter figure, however, the process is sinistral, making it dextral in the animal, and also making the left leg three- segmented and the right leg one-segmented. Two other figures (Her- rick, '84 and Herrick and Turner, '95) also show the process on the right side, l)nt there is nothing to indicate whether they are dorsal or ventral views. Now, in regard to the synonymy. If the process is on the left side, as is maintained in all of Herrick's descriptions, this North Americdu Centropag'uhe. 267 species cannot belong to the genus Ephchura, as has ah*eady been pointed out by Forbes ('93, p. 254) and Schmeil ('98), since the process cannot be homologized with the simihir process in Epischura proper. If, however, the process is dextral, as shown in three out of the four figures pubHshed, it might be more easily homologized with the process in the other species of the genus. It would also be more likely that the left leg was three-segmented and the right one especially modified into a clasping organ if E. Jinriatilis belonged to this genus, although even then the fact that the second segment of the left (right ?) leg is not at all produced inwardly and the structure of the right (left '?) leg is radically different would present difficulties. The fifth legs of the female are very similar to those of Eplsclinra, but partake slightly of the characters of Heterocope. Schmeil says ('98) that, judging from analogy with other genera, there is one basal segment too many in the fifth pair of legs of both sexes. Herrick, in the " American Naturalist" (Herrick, '83), gives a drawing of a swimming leg of E. Ji iir'uf tills, with its one-segmented inner ramus, which, if the upper, incomplete part shown is to be regarded as another segment, certainly gives it, as Schmeil says, one too many segments. If, however, it is an adhering part of the thoracic segment, it will differ from a swimming leg of E. lacuMrls only in that in lacnstrls the first basal seg- ments instead of being fused their entire length, as in Jiuvla- tllls, are fused for about the basal two fifths only. The fifth legs of both sexes are similar in arrangement to the above, although on account of the absence of an inner ramus it is less evident. I believe that the appendage figured at the outer apical angle of the furt-a is intended for a spine, rather than a seta as Schmeil supposes it to be. From this it will be seen that the drawings and descriptions confiiet, and Dr. Schmeil was perhaps justified in proposing to establish a new genus, Lamellipodla, to receive this species. It seems to me, however, that it would be better to wait until material col- lected in the same locality and described and figured by a more careful observer has determined whether or not this species is a good one, and I have hesitated, therefore, to adopt a new name for a form the description of which, to use Marsh's words in regard to Scoplpliorn rdr/ajis Pickering, " is manifestly inaccurate in some particulars, and may l)e in all." 268 Ill'tno'i)i State Lahordtory of Natural Histort/. ADDITIONS TO THE BIBLIOGRAPHICAL LIST PUBLISHED IN ARTICLE III.* Birge, E. A. '97. The Vertical Distribution of the Limnetic Crustacea of Lake Mendota. Biol. Centralbl., XVII. Bd., pp. 371-374; Abstract, Zool. < "eiitralW., IV. Jahro-., No. IS u. 19, pp (iOO, 007. Erlanger, R. v. '97. Uber die Chromatinreduktion in der Entwickelun^j- der niimn- liclien Geschlechtszellen. Zool. Oentralhl.. IV. .Tahrg., No. 8, pp. '2(J.")-27S. Forbes, S. A. '85. On the Food Eelations of Fresh-Water Fishes: a Summary and Discussion. Bull. 111. State Lab. Nat. Hist., Vol. II., Art. VIII., ])]>. 47.")-.538. Fric, A., und Vavra, V. '97. Untersuchungen iiber die Fauna der Gevviisser Bohmens. III. Untersuchung zweier Buhmerwaldseen, des Schwarzen Sees und des Teufelsees. Arch. d. naturw. Landesdurehf. v. Brihmeu, Bd. X. 74 pp., 33 Fig.; Abstract, Zool. Centralbl., V. Jahro-., No. 5, pp. 158, ir)n. Fuhrmann, 0. *'97. Kecherches sur la fauue des lacs alpines du Tessin. IJev. Suisse de Zool., T. XV., pp. 489-543. lioude, Ad. *'92. Notatki Karcynologiczka. Kosmos (Lemberg) T. 17. pp. 443-448, 561-565. ( Fide Steuer, '97a.) Richard, J. '96. Sur la faune de quehjues lacs clevcs du Caucase d'apres les re- coltes de M. Kavraisky. Bull, de la Soc. zool. de France, T. XXL. pp. 183-185. Schacht, F. W. '97. The North American Species of Diai)tomus. Bull. 111. State Lab. Nat. Hist., Vol. V., Art. III., pp. 97-207, Pis. XXI.-XXXV. Scott, Th. *'98. Diaptomus hircus G. S. Brady, in Loch Lochy, Mouness. Ann. Scott. Nat. Hist., Jan., 1898, p. 55. Scott, Th., and Duthie, R. ♦'97. An Account of the Examination of some of the Lochs of Shet- land. Fifteenth Ann. Hep. Fisheries Board, for Scotland, pp. 327-333. *AI1 articles except those niarkeil with an asterisk are in the Library of the State Laboratory of Natural History or in tliat of the University. North AmcricdN CeiitropiKjicUe. '2G9 Scott, Th., and Scott, A. '97. Notes on Simarestes paynri Hesse, and some other rare Crusta- cea. Ann. Nat. Hist., Vol., 20, pp. 489-494. 2 Pis. Steuer, A. '97. Copepodeii und Cladoceren des svissen Wassers aus der Umge- bung vou Triest. Verhaiidl. d. k.-k. zool.-bot. Gesellscli. Wieii, Jahrg. 1897. 1(5 i.p.. 1 PI. '97a. Ein Beitrag zur Keuntniss der Cladoceren-und Copepoden- fauna Kiirnteiis. Verhandl. d. k.-k. zool.-bot. Gesellsch. Wien. Jahrg. 1897. 49 pp., 6 Fig. '97b. T.iste aller bisher in Karnten gefundenen Cladoceren und Copepoden. "Carintliia" II., Nr. 4. Klagenfurt. Szekely, B. *'82. Tanuluianyok a Diaptoimis petefejludi'senek els<) phasisairol a blestoderma fellcpesclg. Kolozsvar, 1882. {Fide Steuer, '97a.) INDEX. (Synonyms in italics Calanus, 237. Canthocaniptus. 225. Centropages, 244. hamatus, 2-14. Ce7itropages. 235. grimahUi. 238, 242. Ceritro])ao^idfe, 225, 227, 244. Copepoda, 225. 227, 228. Cyclops. 225, 234, 235, 203. Diaptomus, 225, 226, 227. 228, 230, 234. 235, 236. 237, 250, 205. ashlandi, 200, 265. minutus, 260, 265. oreuonensis, 229. 205. pall id us, 205. sani::iiiiieus. 234. sicilis, 229, 264. siciloides. 229, 265. Entomostraca. 225, 228. Epischura, 2-25, 226, 227, 228, 237. 249, 267. lUiviatilis. 226,250, 265. lacustris, 228. 229, 249, 250, 25 1, 252, 254, 255, 256, 260, 267. nfivadensis, 229, 249, 250, 251, 254,255,256,262, 264. nevadensis colmnbni', 256, 258, 259. Episch ura — Continnr-d. nordeiLskiuldi, 249, 250, 251, 252. Eurytemora. 225. herdmani, 226. Heteroeope. 225, 267. LameUipodia. 267. JJtiviatilis. 265. Limiiocalaiuis, 225, 220. 227. 22S. 235. grimaldii, 226, 229. 230. 239. 243. macroiiyx (? ), 226. macrurus.226,227,229.235,236, 237. 238, 204. macrurus auctus, 239, 244. sinensis. 220, 229. 235, 236, 237. 238, 245. Osphranticum. 225, 226. 227, 228, 229, 234, 235, 237. labronectum, 227, 230. Potamoichetor, 229, 230. Potomoichetor, 229. fncostis, 230. 233. Teinora. 225. afRnis. 225. Temorella, 225. affinis. 225. Scopiphora, 249, 263. mgans. 260, 263, 267. SEP 20 IBS? BULLETIN Illinois Qtate I aboratory OF NATURAL HISTORY. Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME v. ARTICLE v.— PLANKTON STUDIES. II. ON PLEODORIXA ILLIXOISENSIS, A NEW SPECIES FROM THE PLANK- TON OF THE ILLINOIS RIVER. Bv C. A. KOFOID, Ph. D. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, L:RI5ANA, ILLINOIS. September, J 898. State Laboratory of Natural History. LABORATORY STAFF. Professor Stephen Alfred Fokbes, Ph. 1)., Director of State Laboratory and State Entomologist. CiiAULES Arthur Hart, Systematic Entomologist and Curator of Collections. Frank Smith, A. M., Assistant Zoologist. Charles At wood Kofoid, Ph. D., Zoologist, and Superintendent of Biological Station. Ernest Browning Forbes, B. S. Entomo logica I A ss istant. Wallace CRAici, B. S. Zooloi/ical Assistant. Mary Jane Snyder. Secretary. Henry Clinton Forbes, Business Agent and Librarian. Lydia Moore Hart, Artist. SEP 20 la^^. Article V. — Plankton Stndic.s. II. On Plvodorhin tlUnois- en.ns, a New Sj>eeics from fJw J'lunl.ton of the Illinois Hirer. By C. A, Kofoid. The genus Pleodorina was discovered in 1898 by Shaw ('94) at Palo Alto, California, and in May of the following year the ^^ec\Q% Pleodorind caUfornica, upon which the genus was founded, was detected by Mottier ('94) in water from a shallow stagnant pool near Bloomington, Indiana. During the same summer the form also occurred in the Illinois River and its adjacent waters (Clinton, '94), and it has been found in the plankton of these situations in succeeding years from June to September. The distribution of the species in this continent is thus quite extended, and it is not at all improb- able that continued investigation of fresh- water plankton will demonstrate that this genus has a cosmopolitan distribution similar to that of some other genera of the family Volroc'uicif' to which it belongs. On June 16, 1898, a form which may be referred to the genus Pleodorina was found in the Illinois Eiver in water entering the stream in large part from Cook's Slough and Quiver Lake. Owing to high water (ten feet above low-water mark) prevailing at the time, a considerable portion of the habitat of the form in question consisted of submerged terri- tory, with shallow warm water abounding in growing aquatic and semi-aquatic vegetation. This Pleodorina could not be found in Quiver Lake collec- tions made on the 7tb of June, but on the 16tli it was present in the river in small numbers, increasing until the 20th, when a maximum was reached. From this time the numbers decreased until the 27tli, when, following a rise in the river, the species seemingly disappeared entirely from the plankton. It was also found sparingly in Thompson's Lake during this ])eriod, a large area of slightly submerged territory being at this time tributary to the lake. Associated with this species in great abundance was Eudo- rina clnjanH, in all stages of asexual reproduction, and Pando- rlna inoriim wns also present in smaller numbers and in like 274 Illinois tStdtc Ldhoratorif of Nrur/ Nutural Ilistorij. rotation is in either of the two directions and is snbject to frequent change. No predominant direction was noted by him. In Pdndorlna the only structural expression of polarity is found in the greater development of the stigmata in the cells in the anterior end of the colony. In other particulars the poles are not differentiated. Braun ('51) maintains that in this genus the rotation is constantly around the long axis of the colony in the direction of the hands of a clock, when the motion is toward the observer. Nageli {fide Biitschli, '83-'87, p. 858), on the other hand, observed rotation in both direc- tions. My own ol)servations upon Pandor'nia ntoriim show beyond question that the direction of rotation is not constant, as the following table demonstrates. Direction 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 Total Right over to left. Left over to right. 6 + 6- 12+ 12- 5± 4=b 1- 2+ 2=b 2± 3± 4± 7=t 6± 1 + 2- 1+ 3± 1- 3± 41 42 The table gives the direction and number of changes in direction in rotation of ten colonies, each observed for one minute. The plus and minus signs indicate the estimated predominance in duration. According to the table the in- stances of direction observed are approximately equal for the two directions, though that from right over to left showed the greater duration. The younger and smaller colonies showed much the greatest activity and exhibited more frequent changes in direction than the older colonies. In all observed cases the same end continues to lead in locomotion, physiological polarity being thus fully developed in this genus. In the case of Eudor'nut the structural polarity of the vegetative colonies is no more marked than it is in Pdndorina, though according to Carter ('58) there is in the moncecious sexual colony a differentiation, in that the four cells at one pole divide to form spermatozoa, while the remaining twenty- eight become egg-cells. It should be noted in this connection that no such colonies were observed l)y Goroschankin ('75) in the sexual generation. The literature at hand presents no On Pleodoruia illinoisensis. 285 precise statement as to locomotion in this genus. As ob- served by me, it closely resembles that described above for Pleodorind illiiiois^'jisis ; viz., rotation aronnd the long a-xis of the colony, the same pole constantly leading in progression. The direction of rotation is freciuently reversed, though it was predominantly from right over to left in the cases observed. A functional polarity thus exists in this genus. In Volvo.r, according to Klein ('90), there is a polar differ- entiation as regards the stigmata that is even more marked than it is in the genera previously mentioned. He finds that the cells of the pole directed forward in locomotion each possess a stigma which is especially large and intensely colored ; that the color fades out and the stigmata become smaller and paler as the equator is approached ; and that beyond this they are usually represented merely by a color- less oil-drop, which in some cases may even disappear. The posterior hemisphere is also marked l)y the development there of the gonidia, as was first shown by Colin ('56), and occasionally ellipsoidal colonies are found whose long axis connects the anterior and posterior poles. Locomotion in Volrox is accomplished, as elsewhere in the family, by the rotation of the colony al>out its principal axis. Wills ('80) observed the predominance of the rotation to the right and its occasional brief reversal. Klein ('89) states that this preference is found in T'. f/lohator, but that it is not shown by V. aureus. In this latter species the changes are frequent and are often separated by a brief pause. Backward motion is rarely seen and lasts but a short time. In the case of Volro.r the axis of rotation is slightly oblique, the center of the colony remaining in the line of progress, but the axis of rotation being inclined from above the line at the anterior pole to below it at the posterior one. We thus find that Pleodorinn illinoisensis, which exhibits both a structural and physiological polarity, shares with most, if not all, of the genera of the family to which it belongs, the physiological differentiation which is expressed in locomotion,, and also, in observed cases, exemplifies the extreme form of a predominance of rotation in one direction. 286 IU'dio'ih State Laboratori/ of Natural History. We also find that the structural dift'erentiation shown in the decadence of its posterior stigmata ol>tains in varying degrees in the other spherical and ellipsoidal genera of the family — least in Pandorlna, most in Volvox. The genus I'lcoilor'nia agrees with VoJrox in having a structural polarity hased upon the division of the colony into vegetative and gonidial regions, hut the differentiation is simpler. Of the two species of Pleo- dor'uia, the one here described exhibits the simplest possible differentiation of the colony consistent with the symmetry of the organism; viz., the differentiation of the anterior polar circle of four cells as vegetative members of the colony. Of the two species of the genus it thus stands nearer Endo- riiut, while its sister species P. californlca approaches more closely to Volro.r both in the number of cells and in the extent of the differentiation. The discovery of this additional species of the genus Plco- dorlna thus supports the opinion expressed by Shaw ('94), who founded the genus, that it W'as intermediate between Eiiiloy'nia and ]'olvox but nearer the former. Judging merely from the asexual stage, P. drniolsem^is affords additional evi- dence of the close relationship of Plcodorina and Kudor'uia. Throughout the preparation of this paper the writer has had constantly in mind the possibility that the form here described is merely a stage in the life cycle of Kiidor'nta. A number of facts lend support to this hypothesis : ( 1 ) the occurrence of Pleodorlna Uiinoiseusis with Endor'nia elc(j((iiH ; ('2) their marked similarity, aside from the four vegetative cells, in structure and measurements; (3) the impossibility of separating the youngest free-swimming colonies of the two forms; (4j a considerable variation in the size of the vegetative cells in Plcmior'nia, grading toward the condition in Eudor'uia \ (5) some evidence that in certain cases at least the vegetative cells may divide, one case of a 2-cell stage having been seen in the hundreds, if not thou- sands, of sx^ecimens examined, and one instance noted in which a maternal colony containing thirty-two daughter colonies had at one pole four colonies whic,^ were slightly smaller than the remaining twenty-eight; and (6) the occur- 0)1 IHeodor'uia illiitoiscnsis. '287 ivnce of pleomorpliisni in the family ViAvoc'nuu/', Klein ('89 and '90) citing- no less than twentj'-four " comhinations " in the case of Volvox nurcus. It may then be that the form here described as Pleodoriiut tUinoisensis is only a " Vlcodorhia stage" of Kt((Ioriii((. The abrupt disappearance of this supposed new species from the plankton prevented the carrying out of breeding experiments designed to test its validity, and it seems that the matter must remain undecided for the present. In the absence of satisfactory proof that the form here described is but a phase of the life cycle of Kudorlna it has seemed best to the writer to make the above suggestion and to take the only course open in publication, namely, the description of the form as a new species, inviting the criticism of subsecpient investiga- tion. The dilemma here presented is by no means an isolated one in plankton work, nor is it new to the family Volvoclncir -. witness the long confusion which existed over the two species of Volvor, unrcuH and (jlohntor, which has been at last cleared up by the excellent work of Klein ('89, '89a, '90) and Overton ('89). Another instance is often presented when Pandoriiui and Eudorhia both occur in the same collections and the plankton statistician must decide to which genus each speci- men observed must l)e referred. Typical specimens of each can be found, but all individuals do not conform to the type, or they may present conditions in which the conformation is obscured by some phase of the life cycle. The asexual reproduction of Pleodorlna lU'nwiHensia (PI. XXXVII.) resembles that of other species of the genus in that it is accomplished by the repeated division of the gonidial cells, resulting in the formation of daughter colonies in the maternal matrix. These escape later from the parent organ- ism, and by growth attain the adult condition with the diti'er- entiation of the four vegetative cells. Five successive cell di- visions, pervading all the cells of the parent organism except the vegetative cells, are necessary for the completion of the process, and result in the '1-, 4-,- or (34. Dimensions of colony range from 46x38 /< to 200x175 /<•. Vegetative cells always four in number. Gonidial cells approximately 1.1 — 2 times diam- eter of vegetative cells. Known habitat : submerged lands along the Illinois Eiver. Types deposited in collections of Illinois State Laboratory of Natural Flistory and United States National Museum. IHinoiH iriuloo-ical Station, Havana. 111., .hilv 2."), 181)8. 071 Plcoilorhui iUinoisensis. 291 BIBLIOGEAPHY. Braun, A. '51. Betrachtungen iiber die Erscheinuno: der Verjiino;uni>^ in der Xatur. in?besondere in der Lebens- und Bildun^!i<4eschichte der Prianze. XVI+3Gi pp.. 3 Taf. Leipzig?. '75. I'ber einio-e Voivocineen. Ber. d. Gesellsch. natnrforsch. Kreunde zn Berlin, 1875. pp. 9-18. Butschli. O. '80-'89. Protozoa. Bronn's Klassen uiul Ordnuno^en des Thier- reirhs, Bd. 1., 'J"li. l.-lll. 2035 pp.. 79 Taf. Leipzit;^ und Heidelberi?. Carter, H. J. '58. On Fecundation in Eudorina ele.^ans and Cryiitoi;]ena. Ann. May. Nat. Hist., Ser. 3, Vol. 11., pp. 237-253, PI. VIII. Clinton. G. P. '94. Pleodorina in Illinoi.s. Botan. Gazette, Vol. XIX., p. 383, Cohn, F, '5/3, Uber elne neue Gattuno- aus der Familie der Voivocineen. Zeitschr. f. wLss. Zool., Bd. 1\ ., pp. 77-ll(J, Taf. VI. '56. Observations sur les Volvocinees. Ann. d. Sei. X"at., Botan., IV. Ser.. T. V., pp. 323-332 : also, with some changes, in 34 Jahresber. d, Schles. Gesellsch. f. vaterl. Cultur f. 1856, pp. 39, 40. 77-83, Fresenius, G. '56. Uber die Algengattungen Pandorina, Gonium und IJaphidiuni. Abhandl. der Senckenberi:;. naturforsch. Gesellsch., Bd. II., ])p. 187-200. Taf. Vlll. Goroschankin, J. "75. Genesis im Tyi)us der palniellenartio;en Aljren. Versuch einer vert;leichendcn Morpholou,ie der Familie der Volvocinea (German title of Russian article). Mittheil. der kais. Gesellsch. natur- forsch. Freunde in Moskau, Bd. XVI. 40 pp., 2 Taf. Henfrey, A. '56. Notes on some Fresh-water Confervoid Algfe New to Britain. Trans. Micr. Soc. London, N. S., Vol. IV., pp. 49-54, PI. IV. Klebs, G. '86. Uber die Oro;anisation der Gallerte bei einigen Algen und Flagellaten. Untersuch. a. d. bolan. Inst, zu Tubingen, Bd II., pp. 333-418, Taf. III.. IV. Klein, L. '89. iSIorphoIogische und biologische Studien iiber die Gattung Volvox. Pringsheiiu's Jahrb. f. wiss. Botan., Bd. XX., pp. 133-211, Taf. X,— XII. 292 lUuiols State Tjahonttorii of Ndtural llistori/. '89a. Neue Beitriio^e zur Kenntniss der Gattuntj Volvox. Ber. iL tleiitsdi. botan. GeselJsch.. Jahrg. 1S8!I, Bd. Vll.. pp. 42-53. Taf. III. '90. Ver,i;ieii.'heiide I'ntersiichuiif^eii iiber Morpholoi^ie iiiul Biologie der Fortpflaiizung bei der Gattun^- Volvox. Ber. d. iiaturf. Ge- sellsch. zu Freiburg- i. B., Bd. V.. pp. ■2[)-V20, Taf. II.~VI. Mio^ula, W. '90. BeitJiiu^e zur Kenntiii.es des (ionium peetorale. Botan. Centralbl.. Bd. XLIV., pp. 72-7G, 103-107, 143-14G, Taf. IJ. Mottier, D. M. '94. PJeodorina in Indiana. Botan. Gazette, Vol. XIX., p. 383. Overton, E. '89. Beitrao^ zur Kenntniss iler (iattuni; Volvox. Botan. Centralbl., Bd. XXXIX., pp. G5-72. 113-118, 14r.-ir)0, 177-182, 209-214, 241-240, 273-279, Taf. l.-III. Pfeffer, W. '84. Looomotorisehe Richtungsbewei^ungen durch ebeniische Reize. Fntersuch. a. d. botan. Inst, zu Tiibinoen, Bd. I., pp. 363-482. Shaw. W. R. '94. Pleodorina. a new jj-enus of tbe ^'olvocinea'. Botan. < iazette,VoI. XIX., pp. 279-283, PI. XXVII. Wills, A. W. '80. On tbe Structure and Life History of Volvox ^lobator. Mid- land Xaturalist, Vol. III., pp. 209-214. 233-237, PI. VII.. VI II. 0)1 Ph'Oiior'nia iUlnolsensis. 21):5 EXPLANATION OF PLATES. AHP.REVIATIONS. A. anterior pole. ncl.. nucleolus. rhr.. chromatophore. o. ;., outer layer of siieath. c. m., cell ineinbrane. P.. posterior pole. ./:, flaj^elliiui. /'• '••, protoplasmic column /". furrow. pr., pyrenoid. g.c. gonidial oell. /•.. reticulum. I. I inner layer of sheatii. s.. stigma. ///., matrix. nA., sheath. //(. Wl. matrix membrane. ('. '•., vegetative cell. '»•, nucleus. 1,11 ,111, cleavage planes. Plate XXXYL Fi(.. 1 Fi<;. 2 Fi«;. 3 Fk;. 4 Fig. 5 Fk;. 6 Pleodorina ilh'noisensis, lateral view of colony. X nOO. Lateral view of vegetative cell. X 1500. Lateral view of gonidial cell. X 1500. Lateral view of matured colony, showing posterior lobes. X 185. Diseased cell, early stage. X 1250. Diseased cell, later stage. X 1250. Plate XXXYIL Pleodorina i/Unofsensis, toj) view of 2-cell stai>e. Top view of 4-cell stage. Ivateral view of 4-cell stage. Top view of 8-cell stage. Lateral view of 8-cell stage. Top view of IG-cell stage. Lateral view of 16-cell stage. Top view of ;52-cell stage. <"ignres drawn by C. A. Kofoid and inked by Miss L. M. Hart. •'igs. 7-14 niHsnified IfMK) diameters. Fk: 1 . Fui 8. Fk;. it. Fk; 10. Fk; 11. Fk; 12. Fk; 13. Fk; 14. Pl.ATE WXVI. Platk WWII. JAN 271899 77/. BULLETIN OF THE JLLINOIS QtaTE [^ABORATORY OF NATURAL HISTORY, Urbana. Illinois. VOLUME V. ARTICLE VI.~A LIST OF THE PROTOZOA AND ROTIFER A FOUND IN THE ILLINOIS RIVER AND ADJACENT LAKES A T HA FANA, ILL. BY ADOLPH HEMPEL, M. S. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, IRHANA, ILLINOIS. December, 1898. State Laboratory of Natural History. LABORATORY STAFF. Professor Stephen Alfred Forbes, Ph. D., Director of State Lahoratory and State Entomologist. Charles Arthuii Hakt, Systematic Entomologist and Curator of Collections. Frank S.aiith, A. M., Assistant Zoologist. Charles Atwood Kofoid. Ph. D., Zoologist, and Superintendent of Biological Station. Ernest Browning Forbes, B. S., Entomological Assistant. Wallace Craig, B. S., Zoological Assistant. Mary Jane Snyder, Secretai'y. Henry (Jlinton Forbes, Biisiness Agent and Librarian. Lydia Mooric Hart, Artist. ilAN 271899 Article VI. — A List of the Protozoa and Rotifera found in the Illinois River (Did Adj<(eent Lakes at Havana, III* By Adolph Hempel. INTRODUCTORY. The material studied in the preparation of this paper was collected at the Biological Experiment Station established on the Illinois River, at Havana, April 1, 1894, by the Univer- sity of Illinois and the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. The work of collecting the material ])egan April 7, 1894, and was carried on almost entirely at nine substa- tions, designated as A, B, C, D, E, F, G, K, and L. The first three are in Quiver Lake, which is an arm of the river on its east side, about two miles above Havana. A is at the head of the lake ; B, at a wet, springy place on the eastern shore, about half a mile from the head ; and C, about a mile and a half from the head, including both the east and Avest shores at this point as well as the middle of the lake, where the towing-net was hauled, the depth here at low water being about four feet. D is about half a mile above Havana, on the east bank of the river, and E about two and a half miles north of the town, in the main river, opposite C, collections l)eing taken especially from the west shore and the middle of the river, where the depth at low water was about nine feet. About *15efore Mr. Ueuipel had completed that part of his raaimseiipt relating to the Protozoa, he left to accept a position in the Muse~i PauUsta, in Sao Paulo, Brazil, and the entire manuscript was placed in my haikls by Dr. Forbes to be prepared for jmb- lication. At first I was reluctant to undertake the work, but realizing the value of the paper as planned by Mr. Hempel to students and teachers of Ulinois natural history, I have spared no effort to put it in the most useful form for this class of workers. On account of the limited time and area represented in this list, it can only be regarded as a preliminary one, not sutticient for permanent generalizations on "sea- sonal or locUl distribution, but rather as a history of these groujis at the Station during the two years covered by Mr. Hempel's work. It seemed undesirable, for the same reason, to attempt to give keys to the species listed. I have, however, for the Protozoa, carefully compiled from BiUschli a synopsis of the distinctive chaiucters of the larger subdivisions represented .in the list, and have drawn up from Biitschli, Leidy, and Kent condensed generic descriptions, following, as did :\Ir. Hempel, the order given by BiUschli. The chlorophyll-bearing forms, such as Volvox and EiKjlena, are retained among the Protozoa since they are included by BiUschli, but it is proper to state that they are now regarded as plaiUs by a large number of authors. For the Rotifera. 1 have compiled a synopsis of the families from Hudson and Gosse, and Mr. Hempel's generic diagnoses are mostly from the same source. Under each species in the list is a brief account of the im)iortaut points in its history for the two years. These accounts were drawn up from Mr. Hempel's records, and may prove of especial value to students at the Station. Aside from these simi- maries and the additions previously mentioned, the manuscript remains substantially as Tslr. Hempel left it, and will lie found to contain much interesting and useful information for the student of microscopic life. CHAS. A. HART. 301 302 Iiruiois Stdte Latxyratorij of Natural Histori/. half a mile below Havana, west of the river, is situated Phelps Lake, which is merely a shallow depression something over half a mile long and less than a quarter of a mile wide, surrounded by woodland, and usually filled with water to a depth of one or two feet; near its upper end F is located. G is in the southern part of Thompson's Lake, a large per- manent body of water, about five miles long and over half a mile wide, with a depth at low water of about four feet, lying to the west of the river above Havana. K is located near the middle of Flag Lake, which is a large but very shallow body of water, about three miles long and half a mile wide, lying between Thompson's Lake and the Illinois Eiver, and full of coarse "flags" — Scirjms, Saglttaria, etc., — Niimpluea, Nelumho, and Ceratophylliim. L is situated in Dogfish Lake, which opens into the west side of Quiver Lake, and is about a mile long and a quarter of a mile wide, and somewhat shallower than Quiver Lake at C. Collections were also made in the "Pumpkin Patch," a small marshy bay communicating with Quiver Lake at its head, and in Matanzas Lake, just east of the river, about three and a half miles south of Havana. Studies of the Protozoa and Botifera at the Biological Sta- tion were begun respectively in the latter part of April and of May, 1894. This work was carried on at the Station throughout the season until September 10, and all subse- quent catches from that date to April 1, 1896, were examined and a record was kept of the Protozoa and Botifera found in them. The period of time thus covered was about two years, the interval between the collections varying from a week to two months. The results of this work form the basis of the present article. Several species which were first noticed later than April, 1896, are incorporated in their proper place. The list is intended primarily as a record of the Protozoa and Botifera found in the general collections made at the various substations, and in but few instances were data obtained from other sources. Doubtless the number of species recorded would be considerably greater if the time had been spent in endeavoring to list as many forms as could be found, regard- less of substations. As it was, there were two difficulties Protozoa and Uotifcra at Havana, III. 303 which materially interfered with the making of full and satis- factory substation lists. The first obstacle was the imperfect preservation of many forms in the material put up for exami- nation, the identification of this material being thus largely restricted to those forms which possessed structures suffi- ciently hard to preserve without distortion. The second was due to changes in the list of substations under examination : A and B had to be abandoned, because of extreme low water, in August, 1894; Phelps Lake, in which was substation F, became entirely dry by the 18th of that month, and Avork there was suspended until January, 1895, when a rise in the river refilled the lake bed; and in the spring of 1895 D was abandoned and two new substations, K and L, situated in Flag and Dogfish Lakes respectively, were added to the list. My thanks are due to my instructor, Dr. S. A. Forbes, for his interest in my work and for counsel and guidance while the work was in course of preparation ; to Prof. Frank Smith and to Dr. C. A. Kofoid for suggestions and help in technique and research ; to Mr. C. A. Hart, who has kindly undertaken to revise the manuscript and prepare it for the printer; and to Miss Lydia M. Hart, who has contributed the figures. METHODS OF COLLECTION AND PRESERVATION. During the first season, in making collections in the river and in other places comparatively free from vegetation, a tow- net of No. 12 silk was used, both surface and oblique hauls being taken at intervals of from seven to ten days. The col- lections along shore and among plants were secured by means of a Birge net, or cone- dredge, at different intervals varying from fourteen to twenty-five days. Many kinds were ob- tained by squeezing out the water from vegetation ; while large forms, such as Megalotroclia and Conocltlla^, were picked out with forceps and pipette. In 189C Dr. C. A. Kofoid, Superintendent of the Station, introduced the use of a pump in making collections. This method has many advantages over the earlier ones, as by means of it collections can easily be made from any desired depth, or from among weeds where a tow-net could not be hauled. 304 llUnois State Ijdhoratori/ of Natiirol History. Several methods were followed in the preservation of the tows. Some of the material was killed in 50% alcohol and then transferred to 70% alcohol; another part was killed in 95% alcohol ; and picro-nitric acid, followed by TO^ alcohol, was extensively used. Flemraing's fluid as employed by Eousselet ('93), and a solution of potassium permanganate recommended by Zacharias ('94, p. 88) were also used. A second paper by Eousselet ('95), in which he describes the method of killing with ^ ^'^ osmic acid and then preserving in a 2.5% solution of formalin, was received in time to be used in connection with the work in 1895. In 1896 nearly all the qualitative catches were killed and preserved in 2% formalin. Good results were obtained in almost all cases. If one is limited in time and can have but one killing agent, formalin comes nearest being the ideal all-around killing fluid. By far the best results, however, are obtained with osmic acid, according to the process worked out by Eousselet ; l)ut the use of this agent requires much time and patience. PROTOZOA. The Protozoa present a very attractive field for study, including a large number and great variety of species. We find here a more marked difference in structure and form than among the Piotifera; yet all the Protozoa are either simple one-celled animals or colonies of single-celled individ- uals. They exhibit a great variety of structural detail, and range in length from 6 mm. to .005 mm. Many of the forms are marine, but a great number occur in fresh or stagnant water. Notwithstanding their diversity of structure, the Protozoa have, as a rule, the protoplasm or body substance differentiated into an inner part, called the endoplasm, and an outer envelope, called the ectoplasm. This differentiation may be temporary, as in the Rhizopoda, or permanent, as in the Fhujcllata and Infusoria. A single nucleus is usually present, though some species have more than one. The Infusoria are characterized by the presence of a paranucleus, or micronucleus, in addition to the larger nucleus, or mega- Protozoa and Rotifera at llacana, III. 305 nucleus. One or more contractile vacuoles are usually present except in the Sporozoa and Ci/stojhu/dlata, in which none have as yet been discovered. As a pool dries up, the Protozoa it contains assume a spherical shape and secrete about themselves a chitinous shell, when they are said to be encysted, the spheres being called cysts. In this condition they can readily withstand drought, and when rain comes and fills up the pool they revive, break through the chitinous envelope, and assume their former shape. Encystment may also take place just before spore formation. Protozoa occur abundantly in every pond or wayside pool as well as in the larger bodies of water, and one might naturally think that they would be favorites with the zoologists and be thoroughly well studied ; but in the United States there are only a few persons who have given much attention to them. Among these may be mentioned Prof. Joseph Leidy, Prof. D. S. Kellicott, and Dr. A. C. Stokes, each of whom has done much to awaken interest in these small forms and to bring them into notice. In order to get a good idea of the structure of the Protozoa we may now consider some typical forms of the various groups. The lowest of the I^rotozoa, belonging to the class Sarcodina, are the subclass RJuzopodd, or root-footed animals, so called because they send out a number of root-like processes of pro- toplasm, known as pseudojjodia, l)y means of which they move from place to place. Among the forms included under this head are Aiiurha, Diffiu(jia, Arcella, and Enghjpha. Amo'ha consists of a small portion of protoplasm differen- tiated into a granular endoplasm and a clear transparent contractile ectoplasm, and having a nucleus and contractile vacuole. As already indicated, the animal moves along by thrusting out processes of protoplasm in the direction of loco- motion. As these pseudopodia are thrust out at one part of the body they are draAvn in at another part. Because of this peculiar movement the Amaiba has no constant form, its shape changing continually. Aside from locomotion the 306 IllinoU State Lahoratory of Natural History. pseiidopodia also serve in obtaining food, for when they come in contact with a diatom, for example, they flow around it and entirely enclose it. Then the soft parts are digested, and as the Amo'ha moves along the undigested hard parts are extruded. The structure of Dljflugia is essentially the same as that of Amoiha, with the exception that the Dijjiiigia builds for itself a small shell or lorica, using sand, diatoms, and particles of other foreign matter. Arcella secretes a homo- geneous chitinous shell, which is usually free from ail foreign substance. Englyph.a secretes chitinous plates and then unites them to form its shell. The subclass Heliozoa includes a number of the Sarcodina characterized by having numerous thread-like pseudopodia. These are not continuously thrust out and retracted, but have a permanent form. The Radiolaria constitute another subclass of the Sarcodina, but as it includes only marine forms it is unnecessary to consider it here. The prevailing mode of reproduction among the Sarcodina is division, although budding and spore formation also occur. The class Sporozoa is composed of a number of Protozoa which reproduce by means of spore formation. The occur- rence of fission or budding among any members of the group has not as yet been demonstrated. All of them are parasitic, living in the intestines or in other organs or tissues of higher animals, and therefore show a marked degeneration of structure. Gregarina may be taken as a type. It is more or less oval in outline, with the protoplasm differentiated into a well-marked endoplasm and ectoplasm. The body is constricted at about one third of its length from the anterior end. A nucleus is present, but pseudopodia and the con- tractile vacuole are wanting. In the class MastigopJiora the members of the order Flagel- lata are characterized by the possession of one or more flagella which serve as organs of locomotion, and also aid the animal in securing food, since by means of them a constant current of water is directed towards the mouth. The well-known Engleva may be considered as a type. The body is elongate and more or less cylindrical, and is highly flexible and very Vrotozoa and Rot'ifera at Ilacana, III. '60l variable in shape. The endoplasm and ectoplasm are "well differentiated. From the anterior end of the body projects a long slender flagellum, just below which is the mouth opening. Near the base of the flagellum is the red stigma, sometimes called the eye-spot. A little behind this pigment spot is the contractile vacuole. This empties into a sort of vestibule. The posterior extremity of the body is, in some species, pro- longed into a short spine-like process. A large nucleus is present. The endoplasm usually contains anuml)er of starch bodies. The order T)inoji(igellat(ii\\c\\!i(\.Q^ Pcridinlum and Ceratinin, which have a hard covering or shell of modified cellulose. Contractile vacuole and nucleus are present. There are two flagella ; one extending out in front of the animal, while the other encircles the body and lies in an equatorial groove. The members of the class Infusoria have more or less of the surface of the body covered with fine cilia. These are permanently present in the subclass Clliata, but in the sub- class Snctoria are found only in the young. In the holotri- chous Ciliata they are comparatively uniform, and usually invest the entire body surface. By some authors these forms are all grouped under the name Iloloiricha. A large part of them, however, constitute a group sufficiently distinct from all other Ciliata to be ranked as a separate order, the Gymnostomata. The mouth is naked, and closed except when in use, the ^food being swallowed. In the remaining Ciliata, constituting the order Trichostomata, the mouth usually remains open, and the food is swept into it by the action of cilia or undulating membrane. The holotrichous Trichostomata form the suborder Aspiro- trieha, which is Avell represented by Paramecium aurelia, the slipiDer animalcule. Its body is elongate, pointed posteriorly, and rounded and slightly narrower anteriorly. The entire surface is covered with tine cilia. On the ventral surface is an anterior oblique groove, at the posterior end of which the oral opening is situated. The nucleus is large. Two con- tractile vacuoles are present, which usually assume a stellate appearance upon contracting The ectoplasm or cuticula is 308 Illbio'iH State Lahoratori/ of Natural History. provided with a number of rods called tricliocysts. These are used for defense, and are comparable with the nemato- eysts in Hydra. The suborder SpirotricJia, which includes the remaining ciliates, is characterized by the presence of a spiral or nearly circular wreath of cilia — the adoral wreath — leading to the mouth opening, and partly or entirely enclosing a usually well-marked area known as the peristome-field. This sub- order comprises four quite well-marked divisions, Heterotri- clia, Ollgotricha, Hypoti'icha, and Peritricha, distinguished largely by the ciliary structure and distribution. The Heterotrlchd have the body clothed with short, fine cilia and an adoral circle or spiral of longer cirrose cilia at the antei ior end, around the peristome-field. Stentor polymor- 2)]ms may be taken as typical of this group. The body is variable in form, but may be described as trumpet shaped, expanded anteriorly and attenuated posteriorly. It is some- times found in large attached colonies, and at other times is free-swimming. The body is covered with longitudinal rows of very fine cilia, while those around the peristome are modified into strong flattened structures. The left margin of the peristome is involuted, forming a little pocket, at the bottom of wdiicli is the oral opening. The endoplasm usu- ally contains a number of granules. The ectoplasm is supplied with a layer of fine longitudinal contractile fibrils, called the myophan. The contractile vacuole is large and the nucleus large and moniliform. The OUyotrlcha are a rather small group of short, rounded to obconic forms, with the peristome-field occupying the the anterior end, as in Stentor, and surrounded by a nearly or quite completely circular adoral wreath. The ciliation of the body varies in amount. A lorica is sometimes present. The Hypotrlcha difi^er from the other groups in that they are usually flattened and have the locomotor cilia upon the ventral surface. These cilia are frequently modified into strong styles or uncini. The dorsal surface is smooth or furnished with a few rows of stiff cilia. The oral and anal openings are distinct. Usually the peristome-field is on the Protozoa and Uotifcra at Havana, III. 309 anterior part of the ventral surface, triangular, and partly surrounded by the adoral wreath. Stylonichia may be re- garded as typical of this group. Its body is elongate, rounded at the ends, and persistent in shape. The cilia form a con- tinuous border around the ventral margin. The peristome- field is placed anteriorly'on the left side of the ventral surface. It is well supplied with cilia and with a band-like undulat- ing membrane. A number of the frontal cilia are modified into styles. There are several claw-like caudal seta;, and some anal spines. The contractile vacuole is single ; the nuclei two in number, usually oval. In the Peritricha the cilia are usually limited to an adoral wreath at the expanded end. Sometimes a circlet is present at the opposite end. The well-known Vorticclla, or bell ani- malcule, is a good example of this group. The body is spheroidal or more or less bell-shaped, and the ectoplasm is prolonged posteriorly into a stalk, by means of which the animal is attached. The myophan fil)rils of the body unite and form a large contractile muscular fiber extending through- out the length of the stalk. The cuticular surface is some- times transversely striated and otherwise ornamented. The right limb of the adoral ciliary wreath descends into the pocket or vestibulum, at the bottom of which the oral opening is situated. Contractile vacuoles one or several ; nucleus band-like, large. The subclass Suctoria is the most highly differentiated of the Infusoria. This is especially seen in the matter of repro- duction, for many of them reproduce by internal budding, Tokophrya may be considered as a type of this group. The body is usually i^ersistent in shape, more or less oval, and fastened by the attenuate posterior end to a rigid stalk. In- stead of cilia, the adult forms have a number of fine hair- like tentacles, either scattered irregularly over the anterior surface or arranged in several fascicles. These tentacles are slightly movable and may be extended or retracted, serving to capture prey and to convey food substance into the body ; for, notwithstanding their slender form, particles of food from the mass being fed upon may be seen passing within these 310 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural Htstorij. tentacles to the body of the Tokophrya. The nucleus is large and usually oval in shape ; the contractile vacuoles are one to several in number. All the members of this genus repro- duce by internal budding. The young Tohyphrija. is provided ^vith an equatorial circle of cilia, by means of which it swims rapidly through the water, later fastening itself to some object, when the cilia disappear and the form of the adult begins to be assumed. METHODS OF CAPTI'KE AND STUDY. All of the methods of capture suggested on a later page for the Roti.fera will answer equally well for the Protozoa. Of course, infusions of hay or grass will furnish certain kinds. The method of keeping water from ponds and ditches in watch-glasses as described for the Rotifera, if duly attended to, will not fail to give satisfactory results. Considerable attention should l)e given to the examination of small Crustacea, aquatic insect larvae, pond snails, small turtles, and crayfishes, as many Protozoa are likely to be found upon them. Vorticella may be found on the roots of Lemna, or on fixed aquatic plants. Whenever possible, Protozoa should be studied alive. Good results were obtained in the preservation of Tokoplirya quadrijjartita by the following jDrocess. A small colony was transferred to a drop of water upon a slide and a cover- glass placed over it, the cover-glass being raised by little supports of wax so that it did not touch the zooids. A drop of an aqueous solution of corrosive sublimate was then added and allowed to remain about half a minute, when it was washed out aiul 30"'o alcohol substituted, this being grad- ually changed to TO''^. Next, the zooids w^ere stained for about twenty minutes in Kleinenberg's htematoxylin and then decolorized with acidulated alcohol, consisting of .5"^( hydro- chloric acid in 70% alcohol, which in turn was well washed out with pure 10% alcohol. Then the alcohol was gradually changed to 95%, after which clove oil was substituted and allowed to remain until the zooids were clear. Finally they were mounted in balsam. All the changes from water to Protozoa (ind liotijera at Havana, III. 811 balsam were made on the slide by the irrigation process, that is, by placing a drop of the li(}uid on the slide at the edge of the cover-glass, and then drawing it under the cover-glass by means of blotting-paper. The Tokoplirya was attached to Opercularia, and many of the latter genus were killed well expanded, thus suggesting the idea that this method could probably Ije used with good results for other Vorticellidce. GEOGEAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION. There is probably no place on earth, unless it be a sandy desert or a subterranean stream, where Protozoa may not be found. No stream is too clear or pond too muddy for them to thrive in. They are found in the warm waters of the tropics and in the icy waters of the northern countries. The United States stands next to Europe in the number of recorded species. A consideralde number are also found in Australia. There are many cosmopolitan species, which is not so re- markable wdien we consider that the light cysts may very readily be carried long distances by air currents. FOOD RELATIONS. But little attention has been paid to the food of the Proto- zoa, and it is very desirable that students should make and record careful observations along this line. In general it is known that Amo'ha, Arcella, T)ifflu[ihi, Vor- ticella, Opercularia, and the like, feed largely on diatoms and desmids, diatoms especially seeming to be a favorita food of such forms as Vortleella and Opercularia. EiKjleiia has been found within the body of Opercidaria, and Tohophyra and Acincta i\.Ye predaceous, living upon other Protozoa. Individuals of the latter genus have been seen to kill and devour Vorticella. Schewiakoff ('93) says that rotifers, daphiiids, and Ouetonotiis also serve as food for Protozoa. No doubt many of the species that possess chlorophyll derive some nourishment from gases, as plants do ; while other forms absorb organic matter in solution in the water. It is probably true that plants constitute a larger proportion of their food than animals, but the data on this point are so meager that no general statement can be made. 312 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural Tlistorij. On the other hand, the Protozoa play an important part in the food of other organisms. Many rotifers feed freely upon them, and even young fishes iiave been found with Difflugia in their stomachs. Eufilena, Volvox, Pandnrina, Dlffiiigia, and Codoiiella are among the forms observed in the stomachs of rotifers ; but so few observations on this subject have been recorded, that very little information can be gathered at present. LOCAL DISTRIBUTION. In the waters from which our Station collections were made the Protozoa were not so abundant nor so widely distributed as the rotifers. In all, ninety-three species are recorded, one of which {Difflugia fragosa) is here described for the first time. Species which could not be identified with certainty are not included in the list. The most widely distributed form Avas Difflugia glohulosa, which appeared at every substation and was present in nearly every month of the year. Other species of Difflugia and species of Arcclla were found during a considerable part of the year, including the summer months. Dinohryon scrtularia was very abundant, occurring from December to June; Eugleiia riridls ^vas observed throughout the summer months ; Volrox glohator was found in every month except February ; Coleps hirtus was present from May to October ; and (Jodonella cratera was frequently seen from April to September. All through the summer months many species of VorticcUa, Epistylis, and Opercularia were taken in the tow- ings or upon the backs of turtles and the larger Crustacea, but few of them could be definitely determined. A number of the species here recorded were found in aquaria started with dried mud from the bed of Phelps Lake. I have found it very difficult to make a sharp distinction between the littoral or shore forms, and the so-called pelagic or limnetic forms found in the open Avaters. These waters were so shallow — the average depth at the various substations ranging from two to twelve feet — and so full of vegetation, that the only species that seemed entitled to be considered as Protozoa and Rotifera. at Ilarana, III. 313 pelagic were those that evidently preferred clear open water, free from vegetation. Thirty-five of the species here treated were found in open water, either in surface, hottom, or oblique towings. They are as follows : Arcella vulgaris Ehrl)g. Arcella vulgaris discoides Leidy. Arcella vulgaris angulosa Leidy. Arcella dentata Ehrbg. Difflugia globulosa Duj. Difflugia pyriformis Perty. Difflugia acuminata Ehrbg. Difflugia lobostoma Leidy. Difflugia corona Wallich. Difflugia aculeata Ehrbg. Difflugia tuberculosa Hempel. Difflugia fragosa n. sp. Actinophrys sol Ehrbg. ActinospluTerium eichhornii Ehrl)g. Eaphidiophrys pallida Schulze. Dinobryon sertularia Ehrbg. Euglena viridis Ehrbg. Euglena spirogyra Ehrbg. Euglena acus Ehrbg. Euglena oxyuris Schmarda. Euglena torta Stokes. Trachelomonas acuminata Schmarda. Phacus longicauda Ehrbg. Phacus pyrum Ehrbg. Volvox globator Ehrbg. Pleodorina californica Shaw. Cryptomonas ovata Ehrbg. Peridinium tabulatum Ehrbg. Ceratium brevicorne Hempel. Paramecium aurelia 0, F. Mull. Stentor polymorphus 0. F. Mull. Stentor cieruleus Ehrbg. Stentor barretti Barrett. Halteria grandinella 0. F. MiUl. Codonella crateia Leidy. Tintinnopsis illinoisensis Hempel. To these might be added Didinhim )tasuti(iii 0. F. IMiilL, mentioned by Zacharias ('94a), and Trachelomonas caudata Ehrbg, both of which were found in aquaria started with mud from the bottom of Phelps Lake. One peculiar fact noted was the occurrence of a number of Rhizopoda in the surface towings. Prof. Frank Smith ('94) lists three species as occurring in surface collections in Lake St. Clair; Dr. C. A. Kofoid lists eight species from the waters 314 Illinois State Laboratorfj of Natural History. of Lake Michigan ; while at Havana nine forms were found. These are as follows : Arcella vulgaris Ehrbg. Difflugia globulosa Duj. Arcella vulgaris tliscoides Difflugia pyriformis Perty. Leidy. Dit'Hugia lobostoma Leidy. Arcella vulgaris angulosa Difflugia corona Wallich. Leidy. Difflugia aculeata Ehrbg. Arcella dentata Ehrbg. These forms appeared in the surface collections frequently, being at times quite a constant factor in the catches. CLASSIFICxVTION. Many different classifications of the Protozoa have been proposed, but the arrangement given by Biitschli ('80-'89) has been followed throughout in the construction of this list. Kent's " Manual of the Infusoria" ('80-82) was mainly used in the determination of the species of that class. For the species described since the publication of Kent's Manual and Leidy's Ehizopods ('79) citations are given, by date, to the works containing the original descriptions, and these titles may be found in the list of literature appended to this paper. SYNOPSIS OF THE HIGHEE GROUPS OF PROTOZOA.* I. Class S<(rco(lina. Forms that move about by a simple protoplasmic movement, by a flowing motion, or by the formation of protoplasmic processes (pseudopodia). • 1. ^nhclnss llhizoj)oila. Form usually protean ; pseudo- podia lobose or slender, more or less temporary struct- ures without axial support, often restricted by a shell to a part of the body surface. Order Rhizopoda. (Includes all the recent forms of this subclass.) 1. Suborder Anuelxea. Naked; pseudopodia lobose or filiform. Two families ; one mostly marine. Am(vhid(e. Pseudopodia usually lobose, never form- ing a network. *Compili'. urceolata appeared in these aquaria, as well as other forms which will be mentioned in their proper place. 13. D. acuminata Ehrbg. Like 1>. pjir'iformh, this was scarce, but generally dis- tributed through the year and at the various substations. It also occurred under the ice at C in February, and in Matan- zas Lake. With one exception it was found only in the tow- ings. 14. D. lobostom.ata Leidy. This species was very generally distributed. It was found almost entirely in the towings, associated with D. globidosa. In the fall it became common and even abundant, but was noticeably sparser in winter. This species was among those collected from under the ice at C in February. It is also recorded from Matanzas Lake. 320 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, D. lohostomata may be easily mistaken at first for D. glohu- losa. It is smaller than glolndosa, Lowever, and long in proportion to its width. I have found both species in the stomachs of rotifers. 15. D. corona Wallich. This beautiful and attractive species was moderately com- mon throughout the year, less common in winter, appearing in collections from nearly all of the substations, usually in towings, but often also in shore collections. Schewiakoff ('93) identifies this species with I), lohostoma, but in my judgment the two species are distinct. D. corona is larger and more spherical than lohostoma, and the fundus always bears one or more spines. In corona, the border of the mouth has quite a number of lobes or crenulations, while in lohostoma there are usually but three or four lobes present. Among all the specimens of D. lohostoma that I have ex- amined there was but one which had more than three lobes ; and, on the other hand, I have never seen a corona with so small a number of lobes. 16. D. aculeata Ehrbg. Centropyxis aculeata Ehrbg. The record of this species shows it to be much scarcer than the two preceding, although occurring pretty uniformly through the year. It was found both in towings and shore collections, and seems to prefer weedy waters. 17. D. tuberculosa Hempel ('96). Found in three out of six towings taken on one occasion in Matanzas Lake in August. But few individuals were found. In the following season a few examples were taken in the river channel at E in September and October. It is easily recognized and remembered by its irregular outline and by the presence of tubercles. 18. D. fragosa, n. sp. (Fig. 1, 2.) This form was found several times, and seems to be new. Protozoa and Rotifera at Havana, III. 321 Fig. 1, Diniuiiia fra gosa, n. sp. Lateral view. Shell composed of fine sand grains, irregular in form, about one and a half times as long as wide, widest at fundus, thence tapering to the mouth where it is slightly constricted ; mouth irregular, slightly notched. The peculiarity of this species is the presence upon the fundus of from one to eight ascending i3rocesses or spines, rounded at tip. These originate at about the middle of the shell, giving an irregular out- line to the shell when seen from above. Pseudopodia simple, line, and few in number. Length .23 mm., width .15 mm. It appeared occasionally from August to Noveml)er of the second year in towings, mostly from the river at E, with a few from lake substations (G and C). Family EUGLYPHID^ffi. EUGLYPHA Du.T. Shell uniaxial, formed of round or hexagonal silicious plates in overlapping rows ; mouth opening usually toothed. Pseudopodia not anastomosing. 19. E. alveolata Duj. Bare, occurring only in a towing from C in May. Fig. 2, DiflBugia fra- gosa n. sp. View showing mouth opening. Subclass HELIOZOA. (Sun Animalcules). Order APHEOTHOEACA. ACTINOPHRYS EhkBG. Body soft, spherical, with numerous radiating fine fila- mentous pseudopodia ; endosarc finely granular ; ectosarc vacuolated ; division between the two not well marked. Nucleus single, central ; usually a large contractile vacuole m the periphery. 322 IlUnoifi State Lahoratorfj of Natural History. 20. A. sol Ehrbg. Tins occurred only during the warmer half of the year, from June to October, largely in collections from among vegetation, where it was on one occasion quite common. A few were found in lake towings. AcTiNOSPH^muM Stein. Body spherical, with numerous long tapering radiating pseudopodia ; protoplasm vacuolated, vacuoles of the ectosarc larger than those of the endosarc, the division between endo- sarc and ectosarc distinctly marked. Nuclei numerous ; contractile vacuoles located at the periphery. 21. A. eichhornii Ehrbg. This interesting and fine species was seen only a few times, appearing in towings from the river and Dogfish Lake from July to September. Order CHALAKATHORACA. Raphidiophrys Archer. Isolated, or united into colonies. Body spherical, with numerous fine, long, straight, radiating pseudopodia ; division between endosarc and ectosarc not distinct. One or more nuclei. Surface layer densely filled with fine, straight or curved spicules, tangentially arranged. 22. R. pallida Ehrbg. Found in small numbers in towings from substation C, in Quiver Lake, during July and August. 23. R. elegans Hertw. Less. Rare, occurring only in September, in towings from C. Class MASTIGOPHORA. Order ELAGELLATA. Su])order MONADINA. Family HETEROMONADIDJE. Subfamily Dendromonadin^. Anthophysa Bory. Zooids minute, obliquely pyriform, united into round clusters of fifty to sixty, which are borne upon the extremities Protozoa and Rotifera '. Bot. Gazette, Vol. XIX., pp. 279-283, PI. XXVI 1. Smith, Frank. '94. IJst of the Protozoa -and ]Mollusca observed in I^ake St. Clair in the Summer of 1893. Bull. Mich. Fish Comm., No. 4, pp. 42-44. Stokes, A. C. '85. Some apparently undescribed Infusoria from Fresh Water. Am. Nat., Vol. XIX., pp. 18-27. 8 fig. '85a. Some New Infusoria from American Fresh Water.s. Ann. and ^lag. Nat. Hi.st., Ser. V , Vol. XV., pp. 437-449, PI. XV. 388 Illinois State Lahoj-atory of Natural History. '87. Notices of New Fresh-water Infusoria. VI. Am. Monthly Micr. Jouru., Vol. VIII., pp. 141-147, PI. VIII. '87a. Microscopy for Beginners, xiii + 308 pp., 178 fig. New York. '88. A Preliminary Contribution toward a History of the Fresh- water Infusoria of the United States. Journ. Trenton Nat. Hist. Soc, Vol. I., pp. 71-319, PI. I.-XIII. Turner, C. H. '92. Notes upon the Cladocera, Copepoda, Ostracoda, and Rotifera of Cincinnati, with Descriptions of New Species. Bull. Sci. Lab. Dehison Univ., Vol. VI., Pt. II., pp. 57-74, PI. I., II. Wierzejski, A. '91. Liste des Rotiferes observes en Galicle. Bull. Soc. Zool. France, T. XVI., pp. 49-52. 4 tig. '92. Rotatoria (Wrotki) Galicyi. Rozpr. Wydz. mat.-przyr. Akad. Umiej. w Krakowie, T. XXVI., pp. 160-265, Tab. IV.-VI.' Zacharias, Otto. '93. Faunistische und biologische Beobachtungen am Gr. Ploner See. Forschungsber. aus der Biol. Station zu Plon, Th. I,, pp. 3-44, PI. I. '94. Faunistische Mittheiluugeu. Ibid., Th. II., pp., 57-90, Taf. I., II. 2 fig. in text. '94a. Beobachtungen am Plankton des Gr. Ploner See's. Ibid., Th. II., pp. 91-137. '95. Faunistische Mittheilungen. Ibid., Th. III., pp. 73-96, Taf. I., II. '95a. Fortsetzung der Beobachtung liber die Periodicitiit der Plank- ton wesen. Ibid., Th. III., pp. 129-144. '95b. Quantitative Untereuchungen iiber das Limuoplankton. Ibid., Th. III., pp. 1-64. JAN 16 1900 BULLETIN OF THE Illinois Qtate I aboratory NATURAL HISTORY. Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME V. ARTICLE VII.— FIRST SUPPLEMENT TO THE CHECK-LIST OF THE COCCI DyE. BY T. D. A. COCKERELL. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, TRIJANA, ILLINOIS. January, 1899. Stafi: Laboratory of Natural History LABORATORY STAFF Professor SxEriiEN Alfred Fokhes, Ph. D., Director of State Laboratory and State Entomologist. Charles Arthur Hart. Systematic Entomologist and Curator of Collections. Frank Smith, A. M., Assistant Zoologist. Charles Atwood Kofoh), Ph. D., Zoologist, and Superintendent of Biological Station. Ernest Browninc. Forres, B. S.. Entomological Assistant. Wallace Crak;, B. S. Zoological Assistant. Mary Jane Snyder, Secretary. Henry <, etc.) (2.) Er'wcoccin'i. Anal ring hairy, hairs normally 8. {Ei-iococciia, etc.) (B.) Ddctijlopiime. Newly hatched larva without dorsal spines, last antennal joint usually long. (1.) Sphd'vococc'nii . Anal ring hairless. [Spherococcm^.) (2.) Dacti/lopiini. Anal ring hairy, hairs normally G. (Thictylopuix, etc.) Species which were in the original list, here repeated to indicate varieties, synonyms, etc., have the original numbers. Since the Check-List was written, the following new writers have described and named Coccuhe. To facilitate corre- spondence I give their addresses : Bogue, E. E., Stillwater, Oklahoma. Cooley, E. A., Agricultural College, Amherst, Mass. ♦Article Xr.. Vol.VX'.. of this series. 390 Illinois State Ijaboraton/ of' Niitii)-((l Historfi. Charnioy, D. d'Emmerez de, Port Louis, Mauritius. Ehrborn, E. M., Mountain View, Sta. Clara Co., Cal. Euller, Claude, Department of Agriculture, Cape Town, S. Africa. Hunter, S. J., Lawrence, Kansas. Iliering, H. von, S. Paulo, Brazil. King, (t. B., Lawrence, Mass. Leonardi, (1., Portici, Italy. Lidgett, .L, ]\Iyrniong, Victoria, Australia. Newell, W., Ames, Iowa. Pergande, Tlieo., Dept. Agriculture, Washington, I). C. Tinsley, J. I)., Mesilla Park, New Mexico. I may also permit myself to mention that my own address is now Mesilla Park, New Mexico. (Not Mesilla, nor Las Cruces.) COCCID^E. Monophlebiiia'. Callipappus, Giu'r." ' 79S. fiiriiiosus, Fnll. 799. bufo. Full. Protortonia, Towns.'-' MOO. iiiexicanoruu), t'/dl. 801. priinitiva, 7Vnr;is. leery a, Sign. ;>;». })iirchasi. Mask. r. niaskelli. Ckll. r. crawii, ('/dl. 42. seycliellaniiu. ]Ve!ilir. r. all'oliitea, ('/dl. SO'2. foniiiearuin, Xeicst. s. u". I'l-diiccnjii.. ( 'kll. S03. littoralis, Cldl. >■. niiniosa', ( '/dl. Crypticerya, Ckll. SOL midata. .Uaslc. 805. ewarti, Neiost. 806. hempeli, <'/dl. 807. towiisendi, Cl>ll. V. plucbeje, C/dl. Margarodiiitv. Margarodes, Guili). 57. formicaruin, Guild. V. rileyi, Giard. 808. trinieni. Giard. s. «f. Sp/id-raapis, Giard. 809. capensis, Giard. Ortlieziiu:v. Orttiezia, Bosc. 810. delavaiixi, T/di'b. 811. artemisia^, C/cll. 812. clieilantbi, Tinsl. 813. graniiuis, Tinsl. 814. uioiiticola. (JlcU. 81.5. garryjF. Cldl. Ortfieziola, Side. 810. signoreti, Haller. 817. fodiens, Giard. fl.) Mr. Fuller stales that Cn'/ostoma ('//■■i/r'tlc, ininianc and riihUji, belong to CiiUipappnx. {•i.) The name Oiionin is i>reoecn|iied. .r Maskell. A Check-List of the Coccidce. 391 Cocci u«;. Coccus, L.'^' 818. opuntise, Licht. MS.. Gkll. ? s. of toraeiitosiis, Lam. V. iiewsteadi, Ckll. 819. acacias. Mask. Eriococcus, Targ. 820. formicicola. y^wst. 821. thymela'a*, Xncst. 822. ilevoniensi.s, Green. 823. greeni. Neicst. 824. gilletti. Tmsl. 825. arenosus, Ckll. 826. tinsleyi. Ckll. 827. adenostomai, Ehrh. 828. spiniger, Mask. 829. simplex, Mask. V. dealbata. Mask. 84. paradoxus, Mask. V. simplex, 3Iask. V. iudica. Mask. 830. exiguus, Mask. 831. graminis, Mask. 832. elegans. Full. 833. apiomorpha-, Full. 834. hakeas, F?i««. 835. imperfectus. Full. 836. tricarinatus, i'^it/i. 837. agonis, FtiU S38. cj'preaeformis, Full. Olliffia, Full. 839. eucalypti, Full. Rhizococcus, Sign. 840. tripartitus, Fnll. 100. casuarina;. Mask. V. mancus. Mask. Lachnodius, Mask. 203. eucalypti, Mask. 841. lectularius. Mask. 842. hirtus, 3Iask. Dactylopius, Costa. 843. syringfe, Mask. 844. edgeworthia-, Ckll. 845. hirsutus, Neiost. 846. prosopidis, Ckll. 847. gutierrezise. Ckll. 848. dasylirii, Ckll 175. sorghiellus, For}>es. V. kiugii, Ckll. V. neomexicanus, Tinsl. 849. lichtensioides, ( kU. 850. pseudonipa'. Ckll. 851. claviger. Kimi & Tinsl. 852. quaintancii. Tinsl. 853. azaleas Tinsl. 854. cockerelli, A7?i(/ iC Tins/. 855. bambusai. Green. 856. rimula\ Green. 857. lauigerus, i'^?t?^. 858. macrozamia!, Ftill. 859. similans, Lidgett. 194. graminis. Mask. V. orieutalis. Mask. 205. calceolarias. Mask V. minor, 3Iask. 177. virgatus, CA7;. s. ceriferus, Neivst. s. talini, Green. Phenacoccus, Ckll. 860. comari, Kunoio. 861. solenopsis, Tinsl. 862. american;e, Kmrj <(• CA;W. 140. helianthi, Gkll. V. gossypii, Toions. d': Ckll. 1121. minimus, Tinsl. Ripersia, Sign. 863. europa^a, Neicst. 864. tumida, Newst. 865. filicicola, Newst. 866. montana, Neiost. 867. kingii, CA;Zi. 868. lasii, C^«. 869. flaveola. OA:Z;. 870. blancbardii, A'mgr & Gkll. 871. cuneiformis. Green. 872. myrmecopliila. Mask. (•i.) Mr. E. E. Green informs me that Coccwilanhjer,'^ . F. Kirb., is Walkerianafloriger. 392 Illinois State Lahoratory of Natural History. Kermicus, Xewst. 890. wroughtoni, Newst. 8. g. Choitococcus, Mask.'*' 318. bambusae, Mask. 891. graminis. Mask. Sphcerococcus, Mask. 892. rugosvis. Mask. V. elongatus. Mask. 893. pulchellus, Mask. 894. socialis, Mask. 319. acacia'. Mask. V. melaleuca', Full. 895. leaii. Ftdl 896. tepperi. Fnll. 897. ethela:;, Full. 898. morrisoui, Fttll. 899. obscuratus, Mask. 323. iiiflatipes, 3Iask. V. simplicior, 3Iask. 900. populi, Mask. 901. parvus, 3Iask. 1120. sylvestris, Ckll. d- King. Olliffiella, Ckll. 902. cristicola, Ckll. Oylindrococcus, Mask. 903. gracilis, Frill. 331. amplior, Mask. s. Crocidocysta froggatti, Rubs. Asterolecaniiniie. Lecaniodiaspis, Targ. 904. tessellatus, ('kll. 90.5. artemisia\ Ckll. 900. mimosa'. Mask. 907. radiatus, Ckll. 908. manihotis, Tovms. 909. atherosperma*. Mask 910. melaleiu'se, Full. (4.) Ne^Tsubgenus. W^eU diPtingnished by the very peculiar legs, as i\ii\uv(j. V. mix, Full. 283. conica, Froij. s. regularii?. Tepp. s. similis, liuhs. 275. niunita, Schrad. s. cornifex, ll'ul>a. V. tricornis, Frog. 297. stroinbjiosa, Tepp. s. crispa, Full. 294. urnalis, Tepp. V. schraderi, Full. 921. excupula. Full. Ascelis, Schrad. 922. melaleuca', Full. Opisthoscelis, Schrad. 923. conica, Full. Cystococcus, Full. 924. echiniformis, Full. Lecaniinse. Kermes, Aiictt. 925. austini, Ehrh. 926. pettiti, Ehrh. 927. ceriferu-s. Ehrh. 928. kingii, Ckll. 929. nivalis, Khuj & Ckll. 930. pubescens, Hoijue. 931. bo>?uei, Ckll. 032. cockerelli, Ehrh. 933. nigropunctatus,^ArA.irl."^' V. alienum, Dougl.'^^ 447. minimum, Npirst. V. ])inicola, 3lask. 449. tessellatum. Sign. ■V. swainsonai, Ckll. V. perforatum, A'ews^(450.) 940. flaveolum, Ckll. 941. ventrale, Ehrh. 942. impar, Ckll 943. rliizophora^, C^ll. 944. chilaspidis, Ckll. 945. erythrina", von Iher. 946. perconvexum, Ckll. 047. tuberculatum. Towns. A-Ckll. 948. townsendi, Ckll. 486. scrobiculatum, Mask. (7.) The changes in the synonymy are made on the authority of Mr. P'uller. (8.) So given on Mr. Ne\vstea, Towns, and Ckll. 994. crescentia-, Ckll. 99r). hakearum. Fnll:^~> Pseudophilippia, Ckll. 99t). (|uaintaiieii, <^'kll. Couchaspina^. Conchaspis, Ckll. 997. socialis, Green. 995. iiewsteadi, Ckll. Diaspin;x% Aspidiotus, Bouchc. :^is. lieder?e, Vail 'i'*' ? «. capparis, Ta//. s. nerii. Bunch,'. s. aftiais, Tanj. s. ceratoni.T', Siiui. s. erica'. Boisd. N. deuticulatiis. '/'«;•;/. s. jjenista', W/'.^tw. .S-. f^iiidii, Sit/n. s. corinocarpi, Culv/e. s. ilicis, Sign, s. leiitiscl, Siijn. s. olea', Colvi'c. s. villosus, Tur[i. .-■. aloes, Boisd. s. budleia', Si(jn. s. cycadicola, Baisd. s. epldendri, BoucJu'. .s. myrsina-, Sign. s. obliquus. Costa. f. bouchei, Tanj. s. palmarum. BouchJ. s. vriesciip, Sign. ■V. carpodeti, Mask. 999. traiisparens. Green. V. simillimus, Ckll. 1000. persearum, Ckll. 1001. britanuicus, Newst. 1002. fraxini, "^^/M??i," Henry. 1003. maculatus, Newst. 1004. excisus, Gre^'u. 1005. piitearius. Green. 1006. inoorel. Green,. 1007. artocarpi. Green. 1008. bilobis. Mask. 1009. implicatus, Mask. 1010. virescens, Mask. 1011. dryandrai, Full. 1012. iiiveus, Full. 626. eucalypti, Mask. V. comatus. Mask. s. g. Morganelld, Ckll. 1013. maskelli. C/t//. cs-. ornatus, Mask. s. g. Targionia, Sign. 1014. bigelovia?, CA:«. 1015. dearnessi, Ckll. 1016. yuccarum, CiZ^. 8. g. Odonasjiis, Leon. (Spatheaspis, Leon.) 1017. inusitatus, Green. 1018. bambusarnni, CA7/. 560. secrefcus, 6%^^. V. lobulatus, 3Iask. 1019. canal iculatus. Green. s. g. Selenaspidus , Ckll. 603. articulatiis, Morcj. V. celastri. Mask. s. g. Phaulaspis, Leon. 1020. hakea\ 3lask. s. g. Chentraspis, Leon. 622. unilobis, Mask. p. g. Aspidiella. Leon. G12. sacciiari, Ckll. { 12.") Described as a rtoubtful LemuUMlimpis. I have specimens from Fuller. (13.) Tlie synonymy. e-\ce|ii the first name, is after Berlese and Leonardi. The names cited as synonyms doubtless represent at least several good varieties. .\. /lederie is the type of subg. E>yt.spi(ti, Cooley. 1125. platani, Cooley. 725. furfurus. Fitch, )\ ulmi, Ckll. i\ fiilva, King. 72(1. salicis-nigra", Wa/sh. .s\ briineri, C/dl.'^>^> 728. pinifoli;p. Fitch. 11. heteropbj'Uic. Cooley. V. semiaurea. C/dl. 730. spartina?, Comst. >\ natalensis, 3Ias/,-. 731. lintneri. Comst. 'K betula', Cooley. 733. prunicola, Jlask.'^'" V. tbea'. Mask. 1093. agonis, Full. 1094. etbela'. Full. 1095. xantborrha'a', /•'////. 109G. saccbarifolii, '/.I'lniinn-. 1097. depressa, ZrJintnrr. 1098. liowardi, Cooley. 1099. lounsburyi, Cooley. 1100. simplex, Green.. 1101. cb in en sis, C'AZ^. 1102. latissima. Ckll. 1103. aucuba", Cooley. 1104. wistaria\ Cooley. 1105. eocleo?«. Diaspis, Costa. 1109. gennadii, Leon. 1110. olea", Coloce. 651. amjgdali, Tryon. r. rubra, 3Lisk. 1111. jtersimilis, Ckll. 1112. i)afcliaridis. Towws. A- Ckll. 1113. pboradendri, CAW. 1114. crawii, Ckll. 1115. fagra'a^ Green. 1116. iorantbi, (rlreen. s. g. Epidicspis, Ckll. 1117. piricola, Z'e? Ciiercio. s. fallax, Horvoth. 1118. snowii, i7"y/?('r.'2'" Howardia, Berl. & Leon. 719. biclavis, Comst. Protodiaspis, (Jkll. 1119. parvulus, r'/7/. (Ki.) P/ifinacaxpix, Cooley niiil ('I<11., will be a new genus to include P. n.v&srp, rhincnsifi, euf/eiiitf, etc., hitherto placed in rhiiiiKiNpi.s. Mr. Cooley and the present writer agree that these forms have no genetic relationship with gcrinine C/iionmjns except through Aii.lw:fi..\pi.\ and TKa-tpi.s. I leave Mr. Cooley to publish the generic characters and classify the species. (IT.) Mr. (jooley is responsible for llie synonymy. (18.) According to Mr. Cooley. (1!).) Mr. Cooley finds that specimens of r. pruuivoht from Mr. Maskell are Dia.spi.s (i)/iriaik(, in fUirope, was long confounded with .{.s/i/dia/i/.s ostrt'oforiiiis. OAN 16 1900 BULLETIN OF THE Illinois Qtate I aboratory OK NATURAL HISTORY, Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME Y. ARTICLE' VII I.— A STATISTICAL STUDY OF THE PARA- SITES OF THE UXIONID.F. BY H. M. KELLY, A. M. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, I Ur.ANA. ILLINOIS. 'March, J899. State Laboratory of Natural History. LABORATORY STAFF. Professor Stephen Alfred Forhes, Ph. 1)., Director of State Lnborator\i and State Entomologist. Charles Arthur Hart, Systematic Entomologist and Curator of Collections. Frank Smith, A. M., Assistant Zoologist. Charles Atwood Koeou). Ph. D., Zoologist, and Superintendent of Biological Station. Wallace CRAKi, B, S., Zoological Assistant. Mary Jane Snyder. Secretarti. Hexky Clinton Forbes, Business Agent and Librarian. Lydia Moore Hart, Artist. «IAM lf{ 1900 Article YIII. — .1 St(tfi.'itictt(»m for the most part, draining 400 Illinois State Laboratori/ of Natin-(il Ilistorij. a rolling' prairie region. (6) Abbey Creek is a small, slug- gish, and muddy tributary of the Cedar, flowing through a wooded region of rich black soil. (7) The Schuylkill River at Phcenixville, Pa., is rapid and shallow, with a rocky bed. Its waters are largely contaminated with the sewage of the populous region, through which it flows, with manufacturers' wastes, and with the acid pumpings of anthracite coal mines. (8) Pickering Creek, a tributary of the Schuylkill, is an uncontaminated, swift-flowing stream, constant in volume, and draining a restricted rocky area. (9) French Creek, a near-by l)ranch of the Schuylkill, is of similar size, but traverses a country of clay soils, and is suljject to frequent inundations. (10) The West Branch of the Susquehanna Piiver is, upon most of its course, a large but shallow mountain stream with rapid current. It is quiet for some miles at Lewisburg, Pa., where it crosses one of the fertile valleys of the Appalachian system. Fifteen huiulred and thirty-seven individual unios from the above localities, belonging to forty-four species, were person- ally examined by me with reference to their parasites ; and with the data thus obtained I have incorporated the results of an examination of seventy- seven individuals, belonging to eighteen species, made by Dr. C. A. Kofoid in 1895 and 189G, which were placed at my disposal. It is unfortunate that my material did not furnish equal representation for each host species, and that the examination extended over such a long period of time. For control on both these points an effort was made to examine, if possible, about twenty indi- viduals of each species which were all taken at the same time from the same locality and under the same conditions. Whenever it was practicable individuals of or above the adult average in size and age were chosen for examination. Only ninety-seven of the sixteen hundred and fourteen indi- viduals examined could be regarded as immature, and these were well distributed among the several species. The inclu- sion of records for these younger and smaller individuals would presumably reduce somewhat both the probability of and capacity for infestation. However, in the case of A Sttul// of the Pdrasitcs of the Unionidie. 401 Tahlk L Geo(;kai'Hk ai. Distribution of I'nionid.k Examinki). NAMES OK SPECIES. p _ o E— s Illinois. Iowa. Pennsylvania 0 0 0 • fo 0 a •r. o < 0 0 < 71 < 3 D C B •0 c 0 p "-I < > 0 D 0 a 3 0 a Sore n 0=' CO ra 7t V Quadrula multipJicata Lea. tuberculata Bar. metanevra Kaf. lachryniosa Lea. a.speriiMia Lea. pustulata T^ea. granifera Lea. pustulosa Lea. plicata Say. trigona Lea. rubij^inosa Lea. ebena Lea. Uiiio gibbosus Bar. coniplanatus Sol. heterodon Lea. Alasinodonta confragosaSay complaiiataBar rugosa Bar. marginata Say undulata Say tappanianaLea Strophitus edentulus Lea. Anodonta imbecilis Say. .suborbiculata Saj grandLs Lea. corpulenta Coop. Obliquaria reliexa Raf. Plagiola securisLea. elegans Lea. donaciforiiii.s Lea. Lampsilis parvus Bar. ellipsis Lea. higgiusii Lea. ligameiitinus Lam luteolus Lain, nasiitus Say. anodontoideslea rectus Lam. ochraceus Say. veil tricosus Bar. alatus Say. bevissimus Lea. gracilis Bar. teuuissimus Lea 28 41 36 29 21 20 1 87 89 27 40 23 35 137 35 VA 18 51 3 1 30 49 20 8 45 32 5 48 37 31 14 1 91 25 4 (i2 49 1 108 60 89 5 26 18 2 '21 20 1 29 45 22 1 23 25 2 21 2 3 2 1 1 1 1 3 3 2 3 1 2 4 3 2 4 2 3 1 1 6 2 1 2 2 3 1 3 3 2 '> *T 3 4 2 3 3 1 4 3 2 .3 ] 2 34 ?9 28 8 30 36 1 38 10 62 1 14 1 20 2 41 34 11 ] s 1 37 17 1 8 30 20 3 1 1 12 47 '35 26 5 25 21 '>5 2 IS 2 Ci 1 "3 i 20 5 10 5 3 3 20 13 6 3 1 24 11 11 2 2 65 2 10 3 1 49 10 4 2 9 37 1 10 38 1 40 2 3 3 16 40 56 19 33 5 5 42 2 Totals \ Individuals. 1 Species. 1614 ( 44 361 32 60 24 50 2 30^ 9 195 23 16 3 45 3 47 6 402 Illinois State Lalioratorif of Natxral Hlstori/. Qiiadriihi iniHtnlosa* where the highest proportion of under- sized individuals is inchided in the tabulation, — twenty out of eighty-seven, — it appears that the infestation of these younger hosts did not differ materially' in kind or degree from that of the larger individuals. The sex of fourteen hundred and eighty-three individuals of the sixteen hundred and fourteen examined was deter- mined l)y microscopical examination, seven hundred and eighty-two being males and seven hundred and one females. In one hundred cases the determination of sex was not attempted. In the thirty-one remaining, it was indetermin- able by microscopic examination, all but five being infested by Bucephalus or other cercaria forms to the utter destruction of the proper reproductive tissue. From the shape of the shells eight of these thirty-one individuals were pronounced males and two females. Others, also belonging to species in which the shells of the two sexes are normally characteristic, had shells of such shape as to render the sex problematical and to suggest that infestation by Bueejihalns or other cercaria, when early acquired and long continued, may so alter the form of the shell of the female as to cause it to resemble that of the male or, if acquired later, may produce an intermediate form. Moreover, females infested with Bueeplialus or other cercaria rarely (in but three observed cases) carried glochidia, though examined when the marsupia of other females of their species were normally inflated with young. This is especially noteworthy in Lamps'dis [iracilis, in which determination of the sex of the clam by the form of the shell is usually certain. Of the eighty-nine individuals of this species examined, thirteen were infested with Bueeph(dus or other cercaria. Of these, seven appeared to be males, one was a female with glochidia in the gill, three were doubtfully regarded as females although no germinal tissue was discernible, while the sex of two was problematical. In thirty-eight of the forty-four species examined the num- * For the convenience of those who have not followed the recent changes in unionid nomenclature a list of the names mentioned in this article is given in the lirst column below, each name being followed in the second columu by the one A Sttidt/ of the I'dfdsitcs of the I'ulon'uhc. 408 ber of infested males and females for each species did not differ materially. The exceptions are as follows : Unio heterodon, 4 males, 0 females. Anodonta suborhiculata, 18 males, 2 females. Plagiola securis, 5 males, 0 females. Lampsilis parvus, 0 males, 31 females. Lampsilis hievissimus, 4 males, 0 females. Lampsilis tenuissimus, 5 males, 0 females. The disparity of the sexes in these few species has no significance, however, in this connection, for in no case where both sexes were liberally represented in the host species could a different capacity for infestation be established for the two sexes. The only seeming exception, in the case of i>reviously in common use. The specific nahies remain the same, except that comu- tus becomes rejlexa, &i\A plana is now Considered a form of graiuiis. Quadrula multiplicata Unio multiplicatus tuberculata tuberculatus metanevra metanever lachrymosa hichrymosus asperrima asperrimus pustulata pustulatus granifera graniferus pustulosa p\istulosus plicata plicatus trigona trigonus rubiginosa rubiginosus ebena ebenus Unio gibbosus gibbosus complanatus complanatus heterodon Iieterodon Alasmodonta confragosa Margaritana confragosa complanata complanata rngosa rngosa marginata marginata uiidulata uiiduhita tappaniaiia Unio tappanianus Strophitns edenlulus Anodonta edentula Anodonta imbeeilis imbecilis ' suborhiculata suborhiculata grandis plana corpulenta corpulenta Oblii|Uaria retlexa Unio cornutus Plagiola securis securis elegans elegans donaciformis donaciformis Lampsilis parvus parvus ellipsis ellipsis higginsii higginsii ligamentinus ligamentinus luteolus luteolus nasutus nasutus anodontoides anodontoides rectus rectus ochraceus. , ochraceus ventrieosus ventricosus alatus alatus l.Tvissimus livvissimus gracilis gracilis tenuissimus tenuissimus 404 lUiiwi.s State LdhoratDrn of Natural History. infestation by Bi(cephhits von Baer and two other cercaria forms were found within the viscera of the host. These usually occurred in such ahundance as to obliterate totally the normal tissue of the sexual glands, rendering the whole abdomen as granular as fish roe, or fibrous with the sporo- cysts of the Bucephalus. Extensive infestation with the latter parasite also involves the nephridia, which may be much swollen, their ducts being nearly obliterated by the tangled fibers of sporocysts. This unsexing of the host, and the accompanying changes in the form of the shell have .already been referred to. Various species of Atax are common ectoparasites of the Unionidce. Their favorite situations are upon the body surfaces, between the gills or between the gills and abdomen, between the labial palps, or among the papillse fringing the mantle edges at the inhalent siphon. Their eggs are laid either in the body wall, the gills, or the mantle. Dr. Eobert H. Wolcott, to whom a part of the Atax material collected in the course of this study was sent, kindly furnished the determinations of the species of this genus included in the following table, which indicates the host species from which these ditt'erent parasites were derived, and also the total number of individuals of each species of Atax found in a given host species. Conchophth'irus Jiirtus Ehrbg. and (', anodoiitie Ehrbg., ciliated Infusoria, inhabit the slime investing the body sur- faces. In the accompanying tables no attempt is made to separate the two species. CJuetof/astcr limucei von Baer, an oligochsete, is also found in the slime of the various surfaces and in the kidneys. The frequent presence of leeches and planarians upon the shell and on the mantle edges, at times indeed within the branchial chamber, was regarded as accidental, and they are consequently not included in the accompanying tabulations. 408 Illinois Sttttc Lahordtorif of N(iti(r((l History. HOST SPECIES. o ' O -» a o 9p C X It' ?9 > it > §3. ?' C p o ^• S ° Quadrula tubeiculata. . 363 12 5 115 43 4 lachrymosa . asperrima .. . pustulosa . . . plicata Alasmodonta rugosa . . . martjinata Anodonta imbecilis suborbiculata coi'puleiita . . "ii 18 8 5 3 37 16 Obliquaria retlexa 10 Lampsilis anodontoides rectus 26 8 1 636 ventricosus. . alatus 14 6 G G 78 : hevissimus. . . gracilis Sp. y 3 30 82 "s" 1 Table II. is an exhil)it of the results of all the examinations, the body of the table giving the number of individuals of the various host species examined, and the number of such hosts infested by each of the nine parasites named in the head- ings. The footings of the columns and the subjoined per- centages give the number and per cent, of species and individuals infested. On the right, one column gives the number of kinds of parasites found in each host species, and another the total number of individuals in the species examined which were infested to any degree. A comparison of the data in these two columns, note being taken of the number of individuals examined in the several species, as given in the first column, shows a marked variation among the different host species in the number of kinds of parasites harbored and in the numlier of individuals of each species infested. It is seen that Asjiidofiasfei- is by far the most widely distributed and abundant parasite; that Cot i/htspis, Atax, and Conchoj>}i,t]ilri(s mnst be classed as very frequent ; that the free distomid and Bnceph(du>i are less common ; and that the remaining three parasites occur but occasionally. It is remarkable that at least two sufficiently examined .1 Stinlij (if the Pardsites of t)ic Fiiionida'. 409 Table 11. Si'kciiic Disiribition IV Parasite? HOST SPIXIES. No. OF Hosts Infested with Z' 0 Names. 1? X _. 3 o- 2,5; > a c TO P o o O 5 ?1 c 1-0 ga £■ 0 a 0 to ? w (0 •0 B > 0 0 cr 0 "-J ■ c 9 0 cr? 0 p 1 5-2. !§: c p Quadrula imiltiplicata tuberculata inetanevra 28 41 36 29 21 20 1 87 89 27 40 23 35 137 4 3r, 64 18 51 3 1 36 49 20 8 45 32 5 48 37 31 14 3 33 12 21 21 5 1 28 62 3 10 7 9 37 1 9 10 3 23 12 7 9 16 1 50 36 8 5 3 5 4 2 4 3 3 6 4 3 4 1 5 4 2 5 6 5 4 11 38 28 22 21 18 1 59 70 10 15 7 21 120 1 12 36 13 47 12 1 2 20 lachrymosa asperrima ii 1 13 pustulata ^ranifera ])ustulosa .... 1 6 5 4 2 9 6 1 plica ta. .... 1 trigona 4 rubiginosa ebena Unio gibbosus complanatiis 1 3 1 ... 1 "i 1 1 17 113 1 2 6 8 33 "3 heterodou Alasmodonta confragosa . . . complanata. . . . ni^osa maro^inata undiilata tappaniana .... Strophitus edenlulus Anodonta inibecilis . .... 3 2 1 3 1 1 21 9 39 1 1 4 9 6 25 20 8 37 3 5 17 18 5 40 3 6 3 1 15 1 32 13 10 28 19 5 21 6 2 "33 i 6 5 4 5 6 4 1 5 5 3 4 1 6 6 3 6 7 1 5 5 2 6 3 26 46 20 8 43 19 2 10 22 21 14 1 51 17 3 54 44 1 94 57 3 86 5 suborbiculata iJTandis. . 5 21 corinilenta Obliquaria retlexa Plao'iola securis 1 ele^ans donaciformis S 1 3 1 4 1 1 21 20 19 2 11 1 13 4 1 18 21 1 1 2 Laiiipsilis parvus .... .... ellipsis hio-cri nsii . ... 10 1 1 ... ligamentiDUS luteolus 91 25 4 62 49 3 1 47 7 "3 4 5 12 2 20 12 9 1 2 15 18 nasutus anodoutoides rectus "ii 1 3 2 3 38 32 1 72 48 2 57 1 ociiraceus . 1 ventricosus alatus 108 60 4 30 49 24 27 58 4 1 10 26 In'vissitnus gracilis 89 77 46 3 1 13 11 tenuissitnus 5 5 No. of individuals infested No. of species infested 644 37 297 24 146 14 8 5 17 8 60 15 586 35 398 30 40 5 . . . 1197 42 Percentage of Individ, infested Percentage of species infested. ... 40 . . . , 84 18 55 9 32 0.4 11 1 18 4 34 36 25 2 80 08! 11 74 95 410 Iirtnois State Ldhordtorij of Natund History. species, Alasnwdonta rugosa and Lampsilis Ugament'inus, slioM^ no infestation with the generally prevalent Aspldogaster, and this is especially noteworthy in the case of the latter, whose infestation with other parasites is both frequent and severe. Table III. brings into comparison the number of kinds of parasites found infesting individuals of each host species and Table III. Degree of Infestation OF INDIV iDUAL Hosts HOST SPECIES. ?5 on B sa B M CW o o? ^s "1 ^ 2. a 3 o 4 2 4 3 6 4 3 4 1 5 4 5 6 5 4 6 5 4 6 4 5 5 8 4 6 6 6 7 5 5 6 Percentage of Individuals Infested. Names. H X -. JO B Bg; 1? 28 41 36 29 21 20 87 89 27 40 23 35 137 35 64 18 51 36 49 20 45 32 48 37 31 14 91 25 62 49 108 60 89 H o !» B -1 Oi n iq "-I (D 9 39 93 78 76 100 90 68 79 37 38 30 60 88 34 56 72 92 72 94 100 96 59 21 59 68 100 56 68 87 89 87 95 97 B K p. 29 20 33 55 33 25 32 43 33 35 30 40 64 26 44 28 31 58 18 "*9* 50 17 48 58 43' 52 18 24 25 13 16 t^ 3' 11 59 42 21 24 55 26 34 4 3 5_ S" 5' a- ! ^ 1 3" 0. Quadrula multiplicata tuberculata 15 3 metanevra lachrymosa asperrima 43 10 8 2 pustulata pustulosa .... plicata trigona rubiginosa ebena Unio gibbosus cotnplaiiatus 17 24 6 13 39 47 6 39 5 11 6 4 11 10 57 11 4 40 31 37 22 45 3 Alasmodonta confragosa complanata ruu"Osa 3 6 14 8 27 30 20 3 marginata Strophitus edentulus Aiiodoiita inibecilis 10 65 30 suborbiculata corpuleiita Obliqiiaria reflexa Plaglola elegans donaciformis L/ampsilis parvus 43" 2 8 19 20 19 33 23 ellipsis .... ligauientinus luteolus 4 10 12 6 27 13 anodontoides rectus ventricosus alatus gracilis Totals 1577 74 32 25 10 5 0.6 A Stiidij of the Parasites of the Uniooiidce. 411 the number harbored by each species considered as a unit. In this table and in the succeeding one the data regarding host species in which less than fourteen individuals were examined are not included. While the comparisons between the species included are thus rendered the more reliable, it will be seen that the general conclusions deduced from Tables III. and IV- only confirm the findings of the more general statistics of Table II. While nine kinds of parasites are here listed for the Unionidce, no species of the family was found to harbor more than seven, and the average was but four or five. Moreover, in but four species — Quadrula lachrymosa , Q. ehena, Q. pustidata, and Anodonta suhorhicidata — were individuals found with the maximum variety of parasites listed for its species, and in these the maximum variety is four or less. It is perhaps futile to imagine what variety of parasites an individual host might successfully sustain, but it is noticeable that in this table the mean individual infesta- tion lies closer to the species minimum than to its maximum. A close inspection of the data of all examinations further confirms the inference that the individual host is unable to realize the maximum capacity of its species for infestation, since in no case is the presence of an unusual number of one parasite accompanied either by like severe infestation by another or by a considerable variety of parasites. It is true that one individual of Ijaiiipsilis gracilis with sixteen speci- mens of Aspidogaster in the pericardium and six in the nephridia, harbored also two of Cotylasjjis and one each of Atax and Buccplialus, and that one Lampsilis ventricosiis infested with thirty-one specimens of Aspidogaster contained large numbers of Biicephaliis ; but these are exceptional cases, and even in these individuals, when we consider the size of the host and the established maximum capacity of their species, the extreme limit can hardly be said to be reached. The ectoparasites probably require but little from their hosts, but they rarely occur in numbers. upon clams exhausted by Bucephalus. Table lY. gives the percentage of the hosts which were infested with Aspidogaster, Cotylaspis, and Atax, the most 412 Ill'nwis St<(te lAihordtory of Natural History. abundant parasites, and also the maximum, minimum, and average number of these parasites found in the hosts. The frequency of occurrence of any one of these parasites in relation to the total infestation of a species is to be learned by a comparison of Tables III. and IV. Thus in a total of fifteen hundred and seventy-seven examinations, — in which seventy- four per cent, were in some measure infested (Table Table IV. Comparison of Infestation by Different Parasites. HOST SPECIES. Names. Percentage of hosts infested with Number of parasites in one host. Average No. of parasites in one host. Quadrula multiplicata. . tuberculata. . . metanevra lachrymosa. . . asperrima .... pustulata pustulosa 28 11 plicata tri^ona . . . rubioinosa ebeiia Unio oibbosus coniplanatus Ala.smodonta confragosa. complanata rugosa marginata. Strophitus edentulus. . . . Anodouta imbecilis suborbiculata . corpuleuta.. . . Obli(iuaria reflexa Plagiola eleo'ans ' donaciformis.. . . Lamjisilis parvus ellipsis ligamentiuus. . luteolus anodontoides . rectus ventricosus . . . alatus gracilis 41 36 29 21 20 87 89 27 40 23 35 137 3 64 18 51 36 49 20 45 32 48 37 31 14 91 25 62 49 108 60 89 80 33 72 100 25 32 70 11 25 30 26 27 26 16 18 17 51 100 82 9 63 57 65 86 i2 76 14 28 82 87 3 1 3 33 50 76 8 20 75 71 1 41 1 S3 1 3 1 . ... 1 7 !r 22 48 61 65 67 80 1 64 11 191-8 6 41 13. 5 1-7 5 1-2 •20 ... . •6 1-2 ■6 ... ■24 .. -7 .... ■281 . . . -751-4 -85 1 1- 1- l-i 1- 1-2 1-7 1-86 1-92 1 1-5 1-8 1-5 1-6 1-9 1-15 1-10 1-12 1 1 Eggs 1 2 3 8 Eggs 3 8 2 2 1 4 2 3 4 3 3 50 Totals 1577 41 18 37 A Stiidii of the Pio-asites of the Unionlda'. 418 III.), — forty-one per cent, were parasitized by Aspidogaater, eighteen per cent, by Coti/Iaspis, and thirty-seven per cent, by Atax — as shown in Table IV. It may be seen from the tables under discussion, as well as from Table II., that there is a marked difference between the several host species in capacity for infestation in both kind and degree. The range in number of parasites infesting one host, and their average number, may depend to some extent upon the size of the host, — Atwdontd suhorhlcidata and A. corpuleiita showing high numbers and StropJiitiis edentida and Auodoiita 'nuhec'diii low, — and this applies with force in case of occupa- tion of the pericardial and nephridial cavities by Aspidof/aster, where the volumes of the organs closely limit the possilde number of invading parasites. But size is not the sole determining factor, else Lump^^ill^ luteolus and L. (inodontol- des, L. li(/(ime)tthiHS and L. (datiis, Qnddndd midtijdicata and Lampsilia veiitrieosiis, and Quadrida plieata and Ldiiipsills (jra- cUis should harbor similar, rather than so widely different, numbers of parasites, and little LanipsUis p>'(Trus should not show such large infestation and such a wide range in the number of parasites harbored. The tables seem to indicate in the different species a general correspondence between the frequency of infestation, the variety of parasites, and the average number of individual parasites harbored by a given host. Thus Quadrula tuhcr- ridata, Anodonta suborhietdata, A. covpulotta, LampsiVis ellipsis, L. ventricosus, L. i State Laboratory of Natural History. silis are of large parasite capacity; those of Unio (restricted) and of Playiola are of low capacity; while within the genera Quadrida and Alasmodonta we find wide extremes of infesta- tion. Within the limits of the above genera this correspond- ence is more or less evident between members of groups of closely related species, especially when taken in considerable numbers in similar situations. For example, we may note the correspondence between Lamps'dls ligamentinuH and L. liiteolus; Quadrida ehena, Q. trigona, and Q. ruhiginosa; LanipsUis alatus and L. gracilis ; and Quadrula lachrymosa and Q. asperrima. Seasonal changes have been found to modify the distribu- tion of the parasites in the case of Atax and Coiirhophtliirus only. As the water grew colder in late October and Novem- ber, the examinations of Unionidce from the Cedar River gave relatively fewer adult Atax and more abundant eggs. The presence of these eggs was regarded as potential infesta- tion, and therefore these data may properly be included in the tabulation. The reliability of the tabulations may be somewhat vitiated by the fact that CoiicJcophthirus is much more plentiful in the warmer months, during which the greater part of my collections were made. Ta1'.I,E V. GEOdRAPHICAL DlSTRIIlUTIOX OF Pauasitks. LOCALrriES. 1 Illinois. Iowa. Pennsylvania. | 5' < w 'C o o < ■Ft 3- o g o •-1 > o- ri CO 7t a 2 2 no (0 3 C 5 3- 1 Individaals examined Species 661 32 160 24 50 2 30 2 495 23 16 3 68 5 45 3 47 6 42 2 "tfi f- Aspidogaster Cotylaspis X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X Free Distoiiiata Encysted Distomata.. Cercaria . . . Bucephalus Atax X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X X Couchophtliirus Cha'togaster Kinds of parasites 9 6 5! ^ 9 1 3 4 5 I 3 A Stiidf/ of tJie P<(r(i>iifcs of the Vx'ioii'uhc. -415 Table Y. indicates the range of the different parasites in the several localities supplying the material. In all proba- bility the blanks opposite the more usual parasites are due to the absence of the proper host species or to the examination of an insufficient number of these species rather than to peculiarities in the localities themselves, for the variety of parasites listed for any situation varies with the number of individuals and the variety of species examined from each locality. Thus the absence of .4 fa.r from the Schuylkill and its occurrence in the trilnitary French and Pickering creeks may be accounted for by the fact that with the exception of a single occurrence, this parasite was never found by me, in any locality, in the particular species examined from the Schuylkill. Again, an examination of twenty individuals of Anodonid corpulenta from Abbey Creek, la., made since these tabulations were completed, has increased the list of unionid parasites from that stream to six, adding Aspidogaster, Coty- laspis, free iJlstoiiKifa, Bucephalus, and Conchophthirus, the smaller number of parasites reported in the table being due in a large degree to the particular species of Union'uhe previously examined from the stream. An examination of Table YL shows, however, that there is quite a great varia- tion in the infestation of the same species in different local- ities. This variation is the greatest, as would be expected, in the host species least frequently parasitized, and especially in the case of those parasites that are infrequent or unusual in a given host. Again in the case of the larger streams as compared with the smaller ones, whenever a given host is especially plentiful and Unlon'uUe in general are abundant the infestation is relatively larger and a greater variety of parasites occur. For example, in the Illinois and Cedar rivers, both large streams, a large proportion of the Union\d(C are excessively parasitized, but in the Spoon Eiver, a smaller stream, only such species are extremely infested as are abundant or dominant, as, for example, Qiiadrula tiibercidatd, Villi) (jibhosKS, and Lampsilis gracilis. The fact that Unio romphtnatiis from the Schuylkill Eiver is but slightly parasit- ized in comparison with individuals from its tributaries, 416 Illinois State Labovfttorif of Natunil History. Tablk VI. Comparison of Local Infes rATION HOST SPECIES. o o c (0 s 3 '^ Peiu^entage Infested with 1 ll 3 2? if > Quadrula tuberculata. Illinois Riv Spoon Riv. 17 21 76 81 71 12 29 86 29 Quadrula pustulosa. Illinois Riv Spoon Riv. (Jedar Riv. 29 28 3(1 45i 31 7 90 64 20 21 28 23 ... 13 3 Quadrula plicata. Illinois Riv Spoon Riv. Cedar Riv. 4;-) 8 36 76 63 I 67 20 3 11 61 Unio gibbosus. Illinois Riv. Spoon Riv. 25 10 20 40 4 4 56 30 10 Unio complanatus. SosquehaDoa Bir. Schuylkill Riv. Pickering Cr. French Cr. 17 20 14 20 59 15 43 94 70 86 80 30 5 5 Alasmodonta coinplanata. Illinois Riv. Spoon Riv. Cedar Riv. Abbey Cr. 11 8 37 8 27 lb 18 38 27 67 55 "3 19 3 5 Alasmodonta marginata. Pickering Cr. French Cr. 30 20 27 5 10 5 80 75 70 60 Strophitus edentulus. Illinois Riv Cedar Riv. 12 14 25 21 33 7 25 8 29 8 7 17 29 Anodonta grand is. SiioonRiv. Cedar Riv. 3 5 100 100 33 33 80 100 100 Anodonta corpuleuta. IllinoisRiv. Thompson's L. 20 10 90 90 95 100 75 40 5 85 90 65 60 Plagiola elegans. IllinoisRiv. Cedar Riv. 2.T 20 12 4 8 5 5 4 15 5 4 Plagiola donaciformis. IllinoisRiv. Cedar Riv. 21 13 67 54 5 0 Lampsilis ellipsis. IllinoisRiv. Cedar Riv. 3 11 100 82 100 73 67 73 9 Latnpsilis ligaruentinus. IllinoisRiv. Cedar Riv. 24 65 50 2 37 17 4 11 6 8 IS Lampsilis luteolus. IllinoisRiv. Quiver Cr. 10 10 30 20 10 10 10 90 30 Lampsilis anodontoides. IllinoisRiv. Spoon Riv. Cedar Riv. 20 4 9 100 55 5 75 60 50 22 n n Lampsilis rectus. IllinoisRiv. Cedar Riv. 10 37 20 14 60 57 60 70 30 38 30 8 3 Lampsilis ventricosus. IllinoisRiv. Quiver Cr. Cedar Riv. 10 40 56 60 18 29 60 5 29 30 48 63 60 43 82 23 2 Lampsilis alatus. IllinoisRiv. Cedar Riv. 20 18 95 94 80 11 95 77 95 39 22 Lampsilis gracilis. IllinoisRiv. Spoon Riv. Cedar Riv. 40 16 33 83 94 85 83 13 25 24 1 78 75 60 25 3 36 3 .4 Stiidji of flic P(U-(tsit<'s of the riiioiiidw. 417 French and Pickering creeks, and from the Susquehanna Eiver, may be due to the very peculiar conditions, referred to on page 400, which exist in the SchuylkilL Again, in Al((s)uo(Iont(( mi(rti'niat<( the extensive amount of parasitism in the material from Pickering Creek as compared with that from French Creek, is explained by the fact that this is an abundant and dominant species in Pickering Creek, while it is relatively infrequent in French Creek. Some attempt was made to discover whether purely local conditions in the habitat, such as the character of the bottom and association with other species of Un'ionidu', bear any relation to the character and degree of infestation. The examination of representatives of nine species taken at one time from a restricted locality below a bar in the Illinois Eiver, where Uiiionidw were unusually abundant and at least twenty-nine species represented, gave results which did not differ materially or in any one direction — save in the slightly larger infestation to be expected because of the hosts' unrivaled opportunities for infestation — from those obtained from the same species collected in other localities. A purely qualitative examination of the food of the various species of Union'uhe showed no differences that could be correlated with their capacities for infestation. The nature of the food would hardly determine to any appreciable degree the parasites of other organs than those closely connected with the alimentary canal, and least of all those whose lodg- ment would be effected by mere entrance to the branchial chamber. In conlusion, the results arrived at by the foregoing studies may be summed up as follows : The host species seem to exhibit unlike capacities for infestation, both as to the num- ber of individuals and the kinds of parasites present. It appears that the differences shown are attributable only in a minor degree to the age and size of the host, the size of the stream, and the density of the unionid population. They are not sufficiently accounted for by the seasonal variation, — which is shown to exist to some degree at least in the case of certain parasites, — nor by the very slight difference in 418 Illinois State Ldhoratorij of Ndtiiral Ilistorij. general structure between the various host species. The evidence therefore seems to indicate that the capacity for infestation in each host species is to a large extent a specific characteristic. I am indebted to Prof. S. A. Forbes, Director of the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, for opportunities of study and of publication ; to Dr. C. A. Kofoid, Superin- tendent of the Illinois Biological Station, for many sugges- tions of value ; and to Mr. C. A. Hart, of the Laboratory and Station staff. Dr. H. A. Pilsbry, of the Philadelphia Academy of Sciences, and Mr. C. T, Simpson, of the United States National Museum, for assistance in the determination and nomenclature of the Unionidce. Just before going to press the nomenclature and systematic arrangement of the host species have been revised l»y Mr. Hart to bring them into accord with the more natural classi- fication which is now being elaborated for this group. CoKNELL College, Mt. Verxon, Ia. January, 1899. JAN 16 1900 BULLETIN OF THE S^""^^ L LLINOIS XTATE I ABORATORY OF NATURAL HISTORY Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME V. ARTICLE IX. PLANKTON STUDIES. III. ON PLATY- DORINA, A NEW GENUS OF THE FAMILY VOLVOC- IDA<:, FROM THE PLANKTON OF THE ILLINOIS RIVER. By C. a. KOFOID, Ph. D. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, URBANA, ILLINOIS. December 28, J 899. "JAN 16 1900 Akticle IX, — Plankton Studies. III. On Platydorina, a new Genus of the Family Volvocldie, from the Plankton of the Illinois Piiver. By C. A. Kofoid. The family Volvocidu' is well represented in the plankton of fresh-water ponds and streams. Indeed, with the possible exception of Steplianosphiera, all of the colonial forms in- cluded in the subfamily Volvocincs — Spondylomorum, Gonium, Stephanosphcera, Pandorina, Pleodorina, and Volvox — are pelagic in habit and are found only in the fresh-water environment. For the past four years, during the summer and autumn months, a colonial form belonging to this sub- family has occured in plankton collections from the Illinois River and its adjacent waters, to which I have given the name of Platydorina caudata. It appears as early as June 15, and becomes abundant in the months of August and Septem- ber, diminishing in numbers in October, and disappearing in November. It thus attains its greatest development toward the close of the maximum period of summer heat, when the temperature of the water in which it is found often reaches 36° C. This species has occurred in all the waters examined in the course of the operations of the Illinois Biological Station; viz. in the Illinois Eiver, in Thompson's, Quiver, Flag, Mantanzas and Phelps Lakes, at Havana, III, and in the Illinois River and Meredosia Lake at Meredosia, 111. During the summer and fall of 1899 it was also found in abundance near Urbana, 111., in Salt Fork, a small stream tributary to the Embarras River — a confluent of the Wabash. It was not equally plentiful in all these localities, but showed a decided preference for shallow water free from vegetation, reaching its maximum development when the turbid water was but a few feet, or even less than a foot, deep. In such situations the shallowness of the water and the absence of vegetation conduce to a maintenance of the high temperatures which seem to favor its multiplication. The bottom of the lakes in question is usually composed of soft mud, rich in decay- ing organic matter and often covered By a mat of Oscillaria, but otherwise quite free from vegetation. At Havana 41 i) 420 Illinois State Jjdhonttury of Natural History. we have found Platydorina in greatest numbers in Phelps Lake, which in 1896, '97, and '98 afforded the conditions above described. It was likewise abundant in Thompson's Lake in the late summer and early fall of 1897 and '98, when the lake was at a low level and contained little vegetation. In the shallow open waters of Matanzas Lake it was much- more abundant than in Quiver Lake, where there was usually a large amount of vegetation. At the time of the maximum abundance of Platydorina in Salt Fork in September the stream was reduced by drouth to a series of stagnant pools with no vegetation. In the early part of August it was full of algte and other aquatic vegetation, and Platydorina was then present in considerable numbers, although not so abund- ant as it was in the following month. On August 2, 1888, Professor H. Garman, while conduct- ing a biological survey of the aquatic life, in the vicinity of Quincy, 111., in the bottoms of the Mississippi Pdver (see Garman '90), found a specimen of this interesting species in the waters of Libby Lake. He records and sketches it in notes now on tile at this Laboratory, but published nothing concerning it. The occurrence of this new genus in the waters of the Wabash, Illinois, and Mississippi river systems and its recurreince in our collections for several successive years indicate its wide distribution and firm establishment in the Mississippi Valley in waters of some permanency. It has not yet been noted in temporary pools. The associates of Platydorina in the plankton have varied with the season, the locality, and the year. It may be said, in a general way, that the plankton in which it occurs is charac- terized by an abundance of flagellates, of rotifers, — especially BrachionidfC, — and of immature Copcpoda. A water-bloom composed largely of Euglcna, Trachelomonas, Carteria, and other green flagellates, often appears at the surface of waters where Platydorina is abundant. Goniuni is frequently associated with it in large numbers, as are also Pandorina, Endorina, and Pleodmina, i\\o\\g\\ these three genera may also be plentiful in the early summer, when Platydorina may On Platydor'inn. 421 be absent or rare. Pleodorina caUfornica was extremely abundant in Salt Fork in August, but had almost entirely disappeared by the time that Platydorina had reached its maximum. A few specimens of Volvox, which, in this locality, is common in the spring months, were also noted, while perhaps the most interesting associate in Salt Fork was Ceratinm kiimaonense, discovered by Carter ('71) in Hindostan. Other chlorophyll-bearing associates frequently seen are Pediastriim, Scenedestnns, Actinastrum, and Closteriuni. Among the diatoms, Melosira, Fragillaria, and Surirella, were to be seen ; and among the Peridinidte, Peridinhvm tahidatum was almost always represented. The zooplankton associated with Platydorina is not less varied than the phytoplankton. The Protozoa were usually represented by Arcella, Dijfiuyia, and occasionally by pelagic Anuria; by Synura, Mallomonas, iJinohryon, and Uroglena ; and by Codonella and Coleps. Among the Rotifera the order Ploima was well represented ; Triarthra and the BrarJiionidce — notably Brachionns m'ditarh, B. angidaris, B. piinctatus, and B. bakeri, and its varieties — were most common during the summer months, while the Synrh(etid(C increase in numbers in the early autumn. Polyarthra was frequently abundant, and Rotifer, Philodina , Asplanchna, Euchlanis, Cathypna, Distyla, Monostyla, and Pterodina, were often represented by one or more species. The paucity of Entomostraca stands in sharp contrast with the abundance of rotifers, the former group being represented by relatively few species and few adult individuals. The nauplii of Cyclops were, however, as a rule abundant, but only occasional specimens of adult Cyclops, Diaptomus, Bosmina, Chydonis, Ceriodaphnia, Daphnia, and Cypr'idopsis were to be seen. Platydorina raudata n. g., n. sp. The species here described consists of a horse-shoe shaped coenobium or colony (PI. XXXVIIL, Fig. 1) of 16 or 32 bitiagellate cells, the anterior end corresponding to the toe of the horse- shoe and the truncate posterior end to the heel, the 422 Illinois State Laboratory of N(ttiiral History. latter carrying 3 or 5 prolongations or tails formed by the gelatinous substance of the coenobium. The colony is plate- like, and flat except that the plate is slightly twisted in a left spiral. This spiral is scarcely noticeable in a face view (Fig. 1) except by focusing with a high-power objective, but it can be easily detected in a side view (Fig. 8). It varies from one eighth to one thirty-second of a turn of the spiral, and in twenty-five colonies especially examined on this point it was invariably a left spiral, with the location of the twisting always in a definite relation to the colony, the right anterior and the left posterior regions of the colony in face view being high, while the left anterior and the right posterior are low. Eepeated examinations of specimens, both living and pre- served, indicate that this spiral form is a constant feature of structure ; that it is not reversed in direction ; and that it is subject to but slight variation in the degree of the torsion. No movement within the colony which would produce or vary the spiral was noted in living individuals. The form of Platydorina seems to be as constant and as characteristic as that of other genera of the family. The size of the colony varies with the age, with the number of cells present, and also, perhaps, with the locality and the season. Colonies of 32 cells in which the first division lead- ing to the formation of daughter colonies is taking place, average about 150 /'in length, 180 /' in width, and 20 /< in thickness. The largest colonies are about 165x145x25 yw, and the smallest free-swimming ones about 25x21x4 /<. Colonies of 16 cells are smaller than those of 32 cells, and are also narrower in proportion to their length, measuring about 70x43x16 /^. The colors of Plati/dorina are quite as striking as those of related forms. The cells, which are imbedded in the trans- parent gelatinous matrix of the colony, are a bright chloro- phyll-green, and each has, as a rule, a red stigma, or eyespot, of unusual brilliancy. The substance in which the cells of the colony are imbedded is similar in appearance to that in Eudorina. It is a trans- parent colorless substance of considerable consistency, show- On Platydorina. 425 ing in the living condition, as a rule, no trace of differentia- tion. The gelatinous nature of the substance is shown by the great numbers of bacteria which swarm within it in morilnind specimens. Colonies killed in formalin and stained in Dela- field's haematoxylin exhibit a difference in the intensity of coloration, indicating the presence of a denser peripheral layer or sheath 3-4 /< in thickness (PI. XXXVIII., Fig. 1, 4, }}. sh.). This is apparent along the edges of the colony, and presumably extends over its faces. In several living colonies a granular differentiation of this outer layer was noted about the margin. This sheath is similar to that of Eudorina and Pleodorina, but shows no trace of the concentric layers so prominent in Pandorina. One of the most characteristic features of the colony is the presence, upon the posterior border, of 3 or 5 projections or tails, which are merely extensions of the sheath. Colonies of 16 cells have but three tails, while those of 32 cells have uniformly five. These projections are bluntish finger-like processes without structural differentiation, tapering some- what to a rounded or pointed end. Occasionally the outer- most pair, and more rarely the inner one, are slightly diverg- ent. In the 16-cell colony there are two latero-posterior tails and one median one (Fig. 2), the former being better developed, and measuring 15 to 20 /< in length. The median tail is variable in length, being sometimes a mere rudiment appearing on a slight elevation on the margin. Its average length is about one third that of the adjacent pair, though it occasionally attains two thirds their length. The latero- posterior tails are upon each side of the colony directly behind the marginal row of cells, while the median tail is midway between the central rows. In the 3 2 -cell colony (Fig. 1) there is, in addition to the three tails above noted, another pair wliich may be designated as the lateral pair. These tails are slightly divergent, arising at the outer pos- terior angles of the marginal row of cells, between the last transverse quartet and the last sextet of cells. They are from 10 to 15 /< in length, and are often of the same size as the median tail of the colony. The other three tails occupy 424 Illinois ^litate Laboratory of Natural History. the same position with respect to the posterior quartet of cells that they do in the 16-cell colony, but are as a rule much larger, the posterolateral pair measuring from 20 to 30 /< in length, while the median one reaches only a length of 1 5 to 18 yw. The five tails do not lie in one plane, but share in the spiral of the colony, at times, indeed, exceeding it in the degree of the twisting. These structures are all subject to considerable variations and irregularities of development (Fig. 5}, such as suppression, inequality of members of pairs, differences in size and relative development, in attenuation, and in degree of divergence. These irregularities are often correlated with the loss of cells in the colony due to parasites or other causes. The tails, nevertheless, exhibit such a con- stancy of position and so much of symmetry and regularity of development that they cannot for a moment be considered as ephemeral features of little structural importance. In their position they recall the protuberances noted by me ('98) at the posterior end of Pleodorina illinoisensis. In Pleodorina, however, these structures are apparent only in disintegrating maternal colonies, and it may be that they also indicate the point at which the embryonic cup closes. On the other hand, in Platydorina caudata these tails are present upon the colonies at the time of their escape from the maternal matrix and persist throughout the life of the adult, being permanent structures, characteristic of the species. Within the outer sheath is a homogeneous gelatinous matrix If (Fig. 1, m.) which in Delafield's haematoxylin stains less readily than the sheath. In the living colony no differentia- tion of this matrix is to be seen, but, after staining, a delicate sheath showing deeper color is demonstrated about each of the cells. In most places a considerable space intervenes between this secondary sheath (Fig. 4, s. sh.) and the inclosed cell, so that the sheaths crowd upon each other and appear to divide the field of the matrix into irregular polygonal areas. These areas, as a rule, fill the greater part of the plate, leav- ing unoccupied only a few corners, principally about the second transverse row. The two poles of this swollen second- ary envelope are not of equal size, the inner being somewhat On Platydorina. 425 the smaller, and slightly overlapped hy those of the contiguous cells. This is due to the intercalation of the cells of the two sides of the plate, and to the fact that the outer ends of the cells are slightly nearer the surface of the plate than are the inner ones. The gelatinous substance within the secondary sheaths does not differ in structure or stainibility from that of the surrounding matrix. As a result of the form of the colony, the amount of the matrix substance is much less in Platydorina than in related forms such as Eudorina. The cells of the colony are all of one type, alike in structure, and approximately similar in size. Each is bifiagellate and has a central body of protoplasm with a nucleus, two contrac- tile vacuoles, one stigma, and one chromatophore with a single pyrenoid. The number of cells in the colony is either 16 or 32; at least no normal colony with cells of any other number has been detected among the hundreds, if not thousands, of colonies examined. Colonies are frequently seen which, by reason of parasites or from other causes, have lost one or more cells, indeed in some cases all but one or two ; but the form of these colonies is usually preserved, and the empty second- ary sheaths frequently remain as evidence of the original complement of cells. The 16-cell colonies are not mere stages in the development of the 32-cell form, for division of the cells of this type in observed cases leads to the develop- ment of new colonies and not to the formation of the 32-cell stage. As in other nearly related genera of the family — for example, Eudorina, Pandorina, and Pleodorina — the number of cells in the colony varies, within narrow limits, in the ratio of geometrical progression. In Platydorina, however, this pleomorphism is manifested not only by this difference in the number of cells in the colony, but also by a structural dis- tinction— the presence of three tails in the 16-cell, and five tails in the 32-cell, colony. Inasmuch as the two types always occur together, and since this pleomorphism is in some respects similar to that of related genera, it does not seem justifiable to regard the two as distinct species of the genus. They are, I believe, two forms of one species. 426 Illinois State Laboratorij of Natural History. The arrangement of the cells is characteristic, and is strikingly different from that of any other genus of the family. The gelatinous matrix and sheath conform to the horse-shoe- shaped plate of cells, and even the caudal appendages hear a fixed relation to the plan of cell arrangement. The 32-cell colony is composed of a marginal U-shaped row of 12 cells about three sides of a 20-celled somewhat rectangular plate, which, in turn, consists of an outer row of 12 cells on three sides of a row of four pairs of cells. The colony might also be regarded as made up of three U-shaped rows of 12, 12, and 8 cells respectively, nested in such a fashion that the inner two project one cell beyond the outermost. The cells also fall into six quite irregular transverse rows of 4, 6, 6, 6, 6, and 4 cells respectively, and into the same number of corre- sponding longitudinal ones. As before stated, the lateral tails are posterior to the marginal row, while the postero- laterals are behind the first row within the marginal, and the median one midway between the innermost rows. In the colony of 16 cells (Fig. 2) the marginal row has but 10 cells and the central plate but six. The cells fall into four some- what irregular transverse rows, and there are the same number of longitudinal ones of 4 cells each. The horse-shoe shape, however, masks somewhat this simple Gonium-YikQ arrangement. The plate-like form of the colony and the arrangement of the cells, especially in the 16-cell form, give this new genus a superficial resemblance to Goniuvi. It is, however, fundamentally different, for in Platydorina the two faces of the plate are exactly alike, while in Goniinn the face anterior in locomotion bears all the flagella, and the other face presents only the bases of the cells. This similarity of the two faces in Platydorina, neither of which is anterior or posterior, is brought about by the fact that every other cell upon either face presents to that face the pole which bears the stigma and the tlagella, while the intervening cells present the opposite pole, with its pyrenoid. This alternation of stigma and pyrenoid is constant, and can be followed in any row of cells except the diagonal ones {cf., Fig. 1). The cells of the marginal row, in both the 16- and 32-cell colonies, point On Platjidorma. 427 obliqiiel}^ outward, the direction alternating, however, in conformity with the arrangement of cells in the central area, as may be seen in a view of the edge of the colony (Fig. 3). The alternation of the cells in the colony as a whole is the same whichever face is presented, the right-hand cell of the posterior row of four cells always presenting the basal end uppermost. From this as a starting point the regular alter- nation of stigma and pyrenoid can be traced from cell to cell throughout the whole colony. An examination of twenty-five colonies showed that all conformed to the same plan of alter- nation, there being no case of reversal. In the arrangement of the cells in the colony, Phitydorina is thus more like Eudorina than like Gonium, being, not a simple plate like the latter genus but, in reality, a flattened ellipsoid so much compressed that the cells of the two faces intercalate regularly, and thus give to the colony its superficial resem- blance to Gonium. The individual cells are all substantially alike in size and structure. They have the form of an oblate spheroid, slightly larger in the outer hemisphere.* Some cells, especially the marginal ones, often exhibit a slight flattening or even a depression at the outer pole. In the full-grown colony the cells have an equatorial diameter of 15-20 /-i and a polar one of 15-18/1. The cells of young colonies still within the maternal matrix do not exceed 4-6 m in diameter. I do not find that the cells of the 16-cell colonies are appreciably larger than those of the 32-cell. The protoplasm is small in amount, consisting of a very thin pellicle (Fig. 4, p.) on the surface of the cell on the out- side of the chromatophore, and an axially-placed knob- shaped mass (pr.) located somewhat nearer the outer pole than the inner one. Near the center of this mass lies the spherical nucleus (Fig. 4, n.), containing a single spherical nucleolus (ncl.). Within this protoplasmic mass lie the two contractile vacuoles {c. v.) and the stigma (st.), while from the outer end of the cell arise the two flagella (/.). * As in the case of Eudorina and Pleodorina, the terms "outer" and "inner" are used to designate respectively the ends which bear the stigma and the pyrenoid. 428 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. There is but a single, cup-shaped chromatophore (Fig. 4, chr.), which is inclosed within the pellicle above noted and itself contains the knob-shaped protoplasmic mass. It is of a brilliant chlorophyll-green color, and contains numerous small granules of irregular and somewhat angular outline. Towards the inner end of the cell, imbedded in the thickest part of the chromatophore, there is a single spherical pyrenoid, having a diameter of 4-6 /v. The stigma, or eye-spot, seen from above is circular in outline, but in lateral view has the form shown in Fig. 4, s. The slightly convex outer surface appears to project some- what beyond the rounded contour of the cell. The color is usually a bright reddish brown, often brightest in the anterior and marginal cells and rarely entirely faded in the posterior ones. The stigma is a homogeneous body, showing no trace of structure beyond the well-defined contour line, which is best seen in fading and moribund cells. It is normally present in all cells of the colony, and may readily be demon- strated by full illumination. The position of the stigmata in the cells is somewhat unusual, and is significant of the pro- nounced polarity of the organism. The customary position in other genera is adjacent to the bases of the flagella. In Platydorina, however, the location of the stigma is not con- stant with respect to the flagella, but seems rather to bear a definite relation to the form of the colony, since it lies towards the peripheral and posterior region of the cell (Fig. 1), while the flagella are centrally located and project outward in the usual manner. This relation appears not only in the mar- ginal regions but also in the central. The physiological significance of this arrangement is not apparent, but it seems to be correlated with the pronounced polarity of the organism. Platydorina is positively phototactic. A miscellaneous plank- ton collection placed in a window with southern exposure in an aquarium six inches in diameter was, after ten minutes, quite barren of Platydorina except along the margin towards the window. On the other hand, this species avoids bright light. This was very evident in collections fresh from the field when examined under low power (75 diameters), a very On Platydorina. 429 slight increase above a moderate illumination causing them to leave the fiekl of view with considerable rapidity. In one case, where twenty-eight colonies were in the field when placed under the microscope, only one of them remained after an exposure of twenty-five seconds. A very slight decrease in the amount of light would invariably insure their return to the field with almost equal rapidity, the number increasing as the intensity of the illumination was decreased. It may be that the asymmetrical position and the somewhat unusual arrangement of the stigmata are connected with the pro- nounced phototaxis of this organism. At least, the asym- metrical position has a tendency to place the long axis of the stigma parallel to the main axis of the colony, with the outer end directed towards the source of light in negative, and away from it in positive, phototaxis. The flagella are uniformly two in number for each cell, are similar in the same cell and in different parts of the colony, and are in the adult colony 20-25 pi in length. From the outer pole of the cell they pass through the matrix, leaving the appearance of a tube-like structure in the gelatinous substance (Fig. 4). When not in activity the flagella project beyond the sheath in a position perpendicular to the surface of the colony at the place of exit. As in other genera of this family, the flagella persist after the division of the cell to form the daughter colony, and even after the divisions are completed still provide locomotion for the maternal organ- ism. In some instances the flagella could be seen passing through the matrix toward that cell of the daughter colony which bears the largest eye-spot. The contractile vacuoles (Fig. 4, c. v.) are two in number, and are located in the peripheral layer of protoplasm, near the outer end of the cell. They lie in the outer part of the knob-shaped mass of protoplasm, upon either side of the place of origin of the flagella, being somewhat widely sep- arated. At diastole the vacuoles of an adult colony have a diameter of 1.5-2 /^. The contraction is rhythmical, and the two vacuoles usually alternate at regular and equal intervals. At a temperature in the laboratory of 20° C. each vacuole 430 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. contracted at intervals of forty-five to fifty seconds. In rare instances the contractions of the two vacuoles were separated by unequal intervals, being almost coincident in one case observed. The method of locomotion in Platydorina is similar in many respects to that of other genera of the family. The lashing of the flagella produces a forward movement of the colony and causes its rotation about the major axis, either from left over to right or from right over to left. The rounded end of the colony is uniformly directed forward in locomotion ; at least no instance in which the caudal end led was noticed. The forward movement is, as a rule, accompanied by the rotation of the colony, though the amount of rotation varies somewhat with the individual, the freedom of movement, and the speed of locomotion. When locomo- tion is blocked by obstructions the rotation continues, as in Pleodorina, with frequent reversals in direction. In fact, obstruction to progress seems frequently, though not uni- formly, to act as a stimulus to the reversal of the direction of rotation. The two directions of rotation are not equally prevalent, that from right over to left having a marked predominance. Thus, of twenty-five colonies observed in motion twenty were rotating from right over to left and but five from left over to right. In another twenty-five the corresponding numbers were nineteen and six respectively. Keeping a single colony under observation for some time, it is found to rotate from right over to left about four fifths of the period and to turn in the opposite direction the balance of the time, this pro- portion representing the totals of the periods of rotation, while the individual i^eriods vary greatly in length, that from left over to right lasting at times but a few seconds. This predominance of one direction in locomotion is doubt- less correlated with the torsion of the colony, whose shape is such that the rotation would necessarily be from right over to left in forward locomotion, as a result of the resistance of the water, unless, of course, there should be some disturbing factor. The immediate and most potent cause of the direc- On Platydorina. 431 tion of rotation is doubtless the coordinated action of the flagella, since reversal of direction does not seem to be accompanied by any change in the direction of the torsion of the colony. The evidence upon this point is not conclusive, but repeated efforts have failed to detect any change in the form of the plate when the direction of rotation is reversed in the living and moving colony ; and, again, colonies when killed suddenly have always the usual form of spiral, though some of them were moving in the reverse direction. AVhen the usual direction of rotation is reversed, the forward motion still continues in spite of the fact that then the form of the plate favors a backward movement ; the form of the colony, therefore, does not control the direction of rotation though it is correlated with the direction which predominates. The fact that the rotation from right over to left predominates also in Pleodorina illinoisensis and Eudorina elegans, where there are no structural features favoring such a predominance, suggests the possibility that the form of the colony in Platydorina is the result and not the cause of this predom- inance, and that the function of turning from right over to left predominantly preceded the structure which favors it. The organization of Platydorina suggests a descent from a Euclorina-\\]^Q form, in which event the systematic series and the phylogenetic series alike afford evidence of a function arising in an organism before the structure with which it is correlated appears. In another connection ('98) the subject of locomotion and polarity in the different genera of the Volvocince was reviewed and discussed. It will suffice, therefore, for the present to give a brief resume of the facts. In the lower genera of the family, Stephanosphcera and Gonium, as also in Pandorina, the rotation seems to be indifferently to the right or left, while in Eudorina and especially in Pleodorina illinoisensis it is oftenest to the left, rotations to the right in observed cases of the latter species being to those to the left as 100 to 117-138. With respect to Volvox there are no data at hand. In Platy- dorina, we find by far the most pronounced predominance of one direction of rotation, the ratio in observed cases being 432 Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. 100 rotations from left over to right to 355 from right over to left. In this respect, then, so far as there is evidence, Platydorina is the most highly differentiated genus of the family. The polarity of the lower genera, StephanospJuera and Gonium, is likewise of the simplest form, being merely physio- logical, the same pole or face of the colony always leading in locomotion. In Pandorina, Eudorina, and Volvox, however, there is the added feature of the greater brightness of the anterior stigmata, and in Pleodorina the two poles are differ- entiated by the two types of cells as well as by the characters found in the genera just mentioned; but Platydorina is the only genus of the family in which polarity is expressed by the arrangement of the cells and by structural features of the envelope. In regard to polarity, also, the new genus is thus the most highly specialized member of the Volvocime. The reproduction of Platydorina has been observed by me repeatedly in the past five years, but only the asexual phase has thus far been discovered. All of the cells of the organism are gonidial, each dividing to form a daughter colony. The sequence of the divisions and the position of the successive planes are of the type found in Eudorina and Pleodorina, the resemblance being so close that the figures illustrating the asexual development of Pleodorina illinoisensis ('98, PI. XXXVII.) might almost be used for cleavage in Platy- dorina. There is one difference, however, for in Platydorina the curved plate of cells, which becomes first cup-shaped and then ellipsoidal, subsequently flattens, the cells of the two faces intercalating during the process. The daughter colony acquires the adult form, including the tails and the torsion of the plate, before it escapes from the maternal matrix, the young colonies moving about for some time in the disinte- grating matrix before making their escape through the ruptured outer sheath. The secondary sheath surrounding the gonidial cell "becomes the outer or primary sheath of the new colony. No stages of sexual reproduction have been seen, though the collections examined represent a considerable range of season and locality. It may be that these are to be sought upon On Platydorina. 433 the bottom rather than in the superjacent strata of water where plankton collections are usually made. Aquaria about to dry up were also searched in vain for sexual stages of Platydorina . The mode of development of Platydorina is significant of its systematic position and its relationships. The number and the original arrangement of the cells, the type of develop- ment, and the character of the envelope, all indicate that Platydorina is a more highly specialized form descended from some Eudorina-\i\.e ancestor, and that it is more closely allied to Eudorina than to any other existing genus. Throughout this paper the customary term " colony " has been used to designate the organism herein described and others related to it. The wide use of the term in the literature of the subject is doubtless due to the fact that, as a rule, the organisms are composed of similar cells arranged in symmet- rical form with no pronounced axial differentiation, without contact or protoplasmic connection, separated from each other by a non-living gelatinous matrix, and each capable of performing all the functions necessary for its own life and the continuance of the species. Furthermore, the destruction of individual cells does not impair the life of the other cells of the organism, for so long as a single cell remains it continues its customary activity. The use of the term colony is, however, objectionable. A number of facts militate against this con- ception of the organism, and the discovery of the new genus here described adds to the array. (1) The cells are not always similar, for in all forms with poles physiologically or otherwise differentiated the anterior stigmata are brighter than the posterior, and in Pleodorina there are two kinds of cells, the vegetative and the gonidial, the former distinctly smaller than the latter. (2) There is in all of the higher genera a well-defined physiological polarity accompanied by the difference in the anterior and posterior stigmata, and also, in Platydorina, by a differentiation of the poles by the arrangement of the cells and the structure of the envelope, and by the further differentiation of a transverse axis. (3) In Pandorina the cells are almost in contact, and in 434 Illinois Stdfe LaJxrratory of Natural History. Volvox they are actually connected by protoplasmic processes. (4) The beginnings of histological diiferentiation are also evident in the cells composing the so-called colony. In Eiidorina, according to Carter ('58), the cells are differen- tiated into male and female in definite regions, the male cells developing from the anterior quartet and the remainder becoming female ; in Volvox sexual and asexual reproduction alike are limited to a few of the cells ; and in Pleodorina the asexual process is confined to the posterior hemisphere. The cells of the organism are thus histologically and functionally differentiated in this particular in these higher genera* Although the degree of differentiation is slight, it is neverthe- less appreciable. (5) In the matter of locomotion the activities of the individual cells of the organism are not independent of each other but are correlated, the ffagella acting together to produce rotation, its reversal, or its cessa- tion. The predominance of the direction in the higher genera plainly exhibits the phenomenon of correlated locomotor activities of the constituent cells. The facts above cited emphasize the desirability of regard- ing each of these so-called colonial flagellates of the sub- family Volvocina as a unit, with an organization of its own, and not as a colony, that is, an aggregation of independent and similar cells associated merely as a result of descent from a common parental cell, the form being a matter of chance or circumstance. The group of cells as a whole, and not each of the constituent cells, is the unit of descent, of form, and of function, and the word colony can be applied to it only by the license of usage and as a matter of convenience. Eeference has been made frequently in the preceding pages to the prevalence of colonies whose symmetry has been dis- turbed by loss of cells. In most instances only the empty secondary sheath remains, giving no clue to the cause of the loss of its contents. In collections made in Phelps Lake, Havana, 111., in August, 1896, however, colonies were often found which were parasitized by one of the Sporochytriaceie , which upon examination proves to be Dangeardia mamillata, described by Schroder ('98) as a parasite of Pandorina On riittydorina. 435 moriim. As these infested colonies frequently showed a loss of one cell or more and exhibited all stages in the destruction of the cell, it seems probable that the loss was due to the parasite. Eudorina elcgans and Pandorlna morum occurred in the same collection and were similarly infested. Two additional genera, Platydorina and Eudorina, are thus to be added to the list of hosts of Dangeardut. For the convenience of systematists a brief statement of the generic and specific characters of the form herein described is now given, followed by a key to the genera and species of the Volvocince for the assistance of students of this interest- ing and not uncommon group of fresh-water organisms. Species not as yet reported, to my knowledge, from Illinois are indicated by an asterisk Avhen found elsewhere in this continent, and by a dagger when not as yet reported from it. It is not at all improbable that all the species here listed will yet be found within this State. Platydorina n. g. Colony flattened, the two faces compressed so that the cells of the two sides intercalate ; flagella upon both faces on alternate cells. Anterior and posterior poles of major axis differentiated by the arrangement of the cells and by the structure of the envelope. Long and short transverse axes differentiated by the flattening of the colony. Cells similar, biflagellate, each with stigma, chromatophore, and pyrenoid. Asexual reproduction by repeated divisions of all of the cells, each forming a daughter colony. P. caudata n. sp. Colony flattened, horse-shoe shaped, twisted about one eighth of a turn from right over to left; cells 16 or 32, arranged in a marginal row of 10 or 12 and a central area of 6 or 20 ; posterior end with 3 or 5 prolongations or tails formed by extension of the common outer sheath. Known habitat, lakes and streams in central Illinois. Types in the collections of the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History and deposited in the United States National Museum. 436 Illinois State Ijaboratory of Natural History. KEYS TO THE GENERA AND SPECIES OF THE SUBFAMILY VOLVOCIN.E. ^ Cells arranged in ccenobia of definite forms varying with the species, bitlagellate, with stigma and one or more chro- matophores ; surrounded by a gelatinous envelope whose development separates them to a greater or less degree ; number not uniform, varying in the different species, often, but not always, definite. Asexual reproduction by repeated divisions of gonidial cells, which constitute the whole or only a part of the parental organism, to form daughter organisms ; sexual reproduction in some species (in others unknown) by the conjugation of male and female gametes, resulting in the formation of a resting stage which later develops into a new organism. Genera. 1 <^ 2 <^ 4 <^ Cells arranged in form of plate with flagella upon one face only. 2. Cells arranged in spherical, ellipsoidal, or flattened colonies, flagella not confined to one face. 3. Cells in a squarish plate, envelope closely adherent. Gonlnm. Cells in a rounded plate, envelope swollen, oval, or spherical. Stephanosphcera . Colony ellipsoidal or spherical, cells crowded to- gether, conical, reaching towards center, outer <| membrane of concentric layers. Pandorina. Cells not crowded together, nor reaching towards center of colony. 4. Colonies ellipsoidal or flattened, cells uniform in size. 5. Colonies spherical or spheroidal, or, if ellipsoidal, with small vegetative and large gonidial cells. 6. f Colony ellipsoidal or spherical, poles not dififeren- I tiated by arrangement or size of cells, or by struc- j ture of envelope. Eudorina. I Colony flattened, horse-shoe-shaped, with poles dif- I ferentiated by arrangement of cells, posterior end [ with tails. Platydorina . On Platydorina. 437 Cells not connected by protoplasmic processes, of two sizes, smaller vegetative at anterior pole and 6 0. Fig. 4. Lateral view of one of the marginal cells. X 1400. Fig. 5, a — e. Outline of the posterior ends of several deformed colonies. X 280. * Figures drawu by C. A. Kofoid and inked by Miss L. M. Hart. Plate XXXVIII. '1110 BULLETIN Illinois Qtate l aboratory OF NATURAL HISTORY Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME V. ARTICLE X. NOTES ON SPECIES OF NORTH AMERICAN OLIGOCHMTA. III. LIST OF SPECIES FOUND IN ILLINOIS, AND DESCRIPTIONS OF ILLINOIS TUBIFIC- IDM. By frank smith, A. M. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. IK15ANA, ILLINOIS. March 21, 1900. Article X. — Notes on Species of North American Oligocheta. III. List of Species found in Illinois, unci Descriptions of Illinois Tnhificidce. By Frank Smith. The study of Illinois Oligochceta has been mostly confined to collections of the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History, made near the Biological Station at Havana, 111., and in the vicinity of the University of Illinois, at Urbana ; it is probable, therefore, that several species occur in the State which are not included in the following list. Thus far no attention has been given to the Discodrilidu and birt little to the Enchytr(eid(e of the State. A list of the earthworms found in North America was pub- lished in 1888 by Garman in Vol. III. of this Bulletin, in which those mentioned as occurring in Illinois are three species of LumhricidiC, one of Acanthodrilidie, and one of PericJuEta which had become established in the University greenhouses. To these must now be added seven other species, most of which have been described since Garman's paper appeared. The species recorded have all been identified by the writer, but a considerable part of the detailed study of sections of the two new species of Tnhificidce here described has been made by a student of the University of Illinois, Miss Ella V. Engstrom, whose careful work has been of material assistance in the preparation of this paper. The drawings for the figures were made by Miss Lydia M. Hart, Artist of the Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. LIST OF SPECIES.' Luvihricidie. Lumhricus herculeus Savigny. Urbana; infrequent. Allolohophora frtida Savigny. Urbana; abundant. Allolohophora rosea Savigny.- Urbana; frequent. Allolohophora profuga Rosa. Urbana ; abundant. ' The classification of familiesis tliat adopled by Heddard in his Monograph. - y4. mwoosa Eisen. 441 •44*2 Illinoh State Lahordtori/ of Natinud History. AUolobophora eal'KjlnQsa trapczoides Duges.^ Urbana and Havana ; abundant. Allolohophora sp.'- Urbana and Havana ; frequent. Gcoscolieldic. Sparfiu)imiiis Garman. Urbana; alnindant. Diplocardia ripurui Smith. Havana ; abundant. Diploeardid sinijiddvis Ude. Urbana and Havana; fre- quent. I>lpl(>nir(Jia tip.'^ Havana; frequent. Lumhr'undulce. ThinodrUus inconstuns Smith. Havana ; abundant. Mesoporodrllus asipiunetricus Smitli. Havana ; infrequent. PhreoriictUUe. Phreoryctes cmlssfiriiis Forbes. Urbana, infrequent; Havana, abundant. Fjiichytvccidce. Fridcricid \, ventral vessel, m. ('. /. v., median ventral lateral vessel. po., spermiducal pore. Plate XXXIX. Emholocephalus multisctosiis. Fui. 1. Anterior part. X 18. Fig. 2. Set*. X 250. a and b, from ventral bundles. c, palmate seta from dorsal bundle. d, distal end of same. Fig. 3. Sections of sperm-duct, x 180. Rhizodrilus l((ctetts. Fig. -I. Setae, x 250. a, ordinary uncinate seta. b, genital seta from IX. c, genital setfe from XI. Pig. 5. Transverse section through spermiducal chamber. X TO. Plate XL. IlhizodrilHS lactcKS. Fig. 6. Sagittal section through genital papilla, seta, and gland of IX., combined from several sections. X 180. Fig. 7. Transverse section through spermatheca^. X TO. Fig. 8. Diagram of blood-vessels in VII-IX. Ilyodrilns coceiiieiis. FiG.lt. Diagram of bloodvessels in \' VIII., adapted from a figure by Stole. Verinicidiis pilosus. Fig. 10. Diagram of blood-vessels in IV-VI, from a figure by Goodrich. Those of VII-X are similar. Plate XXXIX. J ^ ^ ^^ ?!»,,, 'iiK sp.d- 3 / //'eoe// ■•^\\x. Y'^. Plate XL. 9?-9 .(...J- IX X ■-■Sep 9F r^^..-^m^^ % - .2**6iH ipiKSii w Ym :m I IX %M. i/.i/. il.'l i BULLETIN OF THE Illinois Qtate | aboratory OF NATURAL HISTORY Urbana, Illinois. VOLUME V. ARTICLE XI. NOTES ON SPECIES OE NORTH AMERICAN OLIG 0 CHAi TA. IV. ON A NE IV L UMBRICULID GENUS FROM FLORIDA, WITH ADDITIONAL NOTES ON THE NEPHRIDIAL AND CIRCULA TORY SYSTEMS OF MESO- PORODRILUS ASYMMETRICUS SMITH. By frank smith, A. M. Assistant Professor of Zoology, University of Illinois. Illinois State Laboratory of Natural History. UKBANA, ILLINOIS. ^ • June 9, 1900. JUN25 1M0 Article XI. — Xotes on S])ec'u'S of North Aiiwricdn Oligoclucta. IV. On a New Liimhricnlld Genus from Florida, with Additional Notes on the N ephridial and Circulatory Sys- tems of Mesoporodrilus asymmetricus Smith. By Frank Smith. Premnodrilus paliistris n. g. et n. sp. The worms here described were found by Mr. Adolpli Hempel in a decayed stump in a marsh in Polk county, Florida, in March, 1897. The collection consists of eight sexually mature individuals and a few others that are imperfect or immature. The worms were killed in corrosive sublimate and preserved in alcohol, and are in excellent condition for study. All of the facts pertaining to this species which are presented in this paper have necessarily been obtained from an examination of this preserved material. Sexually mature specimens, well extended, average about 50 mm, in length and 1 mm. in diameter at the tenth somite, wlierethe diameter is greatest. The body gradually decreases in diameter toward the posterior end, where the somites are relatively smaller and less distinct. The anterior end termi- nates in a proboscis about ,15 mm. in length, its diameter being .07 mm. at the base and .035 mm. at the middle. In these preserved specimens it is bent upwards. In live appar- ently complete individuals the number of somites varies from 155 to 177, the average number being 167. The clitellum extends from the anterior part of VIII to the middle of XII, and is developed on the ventral surface. The spermiducal pores are on the ventral side of IX (PI. XL I., Fig. 1 ) ; the oviducal pores are in the groove between somites X and XI and in line with the ventral seta? ; and the sperm- athecal pores are on the ventral side of VIII, a short dis- tance posterior to the ventral setic of that somite. It will be noted that the external openings of the reproductive organs are further forward by one somite than is usual in the Lum- bricuVuhe. The three sectioned specimens which form the 459 4B0 Illi)iois State LnJinratorii / Natural History. neplu'idium in the somite next following, with the nephridio- pore a little anterior to the ventral setie. On the duct, a short distance posterior to the funnel, is a compact glandular mass through which ramify minute ductules that seem to be branches of the main duct. A considerable part of the coiled region of the nephridium is in close relation to the dorsal part of the ventral vessel. The arrangement of the nephridia is an unusual one, or, at least, different from that ordinarily assumed to exist in the Lumhriculidcc. In one of the sectioned specimens there are no nephridia anterior to XIY, while in the other two there are nephridia in VI-VIII but none in the following somites anterior to XII, the first nephridiopores posterior to the reproductive organs being in XII. In each of the two indi- viduals having nephridia ant(3rior to the reproductive organs there is but one pair so situated, and the funnels of these nephridia are in Y, the nephridiopores in YI, and the main masses of the organs extend along the dorsal side of the ventral vessel into YII and YIII. Posterior to the clitellum there is ordinarily but one nephridium in each somite, — an examination of over a hundred somites affording but two exceptions to this rule, — and the more common arrangement is one in which there is on each side of the body, alternately, a single nephridium in each of several successive somites. In the three specimens studied there is but one pair of testes in each, and these are l)orne on the posterior face of septum YIII/IX ; but since there is a pair of spermiducal funnels in YIII as well as in IX, it seems probable that there has also been at some time a pair of testes in A'lII. The spermiducal apparatus is quite complex and somewhat similar to that of Erlipiilriliis and Mesoporodrilus (Eisen, '95, pp. 87-89; Smith '9(;, pp. 404, 40o). It will perhaps be advantageous to mention briefly the principal structures composing it before giving a detailed description. As already stated, there are two pairs of spermiducal funnels, one on the posterior septum of YIII and the other similarly situated in IX (PI. XLL, Fig. 1). The two sperm-ducts of either side extend backward to tlie posterior part of X or to the anterior Premnodrilns paliixtrls. 463 part of XI, where they enter the wall of the anterior end of a long sperm-reservoir which extends backward through six to eight somites. After passing through the muscular layer of this wall the ducts pass between it and the inner epithelium to the posterior end of the reservoir, where they open into its cavity. The anterior part of the reservoir is continued as a much narrowed and often considerably contorted duct, which is continuous with the inner end of a large muscular penial apparatus, the spermiducal pores ])eing situated on the posterior part of the ventral side of IX. ^ We can now go a little more into detail in describing the spermiducal structures. As already stated, there are no testes in YIII, although that somite contains a pair of sperm- iducal funnels. The presence of an abundance of sperma- tozoa in the sperm-reservoir and spermatheca' and of well- developed ova bears evidence that the animals had at least reached a state of sexual activity, and yet the most careful examination revealed not the slightest trace of testes in YIII. A similar condition of affairs is described by Beddard ('92, p. 196) as existing in Sutroa alpestris, in which species he found spermiducal funnels in IX and X but no trace of testes in the former somite. The smaller and more variable size of the funnels in VIII and the smaller diameter of their ducts — which is only a third of that of the posterior ones — may reasonably be regarded as indicating a degenerate con- dition, and that the complete disappearance of the testes has preceded that of the funnels and ducts. Each of the sperm-ducts leading from the anterior funnels bends abruptly down, passing through the testis close to its attachment to the septum. It then turns posteriorly and passes into the extensive mass of muscular tissue surround- ing the ventral part of the penial structure. After emerging from this mass it extends upward for a short distance along- side the muscular investment of the penis, passing along its ental surface, and then extends across to the muscular duct between the penial organ and the sperm-reservoir, which it follows to the latter organ, and, as before stated, passes l)etween its muscular layer and inner epithelial lining, along 464 Illinois State Laboratori/ of Natardl History. the ventral side of its cavity. Each of the sperm- ducts con- nected with the posterior funnels extends at first directly downward, and then, bending posteriorly, takes a quite direct course to the muscular duct, which it follows to the sperm- reservoir. Passing then through the muscular coat of that organ it extends posteriorly, having the same relation to the muscle layer and lining epithelium as has the duct from the anterior funnel, except that it lies on the dorsal instead of the ventral side of the cavity and opens into the chamber at a point nearly opposite the opening of the anterior duct. Each sperm-reservoir lies in the sperm-sac of its own side, and extends from the posterior part of X or the anterior part of XI for a distance of six to eight somites. This organ has powerful muscular walls, which are not constricted by the septa, and which consist of a thin inner epithelial layer, a thin layer of circular muscle fibers, and an outer and much thicker layer of muscle fibers which are nearly longitudinal but have a somewhat spiral course. Numerous large cells, apparently glandular in nature, lie outside the reservoir, and are connected with its wall by elongated narrowed extensions which presumably function as ducts, but have not been fol- lowed beyond the superficial portion of the muscular wall. The cells are altogether similar to those figured and described by Eisen ('95, p. 88) as being numerous about the anterior end of the "storage chamhev'' o( Eclijiidrilus frigidus. In Premnodrilns jxiliistris, however, they are more abundant near the posterior end of the chamber, and much less frequent at the anterior end. Besides these large prostate glands, following Eisen's nomenclature, there is a more or less inter- rupted layer of smaller cells much like those called by Eisen small prostate glands. The inner epithelium is everywhere thin and the cell walls are indistinguishable. Throughout the greater part of its length the sperm- reservoir, exclusive of the layer of prostate cells, has a diameter of about .25 mm., that of its lumen being about .08 to .09 mm. The diameter of the reservoir diminishes more gradually toward the anterior end than toward the posterior, and the chamber tapers ofi' into a muscular duct Prcmiwdrilii^ paliistris. 465 about 1 mm. in leiigtli, of which the diameter is .015 to .025 mm., while tliat of its lumen is .00") to .010 mm. The walls of this duct include an inner epithelium, layers of circular and longitudinal muscles, and an outer layer of small, more or less isolated cells, like that already described for the sperm-reservoir. This duct is usually contorted in its course, and passes through the muscular wall of the inner end of the penial apparatus and opens into the inner end of the greatly elongated penis. There is no "prostate" nor "atrium" as in Edijiklrihis frigidus, and the muscular duct, which is perhaps comparable to the "bridge" of E. frigidus, connects the sperm-reservoir directly with the penis. The proportions and relations of the penis in Preiituodrilus jialustris can best be understood by reference to Fig. 1, PI. XLI. The penial apparatus includes an elongated sac lined with epithelium, continuous with the outer epithelial layer of the penis proper, and, adjacent to this, a thick layer of longitudinal muscle, outside of which is a delicate epithe- lium. No layer of circular fibers is developed. In a speci- men in which the penis is not much protruded the penial sac extends upward and backward into the anterior part of XII, the posterior septa of IX, X, and XI being forced back with it. Strong muscular bands connect the free end of the sac with the dorsal body wall of XII-XY, the strongest band l)eing in the posterior part of XIY. The long slender penis is inclosed by the walls of the muscular sac, l)ut is nowhere connected with it except at its inner end. Its entire length is 1.25 mm., of which .4 mm. is protruded from the body in one of the specimens studied. Its diameter varies from .015 mm., near the tip, to .08 mm., near the point of attachment, and at the middle is about .04 mm. Its unusual length is doubtless correlated with the correspondingly long sperm a- thecal duct, to be described later. The lumen of that portion of the sperm-duct which forms the penis has a nearly straight course and is of small diameter, being but .005 mm. at a point midway of its length. The penis is covered superlicially by an epithelial layer continuous 4G() lUinoh State Ijahoratonj <>/ Natural History. with that of the muscuhir sac inclosing it, while the lumen of the sperm-duct which passes through it is surrounded by an epithelial layer continuous at the inner end with that of the muscular duct, and at the tip with the epithelium covering the outer surface. Between these two epithelial layers is a tissue composed of elongated cells, slightly inclined to the long axis, which connect the inner and outer epithelial layers. The cells are not as closely packed as are those of. muscle layers, and the tissue which they compose probably corre- sponds to the "fibrous tissue" which is present in the atrium of E. frigidas. A pair of large elongated sperm-sacs extends backward from the posterior septum of IX through twelve to eighteen somites. A sperm-reservoir and its connecting ducts are situated in the anterior part of each, and in one specimen the spermatheca^ also were included in the anterior part of the sperm-sacs (PI. XLL, Fig. 3). The posterior part of each sperm-sac is constricted by the septa, and in the specimens studied the cavities were filled with spermatozoa. One pair of ovaries is present in the anterior part of X, and a pair of oviducal funnels is borne on the posterior septum of that somite, opening to the exterior in the groove l)etween X and XI. Large ova were present in but one specimen and were contained in X. From the posterior part of that somite a thin sheath of cells extends l)ackward, enveloping the sperm- sac, and including in the cavity between them the posterior pair of lateral vessels of X. The posterior limits of this sheath have been difficult to determine, and there is certainly no appreciable space between it and the posterior end of the sperm-sac, neither have any signs of ova been found within it. It may be, however, that it represents an ovisac into which ova might pass at a later stage of development. There is one pair of spermatheca^, opening on the posterior part of the ventral surface of somite YIII. These organs are unusually long and much differentiated in their structure. In two specimens they push the septum VIII/IX backwards into IX, forming contorted masses, while in the other speci- men each spermatheca extends posteriorly into the corre- Prcinnodrilii.s palustri^. 4(57 spoiidiiig sperm -sac, and lies dorsad of the sperm-reservoir and parallel with it (Fig. 3), one extending into XII and the other as far as XYII. In two specimens, in which careful measurements were made, the entire length of each sperma- theca was a little over 3 mm., the greatest diameter being .25 mm. The general form and proportions of these organs can be readily seen in Fig. 2. Each spermatheca includes three distinct regions, which may be designated resi)ectively as duct, storage region, and glandular region. The duct is aljout 1 mm. in length, and has comparatively thick walls, which consist chiefly of longi- tudinal muscle fibers. The muscular layer is thickest in the middle of the duct and gradually thins out near the beginning of the storage region. The diameter of both duct and lumen is subject to considerable variation as shown by the following measurements, which are very nearly the same for the two spermatheccB most carefully studied. At a distance of .25 mm. from the" pore the diameter of the duct is .1 mm. and that of the lunzen .05 mm., and in this region the lining epithe- lium is thrown into numerous high transverse folds, which nearly fill the cavity. The diameter of the duct .4 mm. from the pore is .1 mm., while that of its lumen is reduced to .02 mm. From this ])oint to the l)eginning of the storage region the diameter of the duct gradually decreases to .045 mm,, while the lumen at first increases to .045 mm., next decreases to .02 mm., and then enlarges into the cavity of the storage region. The storage region is about .5 mm. in length and has a diameter of .15 mm. for the first half, then widens out to .22 mm., and is next constricted to .14 mm. where the division between the second and the third region occurs. Its walls are quite thin in the part nearest the duct, but gradually become thicker and more glandular and like those of the third region. This third, or glandular, region is about 1.85 mm. in length, and its diameter is ]n-etty nearly uniform, varying only from .2 mm. to .25 mm., while that of its lumen varies from .12 to .18 mm. The storage region and the glandular region are not sharply differentiated, but the former is filled with spermatozoa while the latter con- 468 IlU)wis Stiifc L(il)or<(forif of Natural Histori/. tains but few or none, and the walls of the two regions are decidedly different in structure except in the parts adjacent. The spermatheeal wall consists of outer and inner epithelial layers, in addition to which layers of muscle tissue are present in the duct. The outer epithelium is everywhere thin, and composed of flattened cells except near the middle of the duct, where this layer is considerably thickened and the cells are columnar in character. The inner epithelial layer is of moderate thickness in the duct and in the greater part of the storage region, and its cells stain quite deeply in ha^matoxylin. In the remainder of the storage region and in the glandular part this layer becomes quite thick, and is composed of columnar cells having their nuclei in the basal portion and staining only slightly in Ehrlich's hivmatoxylin. A layer of circular muscle fibers, which lies next to the inner epithelial layer and is comparatively thin, is present through- out the whole length of the duct. Between this layer and the outer epithelium there is a layer of longitudinal muscle fibers which is quite thick in the greater part of the duct, but thins out, and finally disappears in the part nearest the storage region. From the foregoing description it is evident that J^rcmno- (Irlliix paliistriii l)elongs to that l)ranch of the Lumhrindirhe which includes the peculiar genera EcUpidrllns and Mcso- porodrUim. For the purpose of studying the relationships of these different forms, a more extended examination of the nephridial and circulatory systems of Mcsoporodrilus axym- nu'triciis has been made, the results of which are next recorded. N('j)hridi(d and Circidaforu Si/xtevifi of Mcaoiiorodr'iJiix aaijin- wctrictis Smith. In the original description of this species the only reference to the nephridia is to the effect that the first pair is in VII, and that the nephridiopores are in front of the ventral setiv (Smith '96, p. 404). A re-examination of the material studied, however, with more careful attention to the nephridia, shows tiiat the main masses of the pair belonging to VII extend Misopoflrilii!^ (lay in nictrirus. 4 () 9 alongside the ventral vessel into IX ; that there arQ no other nephridia until we reach XII; and that in this somite and in each of the following ones there is but one nephridium, the order of occurrence being that common in Prciniiodriliis p(iliisiri>i, in which, as before stated, there is on each side of the body, alternately, a single nephridium in each of several successive somites. The asymmetry found to exist in these two species suggests that possibly the view^s ordinarily held as to the universality of the paired arrangement of the nephridia in the Litmhrieidiihc may be due to the lack of a careful examination of their distribution. On the other hand, in Thinodribis inconstdns, in a species of Sntroa from Yellow- stone Park, and in Eclipidrilus frigidus, — the only other species of Lumhricul'uUe which have been accessible to the author for study, — the nephridia are paired. Our knowledge of the circulatory system is necessarily incomplete, since the material for the study of this species is limited to serial sections of parts of two specimens ; but it has been possible to ascertain several facts concerning it. As in many other aquatic Ollgoclueta, branches of the vascular system are freely distributed to the wall of the intestine, taking either the form of extensive plexuses or of sinuses of considerable extent. The ventral vessel is forked near the septum V/YI, and in each of somites II-V its branches are connected with the dorsal vessel by one pair of perigastric vessels. ^ In the anterior part of each of somites VI-IX a pair of lateral vessels invested by gland cells con- nects the ventral vessel with the dorsal part of the intestinal plexus, while in the posterior part of each, a pair of slender lateral vessels without investing gland cells and having a somewhat tortuous course connects the dorsal and ventral vessels. The relations of the lateral vessels in X are similar to those existing in YI-IX, except that the posterior vessels extend backward through several somites. Before describing further the course of these vessels, it ' The terms perigastric and gastric are applied as by Eisen, whf> calls lateral ves- sels lying in the coelomic cavity perigastric, and those closely associated with the wall of the alimentarv tract gastric. 470 Illinois State Ldhoratorij of Natural History. becomes .necessary to correct the statement made in the original description that there is but one sperm- sac (Smith '96, p. 405), for while it is true concerning the specimen of which transverse sections were made and in which the repro- ductive organs were somewhat degenerate, in the other specimen there are two sperm-sacs, one containing the sperm-reservoir and the greater part of the spermiducal apparatus, and the other, a considerably smaller one, belong- ing to the other side of the worm, containing no trace of a sperm-duct. Each of the posterior pair of lateral vessels of X extends backward into the sperm-sac of its own side, forming long loops in its course. In the specimen of which transverse sections were made and in which there is l)ut one sperm-sac the posterior lateral vessel of X which is in the side containiiig the sperm-sac extends posteriorly into that organ for a distance of several somites, while the correspond- ing vessel of the other side extends posteriorly for a similar distance, and is closely invested by a layer of tissue which doubtless represents a degenerate sperm-sac. In the individual most carefully studied somites XI-XVII have no perigastric vessels, but there seem to be two pairs of gastric vessels in each (PI. XLL, Fig. 4). There is an ante- rior pair of lateral vessels without cceca in each of somites XVIII-XXIII, which leave the dorsal vessel as perigastric ves- sels but unite with the intestinal plexus instead of the ventral vessel.' There is considerable variability in the positions at which these vessels enter the intestinal wall. It may be any- where from the ventral part of the intestine to a position two thirds of the way from the ventral to the dorsal region (Fig. 5). The posterior pair of lateral vessels in each of these somites are gastric vessels. In each somite the ventral vessel is con- nected with the ventral part of the intestinal plexus in the two regions that are most closely related to the two pairs of lateral vessels. A considerable number of somites posterior to XXIII have not been sectioned, but of some of the poste- rior ones sections have been made, the most anterior of which has two pairs of perigastric vessels with ccecal diverticula : an anterior pair, connecting the dorsal vessel with the ventral Nortli Americait Liintbriciduhe. 471 part of the intestinal plexus ; and a posterior pair, connecting the dorsal and ventral vessels. In several somites nearest to the posterior end, both pairs of perigastric vessels have coeca and connect the dorsal vessel with the ventral part of the intestinal plexus. Thus far, our knowledge of the Liiiiihricnlidte of North America has been limited to species collected in very restricted and widely separated regions. Two species of Sutroa and one of Eclipidrilus from California have been described by Eisen ('81, '88, '92, and '95); one species each of Mcsoporo- drilKn and Thinodrilus from Illinois, by the writer ('95 and '96); and this paper contains the description of a species from Florida, for which still another genus name is proposed, namely, PremnodriliiH.^ Of these, Thinodrilus is much more nearly allied to Lumhricidus and certain other European forms than to its North American associates that have thus far become known, while Siitroa seems in certain particulars intermediate between the European genus Bhijiichelmis (Yejdovsky, '76) and the peculiar group of North American Lumbrlcididd- which includes Eclipidrilus, McsoporodrilKS, and Preinnodrdns. The species included in these three genera are much more nearly related to each other, so far as the structure of their reproductive organs is concerned, than is any one of them to species of other genera of the family, and yet the differences beeween them seem to the writer too great to be considered as merely specific. Thus, at present, six species of North American Lnmhrindid«' are known, and they have been placed in five different genera. Such a condition of things, in which we have in a com- paratively small group of animals a number of genera nearly or quite as great as the number of species, may be due to one or more of several causes^ and in this case it may be owing to the fact that at present our knowledge of the Luvi- hricidid(e is insufficient to make it possible to determine which ' Leidy's desfri{)tions of species presumably belonging to the l-nmbricnUdiv are inadeciuate and must be disregarded. 472 Illinois State Lahoratory of Natural History. characters should be regarded as generic and which as of specific value merely. It is possible that an unusual varia- bility in the reproductive organs exists in worms of this group, and that in a similar length of time and under similar differ- ences of conditions there might be a greater amount of divergence in the character of these organs than there would be in worms of other groups, as, for example, the earthworms, and hence that differences which among the latter would he generic ought perhaps to be considered as only specific when found among the Lumhricnlidie. On the other hand, it may be that species which now form the only members of the genera to which they belong, will after a time, by the discov- ery of other species, become types of genera which will each contain two or more species more closely related to each other than are the species now known, and thus the estab- lishing of so many genera may be justified. In the case of the three genera last referred to, when we consider that a distance of a thousand miles intervenes between Florida and Illinois and two thousand miles between Illinois and Califor- nia, and that nothing whatever is known of the Liivihricvlidfe of the intermediate regions, it seems reasonable to suppose that subsequent collections from the intervening territory may l)ring to light other species more nearly related to one or more of them than they are to each other. Until future collections and study shall disclose the facts, it seems best to the writer not to include in one genus species which dift'er so widely as do Eelipldrilus frigidtis, ]^Icso])orodrilus asym- inetricns, and Premnodrilus j^cildstris. A comparison of these three species will be facilitated by the use of the following table, which includes characters that are of more or less importance from the systematic stand- point. Xortli ADwrlcan Lumhriculi(l a'l. The posterior annuli of XII and the anterior of XIII are somewhat contracted in length. In XXIII, b5 and bQ are relatively slightly shorter, while in XXIV they are no longer distinct, the separating furrow being very shallow, so that this is counted as a qnadri- annulate somite. Bl and b 2 are longer than a 2. XXV is a contracted qnadriannulate somite in which the following relative proportion exists in the lengths of the annuli of the specimens examined : ^l^^(/3 > a2 — b'2. XXV^I presents the following variations : In the specimen drawn it is a single large annulus, particularly long at the sides, where a faint emargination and slight dorsal depres- sion indicate an incipient division at about the middle. The sensillffi are fully developed and lie well toward the pos- terior margin of the ring. Another example from the same , lot has this somite very distinctly and completely divided on the dorsal side into two annuli, of which the anterior is almost The Hirudinca of Illinois. 517 twice the length of the posterior, except at the margins, where they are more nearly equal. The sensillae are very distinct and are all placed very close to the anterior margin of the second annulus which, therefore, in spite of its smaller size, is re- garded as (rt 2+a 3). XXVII is irregular and more or less divided into two rings, especially at the margins. The anus cuts into the posterior margin of the somite, which at that point is irregularly lobed. The sensillte are close to the furrows l)y the side of the anus and the dorso-medians are widely separated. XXVIII is somewhat distinct from the sucker and bounds the anus posteriorly. Reproductive Ort/fois. — Two examples were dissected, and the small size of the organs renders it probable that they were taken at a time when these were not in full activity. The internal organs of generation (PI. XLIV., Fig. 17) are very simple. But seven pairs of small testes (t) were found at the anterior ends of somites XIV to XX. The very slender vasa deferentia (rd) reach to ganglion XI, where they bend back on them- selves and become almost immediately much enlarged and thrown into several folds (ej), de). This region appears to correspond to both the epididymes and ducti ejaculatorii of Hj of Natural History, depression bounded anteriorly by a slight forward displace- ment of the transverse ridge. The anterior pores are exactly in line with or very slightly mesiad of the ventro-lateral sensillfe, while the posterior lie well inside of this line. Annnl'i and Somites (PI. XLVI., Fig. 33, 34).— Somite I can seldom be distinguished as a distinct ring, but in well- preserved preparations a pair of dorso-median sensill?e may always be found anterior to and a little mesiad of the hrst pair of eyes. Sometimes the furrow may be discerned at and near the middle line, but it is always very faint and incom- plete. This region bears numerous labial sense organs, which are arranged in about eight transverse rows ; but, except in one case in which two were found, only the one pair of segmental sensilhe can be distinguished. Somite II consists of a single narrow annulus imperfectly distinguished from the preceding and succeeding annuli. The posterior furrow sometimes extends quite to the lateral margins of the lips, but is usually very faint and imperfect. This somite bears the first pair of eyes, together with dorso- median, dorso-lateral, and dorso-marginal sensillie, the latter being very difficult to distinguish from the labial sense organs. III is also uniannulate but is more distinct, though here again the furrows are frequently incomplete. The dorso- median sensillfe are small but distinct, while the lateral and marginal pairs are quite evident. A few goblet-shaped sense organs form a broken transverse series. IV is biannulate, the two annuli uniting at the margins to form the lateral boundaries of the mouth. The anterior annulus is somewhat the wider and bears the eyes and the full set of sensillpe toward its posterior part. It is conse- quently regarded as potentially constituted of the two primary annuli ^ 1 and^r2. Each annulus bears one roAv of goblet- shaped organs. V is a more fully elaborated biannulate somite. The anterior annulus is decidedly the larger, and exhibits on the dorsal side two transverse series of goblet-shaped organs which are ventrally united into one. A full set of metameric The Hirudinea of Illinois. 523 sensillfe is present on the posterior portion of the dorsal surface, but the ventral ones have escaped notice, if present. The second, smaller annulus (^3) has one series of goblet- shaped organs. On YI a partial furrow indicates the line of division between the constituents a 1 and a '2 of the much enlarged an- terior annulus. The extent of this furrow is variable. It extends from the dorsal mid-line, where it is deepest, laterad sometimes as far as the dorso-marginal or even to the supra- marginal sensillpe, but may reach as far as the eyes only. All of the sensilla;, both ventral and dorsal, are Avell developed and, including the 5th i^air of eyes, are on the a 2 constituent. Annulus « 3 is the last on which a complete row of goblet-organs is distinguishable. YII is triannulate, a 1 being slightly shorter than a 2 and a 3 much longer, the latter constituting about two fifths of the total length of the somite. Occasionally in large specimens a very evident furrow divides this annulus into two equal halves on the dorsal surface, and at least a shallow furrow is always present. The sensilbe are normal and on a 2. VIII is quadriannulate. .41 is slightly wider than YII a 3, and like the latter shows a partial division into the secondary annuli. .-12 bears the sensillce and « 3 is completely divided into b 5 and d 6, each of which equals cr 2 in size. The series of complete quinqueannulate somites begins with IX and ends with XXIII, making 15 in all. The five annuli of each of these are of equal length. The sensilliTe are small but very conspicuous on properly prepared material ; but the exact size of the sensory areas is difficult to figure, as they appear as circular white spots in small unpigmented areas the limits of which are rather vaguely defined. All of the sensill?e are much subject to variation, even the dorso- medians and dorso-laterals being frequently subdivided, changed in position, or entirely wanting. But the two marginal series are especially prone to subdivision ; and they are very commonly represented by a chain of contiguous smaller sensory areas, not infrequently made up of four or five members. 524 Illinois State Lahoratorn of Naticnd History. Somite XXIV is quadrianiiulate, but it is the posterior end ((/3) whicli is least developed, instead of the anterior end {al) as in the quadriannnlate somite YIII. In some examples the large posterior annnlus (a S) is marked by a slight farrow, which is more frequent on the ventral surface. XXV. Because of its variations this normally triannulate somite is one of the most interesting. A 1 is always longer than XXIV a 3. In four specimens it exhibits no trace of a subdivision dorsally or ventrally ; in six there is more or less evidence of a ventral furrow ; four examples, while lacking any trace of a furrow, show two distinct integumental ridges at the margins of this annulus ; two others have both the marginal ridges and the furrow ; and in one individual of large size the furrow extends even half way around the dorsal side. The remaining annuli a 2 and a 3 are of equal size and present no noteworthy features. XXVI is uniannulate above, and the sensilhe, with the exception of the dorso-median, which are at about the middle of its length, are situated close to the posterior border. On the ventral side a partial annulus is developed in many cases posterior to the line of sensilbe. XXVII. For the reason just stated the short preanal annulus is regarded as XXVII al, while al and (f 3 are united in a single sensilliferous annulus which is cut into by the anus. The furrow al/a^ is sometimes incomplete mesially. The dorsal surface of the sucker is marked by a variable number of concentric furrows crossed and connected by irregular wrinkles. The sensilhx^ are difficult to distinguish, but generally about three belonging to each of the dorsal series are present. Reproductive Onjaiis. — The dissection represented in the figure (PI. XL v.. Fig. 26) was made upon a well-extended mature specimen of medium size. In this the nerve cord passes to the right side of both the genital orifices, and the unpaired portions of the genital ducts lie to its left. The dissection of a number of specimens of this species from several localities shows that while this relation between the The Hirudinea of Illinois. 525 nerve cord and the genital apparatus usually obtains, it is not constant and diagnostic of the species. Cases have been found in which the nerve cord passes to the left of the genital exits or to the right of one and the left of the other, or in which the atrium or vagina crosses the nerve cord dorsally and lies partly on each side of it. Ten pairs of testes {tl, ^3), belonging to somites XIV to XXIII inclusive, appear to be constant. Each occupies the first two annuli of its somite and the posterior annulus, or even two annuli, of the preceding somite. They are largest in the middle of the series, and become smaller toward both ends. The twenty short vasa efferentia are simi- lar in structure and appearance to the paired vasa deferentia into which they empty. Each of the latter (vd) is a rather conspicuous glandular tube of yellowish color which takes a more or less sinuous course just entad of the line of nephridial vesicles. When about opposite to the male pore it turns sharply caudad, having become narrower and of firmer, less glandular, texture, and soon passes into a much convoluted region, the epididymis (e/>). The latter is neither compact nor massive, and in the posterior part of XIII opens into the sperm sac (s-s), a fusiform enlargement with which the ductus ejaculatorius {dc) begins. Throughout its greater part the latter is a delicate tube which extends forward to a point opposite to the male pore and then again bends on itself sharply caudad to open into the fundus of the atrium or penial sheath {at) at the anterior limit of somite XV. Throughout its entire length the ductus ejaculatorius has firm glistening muscular walls. 'Generally the right ductus passes beneath the nerve cord at its anterior turning point behind ganglion XI, but occasionally it is the left which makes this crossing. The atrium or penis sheath (at) is very long and slender. Beginning at the anterior end of somite XV it reaches caudad to ganglion XVII, bends sharply on itself, and passes directly cephalad to the male orifice. In the specimen figured, which measures 92 mm. in total length, the atrium has a length of 40 mm., the ratio between the short and long limljs l)eing as 526 lUinols State Lahordtorii of Natural History. 1 to 2.3. The organ is of firm consistency and- very mus- cular. In shape it is terete with the closed end slightly enlarged and provided with an ensheathing layer of prostate glands (gj^). The protruded penis is a long filiform organ reaching a length of at least 30 mm., though this condition is not exhibited by any of the Illinois examples. The female organs are equally and correspondingly special- ized. A pair of ovaries (or) lie on the 2d pair of testes dorsal to the nerve cord and in the posterior end of XIV. Very short oviducts pass from them to a common meeting place, where they are enveloped by the large glandula albu- ginea (go), from which the common oviduct emerges. This narrow firm-walled tube (adc) leads to a large pyriform ovisac (os), which it joins a short distance from the extremity of the narrow end. The vagina (ra) begins near the large end of the ovisac at the posterior end of somite XVI. It is long, slender, and terete, about 2-3 times the diameter of the common oviduct, of an appearance similar to the latter, and with muscular walls. The coil and whorls into which it is thrown are sufficient to give it, when straightened out, a total length equal to the penis sheath. Alimentary Canal. — The lip is separated by a slight circular sulcus and fold from the three jaws. Each of the latter is the anterior termination of a pharyngeal fold which here becomes slightly more prominent and curves peripherally into a little pocket into which the jaw may be retracted, so that the whole tooth-bearing ridge may be concealed. The jaws are low and rounded, not at all compressed on the free edge and very little prominent. They bear a double file of large coarse teeth (PI. XLIL, Fig. 7) arranged in from 12 to 16 pairs. The individual denticles have bilobed bases and sharp, slightly hooked, apices, those of each pair meeting in a common ridge above the groove which separates their bases. From each side of the pharyngeal folds, which continue the jaws caudad, somewhat lower folds arise, and in the intervals between these three triad systems addi- tional single or double folds may arise. Thus the pharynx is thrown into from nine to twelve, or even more, longitudinal The Hirud'mea of Illinois. 527 ridges extending throughout its entire length. The pharynx reaches into somite X. Along narrow straight stomach reaches to XIX, where a pair of large lateral cajca arise and pass caudad to XXII or XXIII. Along the course of the stomach are numerous small lateral c NeptieUs lateralis Bristol (in part) ('98). It has been found impossible to certainly identify this with any of Yerrill's species. . There is little doubt that Nephelis lateralis Verrill and Nephelis qnadristriata Verrill are founded on two distinct species which are common in New Eng- land and both of which are quite distinct from Leidy's species ; but N. quadristriata Verrill (not Grube) may be in part synonymous with E. j^ttnctata. Diagnosis. — Complete somites quinqueannulate, d 6 some- times slightly larger than the other annuli but not typically divided in the middle by a cross-furrow ; pigmented eyes three pairs, the first situated on II, the second and third on IV ; genital orifices, male at XII d'2,/a'2,, female at XII d 5/d 6; atrium deeply cleft, the prostate cornua prominent, and the anterior loops of the vasa deferentia reaching to ganglion XI. General Description. — Bristol ('98) has given an excellent description of the external characters, the annulation, and the neural metamerism of this species, most of which need not be repeated, especially as the external features distinguishing species of this family are mostly slight and obscure. The number and arrangement of the external annuli may be *Blaiiivil!e's original spelling is here followed. IJlanchard has changed this to Ilerpobdella, and separated the family from the Hirudinidie. The Hiriidinea of Illinois. 533 almost exactly the same in several species, which are never- theless readily distinguished by other and very obvious char- acters, and especially by the terminal portion of the male genital ducts, Erpohdella punctata reaches a large size and has a more robust form than any other of our common nephelids. In preserved specimens the dorsal surface is rougher and the posterior lateral margins thinner than in most other species. The body is very muscular and has a firm feel. For the purpose of comparison with the species of Dina which are described below some features of the complete somites may be mentioned. Of these there are seventeen, YIII to XXIV inclusive. All of the live annuli are of nearly equal size, but b 6 is frequently slightly enlarged. This is, however, never very obvious, and the annulus is never marked by a transverse furrow except in strongly con- tracted specimens in which all of the annuli are equally affected. .12 is noteworthy as being rougher than the secondary annuli, and its papillie are frequently larger and more numerous, extend further marginally, and are more subject to concrescence into a transverse ridge. When fully extended all of the annuli are free from cross-furrows or wrinkles, but when contracted irregular and interrupted transverse furrows may appear on all of the annuli. These may occur anterior to the papilla only, or both anterior and posterior, in which latter case the annulus is more or less completely divided into three parts, of which the middle bears the principal papilla'. Such transient subdivisions must not be mistaken for the true tertiary annuli which appear in Dina, etc. Reproductive Organs. — The external male organ when fully extruded has the form of a low circular disc occupying nearly the entire median width of two annuli. It consists of a marginal rim fitting closely around a transverse elliptical central cushion of al)out twice the height of the rim. The terminal openings of the sperm-ducts appear well separated on the sides of the cushion. The testes extend through six and one half somites 534 Illi)wis State Lahnrdtory of Natural History. (posterior part of XYIII to the anterior part of XXIY). In one specimen in whicli they were counted the number varied from fifty to sixty on each side of each somite. They are small pyriform or globoid bodies grouped about the vas deferens, into which they empty, in most cases by separate ducts. The vas deferens (PL XL VII., Fig. 35, rd) is an extremely fine, straight tube reaching to ganglion X\'III. At this point the duct suddenly enlarges into a very conspic- uous epididymis or sperm-sac (ss). This much convoluted tube continues through several somites but gradually dimin- ishes in diameter. By somite X\' it has become only one half or one third of its greatest size, and in Xl\' the convo- lutions become more open and soon the duct is merely wavy. This region is the ductus ejaculatorius (de), whicli passes forward in a long loop to ganglion XI, at which point it turns sharply mesiad and caudad and returns to the terminal organ. Eegarding all of the latter as the atrium, it consists of two more or less elongated curved conical horns {p) directed longitudinally. At their bases they rest on a pair of • swollen pedestals covered with a layer of prostate glands, which also extend somewhat on to the bases of the cornua themselves. This basal region, the two halves of which embrace the nerve cord between them, may be separated quite to the basal integuments, where each half communicates by a separate orifice with a small bursa. The median part of the atrium appears to be represented by these two basal halves of the cornua. The ovaries (PI. XLML, Fig. 35, ov) are a pair of long slender sacs, each doubled on itself, with both ends in somite XII, and the loop reaching far back along the median line, ventral to the alimentary canal, to the neighborhood of ganglion X\'II. From somite XIV to somite XXll the two ovarian sacs lie side by side; just anterior to ganglion XIV they diverge, the closed end of each arching upwards around the pharynx ; and they end close together, near the median line. The external ends of each, on the other hand, retain their ventral position and join l^eneath the nerve cord at the common external opening ( 9 ). The Hirudinea of Illinois. 535 Habits.- — The favorite food of this species is small aquatic oligochffites. Bristol ('98) and Leidy ('70) have given some account of its habits. DiNA E. Blanchard. Dina fervida (Yerrill). Xejjhelis fervida Verrili ("74). Nej^helis fervida is supposed to have been described from individuals of this species having eight eyes, a variation which frequently occurs. The species here described is abundant in the Lake region from which Verrill's types were taken, and has the size, form, and color of that species. Diagnosis. — Complet esomites quinqueannulate, b 6 being distinctly enlarged and divided by a cross-furrow into two equal halves ; pigmented eyes normally three pairs, the first situated on III ; genital orifices at XII d 2/« 2 and XII b bjb 6 ; median chamber of atrium of medium size and not deeply cleft, the prostate cornua prominent, and the vasa deferentia not reaching anterior to their ends in somite XII. General Description. — A single small specimen represents this species in the Illinois collections, and the following notes are derived from numerous examples in my own collection received from Ohio and Michigan and from the well-preserved series taken by Professor Reighard during his recent explo- ration of Lake Erie. None of the large number of specimens examined reaches a length of much more than two inches. The body is depressed posteriorly ; the mouth is relatively large and the lip blunt. The posterior sucker is relatively larger ihan in most small nephelids, with its anterior margin more broadly free and reaching as far forward as XXV a 2. The body is not of particularly firm consistency. The clitellum extends over fifteen annuli, X /? 5 to XIII a 2. The annulation and metamerism are essentially as in E. punctata, except that the first pair of eyes is placed on the third instead of the second annulus, and that in the com- 536 Illinois State Laboratortj of Natural History. plete somites <^ 6 is subdivided. In addition to these there are some incipient differences, but they are too minute to be used in this connection. The larger size and subdivision of the annulus i^* 6 is a very ol)vious and constant character. It is true that many of the other annuli at times show faint cross-furrows, but these lack the constancy, depth, and com- pleteness of the diagnostic one. KejyrodKctive Organs. — The testes are larger and fewer than in E. pinietata. In one specimen they average thirty-two to each side of each somite. As in that species, they extend from the posterior part of XVIII to XXI\'. The vasa defer- entia {vd), sperm-sacs (ss), and the greater part of the ducti ejaculatorii (de, PI. XLVIL, Fig. 36) exhibit no important differences ; but the anterior ends of the latter stop short at the anterior limit of somite XII, where they join the apical ends of the prostate cornua. When the copulatory organ is fully retracted the ducti form no loops whatever anterior to these cornua ; but when it is protruded the latter are drawn somewhat caudad, leaving a short sweep of the ductus anterior to it on each side. The prostate cornua (p), though prominent, are shorter than in E. punctata and diverge more widely laterally. A third important difference is found in the presence of a well-developed median atrial chamber {at). This is quite undivided in the median line, where the nerve cord, instead of sinking between two separated lobes, is raised some distance above the body floor. The prostate glands cover the dorsal portion of this chamber as well as the bases of the prostate cornua. The protruded male copulatory organ differs in some details from that of E. punctata. It is relatively larger and especially higher. It is supported on a broad pedicle which projects freely through the male pore. Around the entire edge of the disc is a groove which divides it into a proximal and distal circular ridge. The latter bears a delicate ring- like flange which probably corresponds to the muscular border here present in E. punctata. The central cushion is subcircular, and instead of two widely separated openings has The Hiriulinca of Illinois. 537 a single large crescentie one, into the deep ends of which the prostate cornua open. The female .organs present no important differential char- acters, although the ovaries (or) of all of the specimens dis- sected reached to ganglion X\'III. Color. — ^Living specimens, according to Verrill's description and a water-color sketch sent me by Professor Eeighard, are pale red with some darker cloudings. Preserved specimens may be separated into two groups according to the amount of pigment present. One group, which includes the smaller and a portion of the larger ones, lacks pigment entirely ; the other, which includes most of the larger examples, has the dorsal surface marked with more or less numerous minute black flecks which differ greatly in number and somewhat in arrangement. Many specimens have so little pigment as to appear light-colored, with a faint dark band on either side of a median clear band ; in others the dark bands are very broad ; and still others appear quite dark, the pigment specks being very numerous and close and extending continuously over the median region. In all cases the margins, including the region of the lateral vessels, are unpigmented ; and in no case does the pigment assume any other form than that of minute flecks more or less closely placed. Dina microstoma sp. nov. Di(i(jnosis. — Complete somites quinqueannulate, d6 en- larged and subdivided ; first pair of eyes in III ; male orifice at XII d Ija 2, female orifice at XII/XIII ; median chaml)er of atrium relatively large and without median groove ; prostate cornua inconspicuous, shorter than diameter of median chamber ; vasa deferentia lacking anterior loop and ending abruptly at the atrium. General Description. — This is a generally slender species. Well-preserved specimens are nearly terete and in extension linear. An average specimen measures : — 538 lUiuois State Lahordtonj of Natural History. mm. Total length, 42. Length to male pore, . . . . .. .10. Width at male pore, . . . . . . 3.4 Greatest width (middle), . . . . .4.2 Width at anus, ..... 3.5 Depth at male pore, .... about 1 . 5 Depth at middle, ..... about 2 . Depth at anus, . . . . . . .1.2 Diameter of posterior sucker, . . . . 2.5 The width is greatest at about the middle of the body but varies little in the entire postclitellal region. The margins of the body are rounded except just about the anal region, where lateral Hanges begin at about XXIII and become more and more prominent until they terminate in a pair of thin expansions which embrace the base of the sucker. A curious feature which appe'ars in a great many specimens is a short contracted region just behind the clitellum, where the body becomes perfectly terete and bellies ventralward. From the genital region forward the body tapers quite rapidly to a point just posterior to the mouth and then rapidly con- tracts into the narrow lip. As in nephelids generally, the entire l)ody is covered with small sensory papillae arranged in zones on every annulus. The mouth is small, even in specimens which have been killed in a much relaxed condition. In most specimens the upper lip is extended, slender, and prominent, and is often most sharply distinguished from the succeeding annuli by a deep furrow which passes behind the postoral ring. Dorsally it is smooth, divided into distinct l)ut very narrow rings, and provided around the margins very richly and above sparingly with labial sense organs. There are three pairs of eyes, of which the first are the largest and are situated on somite III, instead of on II as in most nephelids. Sometimes one or each of these is repre- sented by two. The second and third pairs are on IV, the dorsalmost slightly in advance. TJie Illrudinca of Illinois. 539 The male gonopore is situated as usual at XII b'lial, the female at XII/XIII, three annuli consequently intervening. The former is a large and conspicuous opening usually sur- rounded by a thin integumental disc which spreads over about one half of the contiguous annuli. The female pore is small and usually concealed. A strongly developed clitellum is generally present. It is thick both dorsally and ventrally, sharply defined, and extends over fifteen annuli, from y^ b 5 to XIII b'2. The nephridiopores are as usual. Even for a nephelid the posterior sucker is weak and small. It is very broadly attached, with scarcely any free margin anteriorly, where it reaches only as far forward as XX\'I. Eight low radiating ridges or lines of papillae disposed in pairs mark its upper surface. Anus large, with a much wrinkled margin, XXVI/XX\'II. Annuli and Somites. — The external features of metamerism in this species differ but little from those of E. pnnctatu, but as Bristol has adopted another standard of enumera- tion in his description of that species it seems best to give a brief account of the present species. I is the wide anterior region of the lip. II is a narrow preocular annulus bearing one row of sen- sory papillae. III is a single wide annulus faintly sul)divided and bearing a complete row of sense organs posteriorly and an incomplete row anteriorly. The large pair of eyes are on its extreme anterior part and are separated by a distance of about three times their width. IV is biannulate, the first ring being distinctly subdivided and separated from the second dorsally but united to it ven- trally. In many cases its posterior furrow is very deep and limits the head region as noted above. The second group of eyes is borne by this somite, the ventral pair l)eing on the furrow a *2/« 3, the dorsal just in advance of it. \' is also biannulate, the first annulus l>earing two rows of sense organs and being somewhat wider than the second. W is triannulate. .41 and a 3 are each slightly wider than 540 Illhwis State Laboratory of Natural History. a 2, bear two rows of sense organs, and are faintly divided marginally. VII is qiiadriannulate, the fourth annulus being double ; but as none of the other annuli show any indication of further division the formula is regarded as h l-\-h 2+a 2 + (6 5+6 6). VIII to XXIII inclusive are complete somites. In these the relative widths of the annuli and the subdivision of 6 6 are not such constant and obvious features as in iJina fervida, but careful measurements of a large number of cases show the approximate equality of the first four annuli, while h 6 proves to be about twenty per cent, larger. In many of the best-preserved specimens this relative proportion appears with great constancy and regularity, but in others is more or less obscured. In well-extended specimens a dividing furrow cuts h 6 approximately into two equal sub-rings, but in con- tracted examples this is also obscured by the development of transient wrinkles as described for E. x)unctata. Of the more distinct sensory papilla; there are on each ring from fourteen to eighteen above and about an equal number of smaller ones below. These are arranged in an irregular transverse row along which smaller sense organs are scattered. Frequently a median longitudinal dorsal tract is entirely free from them, and they always become more evident marginally. On a 2 the papillae are usually more prominent, especially so, as Bristol has observed, on some of the posterior somites. On h 6 two rows of papilhie appear. These are especially distinct at the margins of large individuals. XXI\^ is sometimes complete, and is always quinque- annulate so far as observed. In most cases it differs from the complete somites only in the relatively smaller size of 6 6 and the tendency, sometimes quite evident, for 6 5 and 6 6 to unite on the ventral side. XXV is usually quadriannulate, sometimes only tri- annulate, but it has been found impossible to find any in- herent clue to the exact values of the annuli. Analogy with other species would point to the first form as being composed of 6 1 +6 2 -fa 2 +a 3 ; the second, of a 1 +a 2 +a 3. XX\'I is biannulate, the wide anterior annulus showing The Hlrudinca of lUiuois. 541 two rows of papillae. The anus cuts the second, which bears, but very few papilhe. XXVII is postanal and biannulate. Reproductive Organs. — The numerous small testes are found in somites XVIII to XXIII, but their number was not deter- mined. The vasa deferentia, sperm-sacs, and ducti ejacula- torii are sufficiently indicated in the figure (PI. XLVIL, Fig. 37). The latter end abruptly, without any preatrial loop whatever, at the prostate horns, into the ends of which they empty. The atrium is a very characteristic one and differs from that of any other species of iVmerican nephelid which I have- examined. It may be remarked in passing that the eft'erent male apparatus of this species and Diiia fervida have many characters in common which distinguish them from iKmexl- cdua Duges, -which Blanchard regards as being co-specific with the type of the genus. The median chamber {at) is a thick-walled sac of relatively large size. It stands up promi- nently from the body floor, raising the nerve cord with it and barely marked by a median groove. Its transverse diameter is much greater than the antero-posterior and about equal to its height, but in immature specimens the organ is spherical. The prostate cornua {p) are small, — when straightened, less than the shortest diameter of the median chamber, — and their attachments are far apart on the dorsal surface of this chamber, with which they remain in close contact as they curve strongly ventrad on each side. At their lowest point at the sides they become continuous with the ducti ejacu- latorii as above described. The ovaries {ov) present no peculiar features, and their form and relations are sufficiently indicated in the figure. Color. — Not one of many examples of both young and old shows any pigment. This would indicate that during life they are red, the color of the blood showing through the integuments. Small tul>ifjcid worms have been found in the stomachs of those examined. 542 Illinois State Lahordtorjj of Natural History. Note on DiscodriVuhf . — The collection sent me includes three bottles of Diseodrilidi. 545 EXPLANATION OF PLATES. The somites and ganglia are indicated by Roman numerals I to XXVII; and the annuli of individual somites by letters («, b, etc.) which indicate the successive generations by which they multiply from the triannulate type, the indices (1, 2, etc.) being their theoretical num- ber in an antero-posterior series. With the exception of a few modifications which are explained in the text the lettering is uniform for all of the figures. The metameric sensillfe: md, dorso-median; dl, dorso-lateral; dm, dorso-marginal; sm, supra-marginal: sbm, sub-marginal; vl, ventro- lateral; vm, ventro-median. The cutaneous papilla-: mp, median; mdp, dorso-median; dij), dorso- latei'al; dnip, dorso-marginal: smp, supra-marginal. General: a, anus; at, median atrium or penis sheath: atf, internal elevation resulting from male pit (false atrium \ covered by a layer of copulatory and prostate glands; ati, lumenal coat and sac of atrium; c, clitellum; cgl, copulatory glands; cgi), copulatory gland pores, (^ of male and $ of female system; de, ductus ejaculatorius (variously modi- fied and not always strictly homologous as indicated in the several figures); ep, epididymis (remark under de applies to this also); g, cutaneous glands: g XI to XVIII, ganglia of the ventral chain, num- bered to agree with their somites; gp, (or pg), prostate glands and pros- tate region of penial sheath; ga, glandula albuginea; njy 1 to 17, nephridial openings of pairs indicated by the numerals; od, oviduct; ode, common oviduct; of, closed end of ovarian sac; os, ovisac (uterus); ov, ovary or ovarian sac; ov' (in Fig. 27), position of ovary; p, prostate cornua of atrium; pg (or gp), prostate glands and prostate region of penial sheath; .s.s, sperm-sac; t 1, 2, etc., testes, numbered by pairs from before backwards; ra, vagina; vd, vas deferens; (j^,male genital orifice or its position; 9 > female genital orifice or its position. Unless otherwise stated all of the figures are made from specimens in the Illinois collection and have been copied to scale as nearly as possible after the originals, which were drawn upon camera tracings. Diagrams are indicated. Plate XLIL Fig. 1. Placobdella parasitica. Dorsal view showing the metam- erism and annulation of the twelve anterior somites; the cutaneous papillai are not indicated. The color pattern is shown, the stippled parts being the brown or olive background and the plain areas the yellow- spots and band. X 5. Fig. 2. Placobdella rugosa. Similar representation of the anterior ten somites (except X a 3). The principal cutaneous papilhe are shown. From a specimen taken near Philadelphia. X 5. 646 Illinois State Ldhordtorij of Natural History. Fi(i. 3. Placobdella rtigosa. Details of papillation, etc., of the right half of the dorsal surface of somite XIX of a large example. The lines to the right indicate the relative positions of the ventral furrows. X 5. Fio. 4. Placobdella parasitica. A. similar view of onehalf of somite XIX, but of a much smaller specimen. X 5. Fig. 5. Hemiclepsis carinata. The principal features of the external morphology of the dorsum of somites I to XII. Drawn mostly after a specimen from Venice, Ohio, and very slightly diagrammatic. X 4.5. Fig. 6. Glossiphonia lineata. A slightly diagrammatic figure show- ing the external morphology of the dorsum of somites I to X. The annulation is originally derived from young; the sensillse and papillae added as determined in adults. The young, X 30. Fio. 7. Hamopis maniiorati-s. Surface view of denticles from median jaw. X 112. Plate XLUI. A cti)! ohdella inequiannidata. Fig. 8. The dorsal external morphology of the entire leech (somites XIII to XXI) omitted. Somewhat diagrammatic in that the furrows are made to appear more regular than in the original. X 35. Fig. 9. Side view of the posterior end, showing the sucker with some of its papillse projecting, x 35. Fig. 10. Outline of the sucker from below, with the circle of papill* somewhat diagrammatically shown. X 35. Pig. 11. A small portion of the sucker rim showing the muscular ribs and four of the papill*. The glandular ducts of the latter are stippled. X 130. Plate XLIV. Philobdclla gracile. Fig. 12, 13. Dorsal and ventral views respectively of the anterior nine somites, showing the chief features of external morphology. X 5. Fi(4. 14, 15. Ventral and dorsal views respectively of the posterior end of the body; the dark spots are outlined. X 5. Fig. 16. The ventral surface of somites XII and XIII showing the various features of the region of the genital orifices. A combination drawing from several specimens. X 5. Fig. 17. Reproductive organs dissected and partly displayed. X 4. Fig. 18, 19. Posterior and anterior ends respectively from the left side. X 5. Fig. 20. Surface view of a posterior portion of the tooth series of the median jaw with the outline of the jaw partly shown. X 5G. Fig. 21. Female reproductive organs dissected and viewed from the right side. From the same dissection as figure 12. X 4. Plate XLII. Gi-ossii'iioMD.K Hirudin I O.K. Tlatk XLIII ACTIXOJSDKLLA INKCillA NNf LATA. Pt.ate XLIV 20 ^ 22 PlIILOT.I)KLT,.\ GKACILE, ]SI.\(I{()I!I)I;LI,A DKCOKA. Plate XLV ll.KMOIMS M AK.MOHATIS, H. I,.\TKKAI,U Plate XL\I. II.KMOI'IS MAKMOKATIS, H. fATER.Vl.IS. Plate XI.VII. TJie Hintdiiica of Illinois. 5 4 7 Mdcrohdelid decor (t. Vui. 22. The male organs dissected and viewed from the right side. The left sperm-duct has its natural position, the right has been displaced upwards. The dotted line indicates the form of the atrium before the removal of a layer of muscles and prostate glands. X 4. Fig. 23. The greater part of the reproductive oi-gans dissected and viewed from above. Prom a specimen from the Fulton Lakes, New York. X 4. Plate XLW Fiu. 24. Haiiiopts iiKinnorafis. Diagram of tiie entire dorsal annula- tion, showing also the sensilla', eyes, etc. X 2. Fkj. 25. Hamopis Uiteralix. Surface view of denticles of median jaw. X 11~. Fi(i. 26. lltcinopiii iHaruioralis. Reproductive organs dissected and partly displayed in dorsal view. The female organs are shown nearly in situ: the atrium with the left ductus ejaculatorius and epididymis has been displaced far to the left and only a portion of the right ductus is shown: three testes of the left side ai'e included, x 3.5. Fig. 27. Hcvmo})is lateralis. Reproductive organs dissected and dis- played as in figure 2(5. The ovaries and oviducts are displaced tf) the left, but the proper position of th^ left ovary is indicated in outline (or'). The atrium is withdrawn somewhat to the right and the epididymes and ducti ejaculatorii of both sides are shown, as well as the anterior end of the right vas deferens and the first testis, x oo. Plate XL VI. Fig 28, 29, 32. IhcinoplM lateralis. Dorsal, ventral, and left lateral views respectively of the anterior eight (+) somites, x 5. Fig. 30, 31. Ha'mopi.^ lateralis. Right lateral and dorsal views respectively of the posterior end. x 5. Fig. 33, 84. HcEinopis initrmoralis. Respectively l(»ft lateral and ventral views of somites I to YTIT and part of IX. Plate XL\ II. The three figures of this plate represent similar dorsal views of dissec- tions which were selected because of the equality in size and apijarent equality of sexual activity of the individuals. In each case almost exactly the same extent of body is represented, as indicated by the numbered ganglia, and the somites containing the testes are omitted. All, X 7.5. Fig. 35. Eritubdella punctata. The left ovary and tlie right sperm duct have been removed. Fig. 86. Dina fervida. Fig. 37. I)i)ia microstomit. '"^^Ib BULLETIN 4 iS mmu NATURAL HISTORY, Urbana, Illinois. X'OLUME V. Contributions to a Knowledge of the Natural History of Illinois. 1897-1901. IlliTii>is Siaie Laboratory of Natural History, Urbana, 111. 1902. INDEX. abiiurmipes, Atax, 408. Acanthodrilidae, 444. found in Illinois, 442. Acineta, 342. food of, 311. mystacina, 342. food of, 342. Acinetidas, 341. Actinastrum, 421. Actinobdella, generic characters of, 504. inequiannulata, 504-508. annuli and somites of, 506-508. color of, 508. diagnosis of, 504. general description of, 504-506. Actinophrys, 321. sol, 313, 322. Actinosphaerium, 322. eichhornii, 313, 322. Actinurus neptunius, 363. aculeata, Anurcca, 353, 355, 383. Centropyxis, 320. Difflugia, 313, 314.320. valga, Anura?a, 383. acuminata, Uifflugia, 313, 319. Metopidia, 377. Notholca, 353, 355, 383. Trachelomonas, 313, 325. acus, Euglena, 313, 324. Adinetida;, 357. ^olosoma, 443. hemprichii, 443. tenebrarum, 443. ^olosomatidte found in Illinois, 443- affinis, Cyclops, 29,65. Temora, 225. Temorella, 225. agilis, Cyclops, 29. Fridericia, 442. Alasmodonta, capacity for infesta- tion exhibited by, 414. comjjlanta, 401, 403. parasites of, 409, 410, 412, 416. confragosa, 401, 403,412. parasites of, 409, 410. marginata, 401, 403. parasites of, 408, 409, 410, 412, 416, 417. rugosa, 401, 403, 410, 412. parasites of, 408, 409, 410. tappaniana, 401, 403. parasites of, 409. undulata, 401, 403. parasites of, 409. alatus, Lampsilis, 401, 403, 408, 409, 410, 412, 413, 414, 416. Unio, 403. albidus, Cyclops, 29, 47, 62, 63, 64. alboflavicans, Megalotrocha, 361. albuquerquensis, Diaptomus, 98, loi, 113, 115, 146, 176, 183, 184. AlgcC eaten by Monostyla cornuta, 375- filamentous, as food of Euchla- nis, 374. alienum, Lecaiiium hcsperiduni, as located on authority of (ireen, 393- alveolata, Euglypha, 321. AUolobophora, 44(). as food of Philobdella gracile, 518. caliginosa trapezoides, 442. fcetida, 441. giesleri, 442. mucosa, 441. profuga, 441. 550 Allolobophora — Continued. rosea, 441. sp., 442. turgida, 442. alpestris, Sutroa, 463. ambiguus, Diaptomus, 177. Amblyophis, 325. viridis, 325. American Naturalist cited, 233, 263, 266, 267. americanus, Cyclops, yj, 38, 42. Amoeba, 305, 306, 314, 317, 421. food of, 31 1. proteus, 317. radiosum, 317. Amcebidie, 314, 317. Amphaskaiidria, 102. Ampliileptiiiie, 331. Amphileptus, 331. aiiser, 331. amygdali, Diaspis, 398. ancylus, Aspidiotus, 398. angularis bideiis, Brachionus, 354, 381. Brachionus, 353, 354, 380, 421. Animalcule, bell, 309, 338. slipper, 332. Animalcules, sun, 321. swan, 331. Annelida, 356. Annelids as food of Glossiphonia complanata, 493. t)f Glossiplionia stagnalis, 498. annulatus, Cyclops, 33, 35. annulosa, Taphrocampa, 369. Anodonta, capacity for infestation exhibited by, 413. cori)ulenta, 401, 403. parasites of, 405, 408, 409, 410, 412, 413. 415. 416. edentula, 403. grandis, 401, 403, 406. parasites of, 409, 416. imbecilis, 401, 403. Anodonta imbecilis — Continued. parasites of, 408, 409, 410, 412, 413- parasites of, 405. plana, 403, 406. suborbiculata, 401, 403. parasites of, 405, 408, 409, 410, 411, 412, 413. anodontae, Conchophthirus, 333, 407. anodontoides, Lampsilis, 401, 403, 406, 408, 409, 410, 412, 413, 416. Unio, 333, 403. anser, Amphileptus, 331. iJileptus, 332. Anthophysa, 322. vegetans, 323. Anuraea, 274, 352, 382. aculeata, 355, 383. seasonal distribution of, 353. valga, 383. cochlearis, 355, 383. as food of rotifers, croppie, and cattish, 351. eaten by Asplanchna bright- wellii and A. herrickii, 364, 365. seasonal distribution of 353. hypelasma, 382. sernilata, 383. tecta, 354, 382. as food of rotifers, 351. eaten by Asplanchna bright- vvellii and A. priodonta, 364, 365. seasonal distribution of, 353. Anuritidce, 359, 382. Apathy, Stefan, Analyse der ;ius- seren Kcirperform der Hirudi- neen, cited, 479. Aphrothoraca, 315, 321. Apiomorpha spp., changes in sy- nonymy of, 393. Apstein, C, 6, 7. INTIF-.X. 551 Apsteiii. C. — Continued. l);is Plankton des Siisswassers und seine tiuantitati\e Best- inimung, cited, 2, 3, 4, 5, 8. Das Si'isswasserplankton, Me- thode und Kesultate der (juantitativen Untersucliun*;', cited, 2, 3, 4, 5. Uft)er dietiuantitative Bestini- niung des Plankton ini Si'iss- wasser, cited, 3, 4, 5. aptera, Polyarthra, 367. arbuscula, Zoothamnium, 33Q. Arcelia, 305, 306, 312, 318, 421. dentata, 313, 314,318. fond of, 311. vulgaris, 313, 314, 318. angulosa. 313, 314, 318. discoides, 313, 314, 318. Arcellidie, 315, 318. arcuata, Atax, 408. areolatus, Gomphogastcr, 368. arniata, Traclielomonas, 325. armatus, Diaptomus, 133, 135, 136. Aromochelys odoratus, Opercularia irritabilis found on, 340. 'l^)koplirya quadripartita re- corded from, 342. articulata, Opercularia, 340. Asellus, Carchesium graniiiatuni found on, 33Q. ashlandi, Diaptomus, q8, 100, iii, 120, 124, 158, 167, 183, 260, 265. asperrima, Quadrula, 401, 403, 408, 409, 410, 412. 414. asperrimus, I'nio, 403. Aspidiogaster, 410, 414. concliicola infesting Unionidic, 404. infesting Lampsilis ellipsis, 405. Lampsilis gracilis and L. ven- tricosus, 411. Unionidae, 408, 409, 411, 412, 413, 415, 416. Aspidit)tus ancylus, resemblance to Diaspis snowi, 398. eucalypti as variety of A. })er- niciosus, 396. hederae, synonymy of, 395. as type of Evaspidiotus, 395. ostreteformis, resemblance of, to Diaspis piricola, 398. perniciosus, synonymy of, 396. Aspirotricha, 307, 316, 332. Asplanchna, 344, 347, 364, 365, 421. brightwellii, 354, 355, 364. food of, 351, 364. Codonella cratera as food of, 336. ebbesbornii, 354, 364. type of troplii of, 345. girodi, 365. Iierrickii, 354, 365. food of, 351, 365. parasites of, 365. priodonta, 354, 364,365. food of, 351, 365. Asplanclinidce, 357, 364. seasonal distribution of, 352. As])lanchnopus, 365. Codonella cratera as food of , 336. niyrmeleo, 365. food of, 351, 365. (juantity of food taken by, 345. Astacobdella philadelphica, 542. Asterionella, Diplosiga frequentis- sima found on, 328. rays of, eaten by rotifers, 351, 364, 365- Astrosiga, 328. radiata, 329. asymmetricus, M esojxi rodrilus, 442, 468, 472, 473. 474. 475- Atax al)normipes infesting I'nion- i(he. 408. arcuata infesting Unionidie, 408. fossulatus infesting Unionida?> 408. indistinctus infesting I nionidie, 408. 552 INDEX. Atax —Continued. infesting Unionida;, geograpliicai distributiun of, 414, 415. serratus infesting Unionida?, 408. spp. infesting Unionidae, 407, 408, 40Q, 41 1, 412, 413, 414, 416. stricta infesting Unionidae, 408. ypsiloplmnis infesting l^in'onidip, 408. ater, Cyclops, 29, 49, 62, 64. Aulastomum lacustre, 519. aurelia, Paramaecium, 307,313, 332. aureus, Volvox, 276, 285, 287, 438. aurita, Eosphora, 324, 370. Notommata, 369. australe, Ctrlostoma, 390. B bacillifer, Diaptonius, 107. bakeri, Bracliionus, 353, 380,421. brevispinus, Bracliionus, 380 barretti, .Stentor. 313, 334. Barmis, Th., and Daday, E. w, de- scription (if Bracliionus caudatus, cited, 381, Bdellddrilus |)hiladelpliicus, 542. found on Canibarus blandingii and on C. diogenes, 542. Bdelloida, 356, 357, 358, 362. Beddard, F. E., A Contribution to the Anatomy of Sutroa, cited, 463. A Monograph of the ( )rder of Oligocha?ta, cited, 441. on sperniiducal structures of Sutroa alpestris, 463. Bell animalcule, 309, 338. Benhani, W. B., Note on a New Species of the Genus Nais, cited, 447- Berlese and Leonardi's synonyniv of Aspidiotus heders, 395. Bibliotheka Zoologica, cited, 25(). bicolor, Cyclops, 29, 62, 63, 64. biccjrnis, Mastigocerca, 371. bicristata, Mastigocerca, 352, 371. bicuspidatus, Colurus, 376. Cyclops, 2g, 30, 44, 53, 62, 63, 64. bidens, Brachionus, 381. bioculata, Hirudo, 497. Biological Experiment Station es- tablished by the University of Illinois and the Illinois State Laboratory of Nat- ural History, 30. (See also Biological Experiment Station of the University of Illinois, and Biological Station, Illinois. of the University of Illinois, Methods and Apparatus in Use in Plankton Investi- gation at the, 1—25. Station, Illinois, 28, 63, 137, 146, 229, 233, 234, 399, 418, 441, 479. Bi palpus lynceus, 368. biraphis, Diglena, 371. Birge, E. A., 173. birgei, Diaptonius, 99, 108, 117, 172. bisetosus, Cyclops, 29. Blainville, H. D. de, 532. Blanchard, Raphael, 480, 532. Hirudinees de la Prusse Orien- tale, cited, 4(^3, 498. on Dina mexicana, 541. on situation of male pore in Glossiphonia triserialis, 493. blandingii acutus, Canibarus, 340, 342. Canibarus, 542. Bogue, E. E.. description of Coc- cidae by, cited, 389. Borgert, A., Ein einfaches Netz zum P^ischen \(in Plankton bei schneller Fahrt, cited, 8. Hosmina, 274, 421. as food of As|iianchna herrickii, 365. Bothrioneuron vejdovskyanuni,452. Bracliionidte, 359, 378, 420, 421. 553 Brachionus, 274, 347, 352, 378. angularis, 354, 380, 421. bideiis, 354, 381. seasonal distribution nf, 353. bakeri, 380, 421. brevispinus, 380. seasonal distribution of, 353. bidens, 381. caudatus, 381. dorcas. 354, 379- spinosus, 354, 379. seasonal distribution of. 353. niilitaris, 355, 381, 421. eaten by Asplanchna lierrickii, 35 b 365- seasonal (listril)ution of, 353. mollis, 354, 378. pala, 354, 355,378. seasonal distribution of, 353. \arieties of, 378. punctatns, 354, 37Q, 421. seasonal distribution of, 353. rubens, 379. urceolaris, 379. seasonal distribution of, 353. type of trophi of, 345. \ariabilis, 354, 380. bractea, Metopidia, 37.7. Brady, G. S., 98. Braun, A., Betrachtungen ueber die Erscheinung der Verjlingung in der Natur, insbest)ndere in der Lebens- und Bildungs- geschiclite der I'flanze, cited, 284. on rotation of Pandorina, 284. Ueloer einige \'olvocineen, cited, 288. brevicorne, Ceratiuni, 313, 330. brevispinosus, Cyclops, 39, 41. brightwellii, Asplanclnia, 351, 354, 355. 364- Bristol, C. L., 539. on papiihe of Dina niicros- t(jma, 540. Bristol. C, L. — Continued. The Metamerism of Nephelis cited, 532, 535. Brooks, W. K., Handbook of In- vertebrate Zoology, cited, 509. Bucephalus infesting Unionidie, 402, 404, 408, 409, 411, 416. geographical distribution of, 414, 415- polymorplius infesting Union- idge, 407. Biitschli, O., 301. on locomotion of (ionium. 283. I'rotozoa, cited. 274, 283,284,314. conijjilation of Synopsis of higher groups of Protozoa from, 314. lUiffalo-hsh, 351. bulba, Monostyla, 375. Bulletin of the Illinois State Lab- oratory of Natural History cited, 225, 237, 389, 441. of the Museum of Com])arati\e Zoology cited, 498. Zoological, cited, 406. C Calanus, 237. californica, Pleodorina, 273, 274, 276, 277, 279, 280, 281, 283, 286, 290, 313, 328, 421, 437. caliginosa trapezoides, Allololxiph- ora, 442. Callidina. 364. elegans, 364. Callipappus, species belonging to, 390. Cambarus blandingii acutus and C. diogenes, Opercularia irri- tabilis found on, 340. Tokophrya quadripartita re- corded from, 342. and C. diogenes, Bdellodrilus philadelphicus found on, 542. Cambridge Natural History cited, 344- bb4 campanula, V(jrticella, 338. Candacidae, 104. Canthocamptus, 62, 225. capilliferus, Cyclops, 51. Carchesium, 338. granulatuni found on Aselius,33Q. lachmanni, 338. polypinum found on Lcnniacea?, _ 338. carinata, Hemiclepsis, 4q8. Mastigocerca, 371. caroli, Diaptonnis, 181. Carp, 351. Carter, H. J., Note on a P"resli-wa- ter Species of Ceratium from the Lake of Nynee (Naini) Tal in Kumat.m, cited, 421. On Fecundation in Eudorina elegans and Cryptoglena, cited, 284, 434. Carteria, 420. Castle, W. E., description of (ilossi- plionia stagnalis cited, 498. The Metamerism of the Hi- rudinea, cited, 470. castor, Diaptonius, 98, 106, 130. catellina, Diglena, 370. Cattish, Anur;ea cochlearis eaten i^y. 35 1- Cathypna, 374, 375, 421. leontina, 374. luna, 374. stokesii, 375. Cathypnida;, 359, 374. seasonal distribution oi, 353. Cattle attacked by Ha?mopis mar- moratis, 527. by Macrobdella, 51 1. caudata, Platydorina, 419, 421, 435, 437- Traclnionionas, 313, 325. caudatus, lirachionus, 381. Centrifuge, Purdy Electric, 20. Centropages, 235, 244. grimaldii, 238, 242. liamatus, 244. Centropagidje, 98, 103, 244. collections and literature at com- mand in preparation of Schacht's pajjcr on, 228, 229. first published reference to, 97. modification of description of family of, 10 1. synopsis of the relationships of the genera Osphranticum, Limnocalanus, Diaptomus, and Epischura, of the family of, 102. Tlie North American, belonging to the Genera Osphranticum, Limnocalanus, and Epischura, 225-269. (Special index, p. 270.) Ccntropagina, 103. Ccntropyxis aculeata, 320. Cephalosiphon, 360. linniias, 360. Ceratium, 307, 321). lire\ icorne, 313, 330. hirundinella, 330. kumaonense, 421. ceratophylli, Limnias, 360. Ceratophyllum, 234, 302, 349, 354. Floscularia ornata found on, 360. Linniiascerato]ihvlli found on, 360. Mega lot roc h a alboflaxicans found on, 361. (Ecistes interjiiedius found 011,361. Cercaria infesting Unionidie, 402, 407, 409, 416. geogra])hical distribution of, 414. Ceriodaphnia, 421. Cluetococcus and Kermicus, differ- ence between, 392. Cluetogaster diaphanus, 443. diastrophus, 443. infesting LIiiionid;e, 409- geographical distribution of, 414. INDEX. 555 Chaetogaster — tW//"/////.^^/. limnaei, 443. infesting Unionidae, 407. Chtetunotus as fd of PmtDzoa 31'- Chalaratliuraca, 315, ],22. Chambers, \'. T., Two New Species i)f Entoniostraca, cited, 97, 132. Charmoy, I). d'Emmerez de, de- scriptions of Coccids by, cited, 390- Chelydra serpentina, Opercularia irritabilis found on, 340. Tokophrya quadripartita re- corded from, 342. Chionaspis prunicoia, \aliditv tif, 3q8. Chlamydodontidie, 332. Chlorupeitididie, 326. Choanofiagellata, 315, 328. Chrysomonadidie, 326. Chydorus, ig, 421. as food of Asplanchnopus myr- meleo, 351. oi rotifers, 345, 351, 366. Ciliata, 307,316, 330. as food of Acineta mystacina, 342. Cladocera, 12, iq, 62. claparedi, Strombidium, 335. claparediainis, Limnodrilus, 442, 444- Claus, C, 27, 1^8. Neue Ben of Cyclops prasinus, 57. 557 Cragin, F'. W. — Continued. t)ii occurrence ol Hetero- cope ill Nortli America, 225. Craspedomonadidie, 328. crassicaudis, Cyclops, 2(). cratera, Codonella, 312, 313, 335, 336, 351. 364, 365- Difflugia, 336. Crayfishes, examination of, for Pro- tozoa, 310. Opercularia irrital)iiis found on, 340. Croppie, Anuriea coclilearis eaten by, 351- Crustacea, 355. as food of rotifers, 341;. examination of, for Proto/oa, 310, 312. rotifers as food of, 351. Cryptomonadidie, 328. Cryptomonas, 328. ovata, 313, 328. Ctenochiton nuytisia?. Fuller on validity of, 394. curva, Cutluirnia, 341. Cyclodininte, 331. Cyclopid;e, A Contribution to a Knowledge t)f North American Fresh-water, 27-82. (Special index, \i. 83.) ex])laiiation of plates of, 81, 82. from liigh lakes and ponds, 62. list t)f articles consulted in E. B. Forbes's article on, 66-81. list of Nortli American species of, 63-65. most abundant species of, in Great Lakes, 62. of the Illinois Ki\er at the Illi- nois Biological Station, 63. preservative of, 31. specific characters of, 29-31. Cyclops, 27, 28, 31, 63, 97, 100, 105, 106, 132, 141, 225, 234, 274, 421. Cyclops — Continued. attinis, 29, 31, 65. agilis.29. albidus, 29, 47-49, 62, 63, 64. description of, 48. distribution of, 48. syiioiiNiny of, 48. americanus, yj, 38, 42. annulatus, 33, 35. ater, 29, 49-51, 62, 64. bicolor, 29, 62, 63, 64. l)icuspidatus, 29, 30, 44-47, 53, 62,63, 64. description of, 45. distribution of, 47. synonymical discussion of, 44. l)isetosus, 29. bre\ispinosus, 39, 41. capilliferus, 51. crassicaudis, 29. Diaptoniiis, and Osphranticum, relati\ e hardihood of, loo. dybowskii, 29, 62, 63. edax, 33-36, 62, 63. description of, 35. distribution of, 35. synt)nymy of, and comjiarison witli other species, 33. fimbriatus, 29. \'ar. popjiei, 63, 65. flmiatilis, 57. forbesi, 44, 45. fuscus, 29, 64. general distril)ution of, in North America, 62. gigas, 29, 37. gyrinus, 47, 48. helgolandicus, 29. hyalinus, 29. in gens, 37. insectus, 37, 38, 39, 41- insignis, 29, 63. lacustris, 29. leeuwenhoeckii, 34, 35. leuckarti, 29, 31-33, 34, 36, 63. 558 INDEX. Cyclops — Continued. levis, 37. longicornis, 130, 132. macrurus, 2g. niagn()Cta\us, 57. minniius, 44, 45. niddestus, 2g, 51-53, 62, 63, 64. description of, 52. synonymy and distribution of, 51- nanus, 2<-^. navus, 44, 45. oitlionoides, 29, 63. on nio\ements of, 235. parens, 38, 41, 42. pentagonus, 57. perarmatus, 59, 60. phaleratus, 29, 30, 59-62, 63, 65. l)est character for ready recog- nition of, 62. description of, 60. distributit>n of, 59. prasinus, 57-59, 63, 65. pulcliellus, 29, 44. robustus, 29. scutifer, 29. serratus, 44, 45. serrulatus, 29, 30, 54-57, 62, 63. 65. description of, 55. synonymy, \ariation, and dis- tribution of, 54. var. elegans, 54. \ar. montanus, 54, 55. signatus, 29. \ar. tenuicornis, 47. strenuus, 29. thomasi, 44, 45. Tokojihrya cyclopum foinid on, 341. unianguiatus, 39, 41. varicans, 29, 63, 64. vernalis, 29, 64. viridis, 29, 30, 37-40, 41, 43, 48, 62, 63, 64. Cyclops viridis — Corttinued. description of, 39. basal segment of rudimentary foot, different authors quoted on, 40. synonym ical discussion of 37-39- \ar. bre\ ispinosus, 30, 41, 62, 63. 64. var. insectus, 31, 41-44, 62,63, 64. Cyclopsina, 97, 105. cyclopum, Tokophrya, 341. Cypridopsis, 421. cyrtopus, Notommata, 369. Cystoflagellata, 305, 315. D Dactylopiina;, 389. Dactylopiini, 389. Uactylopius, 389. Dangeardia mamillata as parasite of Platydorina caudata, Pando- rina morum, and Eudt)rina ele- gans, 434, 435. Daphnia, 421. Daphnids as food of Protozoa, 311. decora, Hirudo, 508. Macrobdella, 508. deflexa, Euclilanis, 345, 374. deflexus, Colurus, 376. deitersi, Diaptt)mus, 99. Dendromonadinae, 322. dentata, Arcella, 313, 314, 318. Dero furcata, 443. limosa, 443. obtusa, 443. vaga, 443. Desmids as food of Protozoa, 31 1. Desnn)thoraca, 315. diaphaiuis, Cluetogaster, 443. Diaptomus, 62, 100, 103, 132, 134^ 141, 225, 230, 234, 237, 250, 265, 421. 559 Diaptumus — Continued. albucjuerquensis, q8, loi, 113, 115, 146-149, 176, 184. and D, mississippiensis, means of distinguishing males of, 140. distribution of, 1S3. ambiguus, 177. armatus, 133, 135, 136. aslilandi, gS, iii, 120, 124, 158, 167-169, 260, 265. distribution of. 168, 183. females of, 100. baciUifer, 107. birgei, gg, 108, 117, 172-173. caroii, 181. castor, g8, 106, 130. chnipcs, g8, loi, 108, iig, 127, 178-181. distribution of, i8(. 184. similarity to D. piscina? and I> leptopus, 181. C(L'ruleus, gg, loi, 107. color of, 138. Cyclops, and Osphranticum, rel- ative hardihood of, 100. deitersi, gg. diagnosis and remarks on genus of, 105-107. distribution of tlie American species of, 182-184. drieschi, gg. eggs of, 228. eiseni, g8, 101, no, 115, 162 164, 166. distribution of. 183. first establishment of genus of, 97- franciscanus, g8, no, nS, 132. 160-162, 166, 182. distribution of. 183. fresnanus, 176, 178, 184. gibber, gg, loi. giganteus, 138. glacialis, loi. I) i a p t o m u s — Con tin ueo\ . gracilis, gS, 173, 182. compared with I), siciloides, 155. graciloides, 98. incongruens, 99. kentuckyensis, 97, 130, 132. leptopus. g7, n2, wj, 130 132, 135, 181. distribution of, 182. fifth pair of legs of male of, contrasted with those of D. l)iscina?, 125, 127. synonymy of, 132. lintoni, \\^, n8. 127 I2g, 134, 160. contrasted with I), stagnalis, I2g. distribution of, 182. literature of, 264. with E. nordenskiuldii, 254, 255, 256. distribution of, 260. on descriptions and figures of, 259. nordenskioldii, 98, 249, 250, 251, 252-256. compared with E. lacustris and E. nevadensis, 254, 255, 256. on figures of, 254. on liabitat of, 226. Osphranticuni, L i m n ( 1 cahmus, and I3iaptomus, discus- sion of structural simi- larities and differences indicati\e of tlie rela- tionships of the genera, 226-228. general bibliography of genera of, 185-204; ad- ditions to, 268. synopsis of the relation- ships of the genera of, 102-105. Epistylis, 312, 339, 340, 341. flavicans, 339. plicatilis, 342. found on shells of water-snails, 339. Eriococcini, 389. Eriococcus, 389. Erpobdella, 532. punctata, 532-535, 536, 539, 540. and Dina fervida, differences in annulation, metamerism, and repniductix e organs of, 535.536. diagnosis and general descrip- tion of, 532. food of, 535. Erpobdella punctata -Continued. habits of, 535. reproductive organs of, 533. eucalypti, Aspidiotus perniciosus, 396. Euchlanida;, 359, 373. Euchlanis, 274, 373, 375, 421. deflexa, 374. type of trophi of, 345. dilatata, 374. food of, 351, 374. lyjiceus, 368. ])yriformis, 374. seasonal distribution of, 352. tricjuetra, 374. Eucyclops, 54, 65. Eudorina, 274, 275, 276, 277, 278, 280, 284, 286. 287, 288, 420, 422, 423,425, 427, 431, 432, 433, 434, 435. 436, 437- disease of, 289. elegans, 273, 277, 286, 43 •• 435- 437- parasite of, 435. polarity and locomotion of, 284, 285,431.432- possible Pleodorina stage of, 286, 287. Euglena, 274, 301, 306, 313, 323, 325, 420. acus, 313, 324. as f(K)d of Opercularia, 311. of Opercularia irritabilis, 340. of protozoans, 324. of rotifers, 312, 324. oxyuris, 313, 324. spirogyra, 313, 324. torta, 313, 324. viridis, 312, 313, 324, 325. Euglenidae, 323, 325. Euglenoidina, 323. Euglypha, 305, 306, 321. alveolata, 321. Euglyphidie, 315, 321. Eurytemora, 225. herdmani, 226. 56s •eustala, Salpina, 352, 373. Evaspidiutus, type of, 395. Evermann, B. W., and Meek, S. E., 259. F fer\ida, Dina, 535, 540, 541. Nephelis, 535. fimbriatus, Cyclops, 2q. var. poppei, Cyclops, 63, 65. Fish, 504. Fislies attacked by Macrolidella, 511. parasitized by Piscicola, 504. Protozoa as food of, 312. Flagellata, 304, 306, 315,322,420. flagellum, Pristina, 443. flavicans, Epistylis, 339. floridana, Philobdella, 51 1, 518. floriger, Walkeriana, 391. Floscularia, 360. ornata, found on Ceratophyllum, 360. seasonal distribution of, 352. Floscularids, 356, 360. tluviatile, Tintinnopsis, 335. fluviatilis, Cyclops, 57. Epischura, 226, 250, 265. [Epischura] Laniellipodia, 265. foetida, Alk)k)bopliora, 441. Forbes, E. B., 98. A Contribution to a Knowl- edge of North American CyclopidiE, 27-82. Forbes, S. A., 29, 31, 37, 38, 48,98, 124, 127, 185, 263, 301, 303, 418, 475, 479. An American Terrestrial Leech, cited, 528, 531, 532. A Preliminary Report on the A(|uatic Invertebrate Fauna of the Yellowstone National Park, Wyoming, and of the Flathead Region of Montana, cited, 126, 127, 143.244- 259, 263, 267. Forbes, ^. A.~Conti>iued, adaptation and compilation from MS. of, 102. Biennial Report as Director of the Illinois State Labo- ratory of Natural History for 1893-94, cited, 3. description of Cyclops in- sectus, cited, 38. of Diaptomus lintoni, 127- 129. • of Diaptomus piscinae, 125- 126. of Diaptomus s hos ho n e, 141-143- • of Epischura nevadensis Columbia;, cited, 259. of Osphranticum labro- nectum, 233. descriptions and figures of Epischura lacustris cited, 263-264. List of Illinois Crustacea, with Descriptions of New Species, cited, 97, 135, 138. on color of Diaptomus stag- nalis, 140. on distribution of Limnocal- anus macrurus, 244. on habitat and movement of Osphranticum, 226, 234, 235- on Hajmopis lateralis, 528, 531. 532. on parasites of Asplanchna herrickii, 365. on segmentation of anteima^ of Osphranticum labronec- tum, and on its color, 234. On some P^ntomostraca of Lake Michigan, cited, 97, 124, 135, 140, 233, 263. On the FoodofYt)ung White- fish (Coregonus), cited, 233, 244. 566 Forbes, S . A . — Con tin ued. On the Fuod Relations of Fresh-Water F i slies : A Summary and Discussion, cited, 237. Preliminary Report upon tlie Invertebrate Animals inhabiting Lakes Geneva and Mendota, Wisconsin, with an Account of the Fish Epidemic in Lake Mendota in I884, cited, 169, 244, 264. The First Food of the Com- mon White-fish (Corego- nus clupeiformis Mitch.), cited, 237. forbesi, Cyclops, 44, 45. furcipata, Diglena, 345. forficula, Furcularia, 370. F o r h a n d ligar i Videnskabs-Sel- skabet i Christiana, cited, 242. fossulatus, Atax, 408. foveolata, Gastroschiza, 368. Fragillaria, iq, 274, 421. fragosa, Difflugia, 312, 313, 320. franciscanus, Diaptomus, 98, no, 118, 132, 160, 166, 182, 183. frenchii, Lecanium, 394. frequentissima, Diplosiga, 328. Fresenius, G., on locomotion of Gonium, 283. Ueber die Algengattungen Pandorina, Gonium, und Raphidium, cited, 283. fresnanus, Diaptomus, 176, 178, 184. Fridericia agilis, 442. frigidus, Eclipidrilus, 464, 465, 466, 469, 472, 473. 474. 475- Frogs attacked by Macrobdella, 51 1, eggs of, eaten by Macrol)della decora, 511. Hemiclepsis cariuata found at- tached to, 504. fucosus, Potomoicliftor, 230, 233. Fuller, Claude, as authority for changes in synonymy of Apiomorpha spp., 393. descriptions of Coccidie by, cited, 390. on Lecanium macrozamise as a \ariety of L. frenchii, 394. on species be.longing to Calli- pappus, 390. on validity of Ctenochiton (?) nuytisia;, 394. slides of Aspidiotus pernicio- sus eucalypti from, 396. withdrawal of S o le n o p h o r a dryandrae by, 392. furcata, Dero, 443. Furcularia, 370. forficula, 370. longiseta, 370. type of trophi of, 345. fuscus, Cyclops, 29, 64. Garman, H., A Preliminary Report on the Animals of the Mis- sissippi B o 1 1 1) m s near Quincy, Illinois, in August, 1898. Part L, cited, 420. list of North American eartii- worms cited, 441. notes on and sketches of Pla- tydorina cited, 420. Gastropods as food of Glossiplio- nia stagnalis, 498. of Ha;mopis marmoratis, 527. Gastropus ehrenbergii, 368. Gastroschiza foveolata, 368. lynceus, 368. Geoscolicida? found in Illinois, 442. gibber, Diaptomus, go, 101. gibbt)sus, Unio, 401, 403, 409, 410, 412, 413. 415. 416. Giesbrecht, W., 102. 1)11 a comnnui character of the Copepoda, 228. 567 Giesbrecht, W. Continued. on a distingiiisliiiig character of the Copepoda, 226. on specificdistinctionsof males in Uiaptomus, 100. Systematik und Faunistik der pelagischen Cupepuden des Gulfs vou Neapel und der angrenzenden M e e r e s a b - schnitte, cited, 98, loi, 226, 228. Ueber pelagische Copepoden des Rothen Meeres, gesam- melt von Marinestabarzt Dr. Augustin Kramer, cited, 12. giganteus, Diaptomus, 138. gigas, Cyclops, 2g, 37, Gissier, C. F., Note regarding Cliange of Color in I)iapto- mus sanguineus, 138. Variations in a C o p e p u d Crustacean, cited, 138. giesleri, Allolobophora, 442. gigantea, Vaginicola, 341. girodi, Asplanchna, 365. gissensis, Distyla, 375. glacialis, Diaptunuis, 101. Glaucea, 97, 105. globator, Vol vox, 276, 285, 287,312, 313. 327. 365, 438. globulosa, Ditirtugia, 312, 313, 314, 318, 320, 351, 364. Glossiphonia, 493. complanata, 494, 496, 497. diagnosis of, 493. food of, 493. lineata, 493-497- alimentary canal, color, and reproductive organs of, 496. annuli and somites of, 494-496. diagnosis of, 493. general description of, 494. habits of, 497. stagnalis, 496, 497. breeding season of, 498. Glossiphonia stagnalis -t'£>;///«wn, 337. hypelasma, Anura?a, 382. Hypotricha, 308, 316, 336. I Ichthyobdellidie, 4g8, 504. Idiococcime, 380. igneus, Stentor, 334. Ihering, H. von, descriptions of Coccidae by, cited, 390. Illinois Biological Station, 28, 63, 137, 146, 229, 233, 234, 399, 418, 441. 479- State Laboratory of Natural His- tory, 28, 99, 185, 228, 229, 233, 242, 259, 268, 2QO, 441. illinoisensis, Plt-odorina, 273. 274, 290, 424, 431, 432, 437. Tintinnopsis, 313, 335. lUoricata, 357. Uyodrilus, 446, 448 coccineus, circulatory system of, 451, 452. imliecilis, Anodonta, 401, 403, 408, 409,410,412, 413. Imhof, (). E., 98. immane, Ccekistoma, 390. incongruens, Diaptonuis, 99. inconstans, Thinodrilus, 442, 4C9. indistinctus, Atax, 406. inequiaimulata, Actinobdella, 504. Infusoria, 304,307,309, 315, 330. ciliated, as parasite of Union- idie, 407. ingens, Cyclops, 37. Insect larvte, aquatic, examination of, for Protozoa, 310. Insects, a (] u a t i c , as food of Hsemopis marmoratis, 527. insectus, Cyclops, 37, 38, 39, 41. insignis, Cotylaspis, 404, 405. Cyclops, 29, 63. intermedins, CP2cistes, 361. irritabilis, Opercularia, 340, 342. Isomastigoda, 326. J Jennings, H. S., A List of the Ro- tattirio of the Great Lakes' and of some of the Inland Lakes of Michigan, cited, 366, 375- on Cathypna stokesii, 375. Journal of Morpliology cited, 542. Juday, Chancey, 229. Jurine, L., Histoire des Monocles c|ui se trou\ent aux en\ irons de Geneve, cited, 97. Kellicott, I). S., 305. Kflly, H. M., A Statistical Study of the Parasites of the Union- idae, 399-418. Kent W. Saville, 301. Maiuuil of the Infusoria, cited, 314. kentuckyensis, Uiaptomus, 97, 130, 132. Kermicus and Cluetococcus, dif- ference between, 392. 572 INDEX. Kerniicus — Continued. dactylopiine character of larva of, 392. King, G. B., descriptions of Cocci- dae by, cited, 390. Kiebs, G., Ueber die Organisation der Gallerte bei einigen Algen und Flagellaten, cited, 276. Klein, L., Morphologische und bio- logische Studien fiber die Gattung Volvox, cited, 276, 285, 287. Neue Beitrage zur Kenntniss der Gattung Vol vox, cited,287. on polar differentiation and ro- tation of Volvox, 285. Vergleichende untersuchungen liber Morphologie und Biol- ogie der Fortpflanzung bei der Gattung Volvox, cited, 285, 287. Koch, C. L., Deutschlands Crus- taceen, Myriapoden, und Arach- niden, cited, 97. Kofoid, C. A., 23. 229, 303, 313, 329, 400, 418, 440. on Cotylaspis insignis as par- asite of Anodonta corpu- lenta, 405. On the Occurrence of Troch- osphiera solstitialis in the Illint)is River, cited, 362. on Hempel's Tintinnopsis illinoisensis, 335. Plankton Studies. I. Meth- ods and Apparatus in llse in Plankton Investigations at the Biological Experi- ment Station of the Uni- versity of Illinois, 1-25. Plankton Studies. II. On Pleodorina illinoisensis, a New Species frt)m the Plankton of the Illinois River, 273-293 ; cited, 431. Kofoid, C. A. — Continued. Plankton Studies. III. On Platydorina, a New Genus of the Family Volvocidas, from the Plankton of the Illinois River, 419 440. kumaonense,Ceratium, 421. Labidesthes sicculus, L i m noc a 1- anus as food of, 237. labronectum, Osphranticum, 227, 230. lachmanni, Carchesium, 33S. lachrymosa, Quadrula, 401, 403,408, 409, 410, 411, 412, 414. lachryniosus, Unio, 403. lacinulata, Notonimata, 365. Lacrymaria, 330. truncata, 330. lacteus, Rliizodrilus, 443, 444. lacustre, Aulastomum, 519. lacustris, Cyclops, 29. Epischura, 228, 229, 249,250, 251, 252, 254, 255, 256, 260. Nais. 443. laevissimus, Lampsilis, 401, 403, 408. 409. Unio, 403. Lamellibranchs as food of Ha?nio- pis niarmoratis, 527. Lamellipodia, 267. [Epischura] fluxiatiiis, 265. Lampsilis alatus, 401, 403. parasites of, 408, 409, 410, 412, 413, 414, 416. anodontoides, 401, 403. parasites of, 406, 408, 40*), 410, 412, 413, 416. capacity for infestation exhibited by, 4I3- ellipsis, 401, 403. parasites of, 405, 409, 410, 412, 413, 416. gracilis, 401, 403. INDEX. 573 Lampsilis gracilis - i'ontinued. parasites of, 402, 408, 40Q, 410, 411,412, 413, 414, 415, 416. higginsii, 401, 403. parasite i)f, 409. kt\ issimus, 401, 403. parasites of, 408, 40Q. iigainentinus, 401, 403, 410. parasites of, 407, 401;, 410, 412, 413. 414. 416. luteolus, 401, 403. parasites of, 400, 410, 412, 413, 414, 416. nasiitus, 401, 403. parasites of, 409. uchraceus, 401, 403. parasite of, 409. parasites of, 405, 408. parvus, 403. parasites of, 404, 409, 410, 412, 413- rectus, 401, 403. parasites eif, 408, 409, 410, 412, 416. tenuissimus, 401, 403. parasites of, 409. ventricosus, 401, 403. parasites of, 407, 408, 409, 410. 411, 412, 413, 416. Lande, A., on l)asal segment of rudimentary foot oi Cyclops \ ir- idis, 40. laniger. Coccus, 391. lata, Mastigocerca, 372. lateralis, Ha?mopis, 512, 528. Hirudo, 52^'. Nephelis, 532. Lecaniodiaspis, 395. Lecanium frencliii, 3()4. iiesperiduni alicnuni as located by Green, 393. macruzamis. Fuller on, 3^4 patellifurmis as located by Xew- stead, 393. Leeches, 407, 479-546. leeuvvenhoekii, Cyclops, 34, 35. Leidy, Joseph, 301, 305, 471. Corrections and Additions to former Papers on Helmin- thology, cited, 450. description of Astacobdella philadelphica cited, 542. I)escriptit)n of Nephelis punc- tata, cited, 535. Description of two New Genera of Vermes, cited, 456. Fresh-water Rhizopods of North America, cited, 314. Notice of some A me r i c a n Leeches, cited, 509. leidyi, Pristina, 443. Lemna, 234, 310. Lemnaceas, 349. Carchesium polypinuni found on, 338. . lenticulare, Plcesoma, 368. ' Leonard!, G., description of Cocci- da; by, cited, 390. on dismemberment t)f Mytilas- pis, 397- See also Berlese and Leon- ardo leontina, Cathypna, 374. Lepocinclis, 274. leptopus, Conochilus, 362. Diapt(_)mus, 97, 112, 117, 125,127, 130, 135, 181, 182. leuckarti, Cyclops, 29,31,34,36,62,63. Leuckartiina, 104. le\is, Cyclops, 37. Lidgett, J., descriptions of Coccidie by, cited, 300. ligamentinus, Lampsilis, 401, 403, 407, 409, 410, 412, 413, 414, 416. I'nio, 403. Lillj(.-i)org, W., (^8, 153, 160, 162, 166, 178, 229, 25.). description of I) i a p t o m u s eiseni and remarks upon, 162-164. b74 INDEX. Lilljeborg, W. — Continued. description of Diaptomus fian- ciscanus and remarks ui)on, 160 162. description of Diaptomus fres- nanus (=tyrrelli), 176. description of Diaptomus mi nutus, 136. description of Diaptomus ore- gonensis cited, 154. description of Diaptomus sicii- oides, 154. description of Diaptomus sig- nicauda and remarks upon, 164-166. description of Diaptomus try- bomi, 15S 160. on length of Epischura nor- denskioldi, 254. limncei, Clia?togaster, 407, 443. Limnias, 360. ceratophylli, 360. found on Ceratopliyllum and Potamogeton, 360. limnias, Cephalosiphon, 360. Limnocalanus, 104, 225, 226,235-238. as food of fishes, 237. eggs of, 228. Epischura, and Osphranticum, The Nortii American Centro- pagida? belonging to tlie Ge- nera, 225-270. establishment of genus of, 236. grimaldii, 22q, 239, 242, 243. synonym t)f, 226. lial)its of, 237. key to tile species of, 238. macronyx, 226. macrurus, 227, 22q, 235, 236, 237, 238 244, 264. auctus, 239, 244. difference between, and L. sinensis, 241). distribution of, 237, 244. liabitat of, 226. Eimnocalanus macrurus — Contin- ued. on illustrations of, 243. Osphranticum, Epischura, and Diaptomus, discussion of s t r u c t u ral similarities and differences indica- ti\e of relationships of genera of, 226-228. general bibliography of genera of, 185-204 ; ad- ditions to, 268. synopsis of the relation- ships of the genera, 102- 105. sinensis, 99, 229, 235, 236, 238, 245- 249. differences between, and L. macrurus, 249. distribution of, 237. habitat of, 226, 237. locality from which the species is recorded, 249. Linmodrilus claparedianus, 442. description of. 444. mosa, Dero, 443. mosus, Vermiculus, 451. lineata, Glossiphonia, 493, 497. lintt)ni, Diaptomus, 113, 118, 127, 134, 160, 182. , lobatus, Diaptomus, 101. lobostoma, Difflugia,3 13,3 14,3 19,320. longicauda, Phacus,3i3, 326. longicaudum, Scaridium, 373. longict)rnis, Cyck)ps, 130, 132. Diaptomus, 132. var. lei)topus, Diaptomus, 130.132. \ar. sinnlis, Diaptomus, 132,162, 182. iongiseta, Kurcuiaria, 370. Triarthra, 352, 367. longispina, Notholca, 383. Loricata, 358. Lumbricidie, 441. found in Illinois, 441. 575 Iiinibricoid worm eaten by Pliilob- della floridana, 518. Lumbriculidae, 459, 462, 468, 469, 472. 474- fduiid in Illinois, 442. North American, described spe- cies of, 471. variability in reproductive or- gans of, 472. Lunibriculus, 471. spiralis, relationsliip of Rhizo- drilus lacteus to, 450. Lumbricus herculeus, 441. luna, Cathypna, 374. lunaris, Monostyla, 375. lurida, Nais, 443. luteolus, Lanipsilis, 401, 403, 409, 410, 412, 413, 414, 416. Unioj 403. lynceus, Bipaljnis, 368. Eiichlanis, 368. Gastroschiza, 368. Ploesoma, 352, 354, 368. M MacrobdcUa, 508, 515. decora, 508-511. alimentary canal and habits of, 511. annulation of, compared with that of M. sestertia, 509-510. diagnosis of, 508. food of, 511. general description of, 509. reproductive organs of, 510. valdiviviana, 528. Macrocyclops, 47, 64. macronyx, Limnocalanus, 226. macrostyla, Philodina, 363. macrozaniis, Lecanium, 394. macrurus auctus, I^imnocalanus, 239, 244. Cyclops, 29. Limnocalanus, 226, 227, 229, 235, 236, 237, 238, 249, 264. macrurus — Continued. Rotifer, 363. niagnoctavus, Cyclo[is, 57. Mallomonas, 274, 421. mamillata, Dangeardia, 434. Margaritana complanata, 403. confragosa, 403. marginata, 403. rugosa, 403. undulata, 403. marginata, Alasmodonta, 401, 403, 408, 409, 410, 412, 416, 417. Margaritana, 403. marmorata, Hirudo, 519. marmoratis, Hjemopis, 51 1, 515, 519, •528,, 529, 530, 531- Mars'n, C. D., 38, 98, 171. description and figures of Diaptomus pallidus cited, 146. description and figure of Epischura lacustris cited, 263, 264. description of Diaptomus birgei and remarks upon, 172-173. on description of Scopipliora vagans, 267. on Diajitomus miimctoiika, 136. on Diaptomus reighardi, length of and localities for, 171. on distribution of Cyclops ater,-5i. of Cyclops phalcratus,6o. of Diaptomus s i c i 1 i s, 124. of Limnocalanus ma crurus, 244. and synonymy of Cy- clops jirasinus, 57. and synonymy of Di- aptomus ni i n utus, 158. 576 Marsh, C. D. —Continued. oil identity of Scopiphora vagans and Epischura la- custris, 263. on occurrence of Diaptomus mississippiensis, 176. On tlie CyclopidcC and Ca- lanidcC of Central Wiscon- sin, cited, 124, 136, 153, 154, 169, 244, 264. On the Cyclopida? and Ca- lanidje of Lake St. Clair, Lake Michigan, and cer- tain of the Inhmd Lakes of Michigan, cited, i6q, 244, 264. on the habits of Limnocaia- nus, 237. on the Limnetic Crustacea of Green Lake, cited, 237. On two New Species of Di- aptomus, cited, 173, 175. Preliminary List of Deep- Water Crustacea, cited, 97. Mastigocerca, 371. bicornis, 371. bicristata, 371. seasonal distribution of, 352, 371. specific characters of, 371. carinata, 371. elongata, 371. food of, 351,371. lata, 372. stylata, 371. Mastigophora, 306, 315, 322. Meek, S. E., and Evermann, B. W., 259. Megalotmciia, 303, 361. albofiavicans, 361. found on Ceratoi>iiyllum, 361. resemblance of, to Conochilus, 361. semibullata, 361. eaten by Dineutes, 361. seasonal distribution of, 352. megalotrocha, Philodina, 363 Melicerta ringens, type of trophi of, 345- Melicertidit, 357, 360. Melosira, 274, 421. Mesoporodrilus, 462, 468, 471. asymmetr icus, 442. Eclipidrilus f rigidus, and Premnodrilus palustris com- pared, 472-475- nephridial and circulatory sys- tems of, 468-471. mctane\er, Unio, 403. metanevra, Quadrula, 401, 403,409, 410, 412. Metopidia, 377. food of, 351. acuminata, 377. bractea, 377. elliptica, 377. oblonga, 377. oxysternum, 377. rhomboides, 377. seasonal distribution of, 353. solidus, 377. triptera, 377. mexicana, Dina, 541. Microbdella,482, 484. Microcodonida?, 357. Microcyclops, 64. . microstoma, Dina, 537. Vorticella, 338. Migula, W., Beitrage zur Kennt- niss des Gonium pectorale, cited, 283. on locomotion of Gonium, 283. militaris, Brachionus, 351, 353,355, 365, 381. 421. Milne-Edwards, H., Extrait d'un Memoire sur la distribution geo- graphique des Crustaces, cited, 97- Minnesota Academy of Sciences, 233- 577 miiiiietonka, Diaptimius, 133, 135, 136, 138- minnilus, Cyclojis, 44, 45. Minnows, 351, mlnuta, Salping(i;ca, 329. minutus, Diaptomus, 98, 100, 106,1 1 1, 116, 129, 134, 156, 160, 183,260,265. mirum, Pedalion, 353, 355, 384. minis, Diapttinius, loi. Misiist of Species found in Illinois, and Descrijitions of Illinois Tubiticidie, 441-458. explanation of jilates in above article on, 458. literature cited in above article on, 457. INDEX. 57g Xotes nil Species of Xi>rili Amer- ican. I\'. On a New Lnnitiri- culid Genus fiDni P'lorida, witli Additional Xotes on tlie Ne- plu'idial and Cii'cuiatory Sys- tems of Mesoporodrilus asym- metriciis Smith, 459 478. explanation of plates in above article on, 477. literature cited in al)o\e article on, 476. Oligoclnete parasite of Inionidie, 407. aquatic, as food of Krpolxlella punctata, 535. Oligochcetes, aquatic, as food of licemopis marmoratis, 527. Oligotricha, 308, 316, 335. Opercularia, 311, 312, 340. articulata, 340. food ,,f, 31 K irritahilis, 342. occurrence of, on \arions ani- mals, 340. food of, 340. nutans found on a I'lanorbis, 340. jugosa, 340. Opuntiaspis proposed as new sub- genus for Mytilaspis piulococcus, 3Q7- oregonensis, Diaptomus, ioq, i iq, 124, 151, 170, 171, 183, 22(), 265. ornata, Floscularia, 352,360. Xassula, 332. van rugosa, Clepsine, 487. (Jrthocyclops, 2q, 51,64. Orlonia preoccu]3ied ; replaced by Protortonia, 390. Osborn, H. L., ondistomid parasite of Anodonta plana ( grandisi and Strophitus edentulus, 406. Oscillaria, 19, 419. Osphranticum,97, 104,225, 226, 229, 237. ()s])liranticum ( 'o/i/Ifii/rcf. 1 )ia|)toinus, and C\clops, i-elati\'e hardihood of, 100. I )iai)tonnis, Epischura, and l.im- nocalaiuis, discussion of struct 11 ral similarities and ilifferences indica- tive of the relationships of the genera, 226-228. general bil^liography of genera of, 185 ; additions to, 268. synopsis of the relation- ships of the genera, 102- 105. eggs of, 228. labronectum, 227, 230 235. distribution, color, and varia- tions of, 234. on mo\ements of, 235. Limnocalanus, and Kpischura, The North American Cen- tropagidie belonging to the genera, 225 270. on localities preferred bv, 226, 234- ostreceformis, Aspidiotus, 398. ovata, Cryptomonas, 313, 328. Overton, E., lieitrag /ur Kennlniss des (ionium pectorale, tiled, 287. oxysternum, Metojutlia, 377. Oxytrichidie, 336. oxyuris, I-'.iiglena, 313, 324. pala, Brachionus, 353,354, 355, 378. pallida, Rajihidiophrys, 313,322. ])allidus, I )iai)lonnis, 100, 108,121, 124, 137, 144.1^3- 265. var. sicilis, Diaptomus, 122. l)alustris, Premnodrilus. 451), 468, 469. 472, 473. 474. 475- Pandorina, 275, 276, 278, 280, 284, 286, 287, 327, 419, 420. 423, 425, 433. 43^' .437- 580 INDEX. Pandorina — Continued. as food of rotifers, 312. polarity and direction of rotation of, 284, 431, 432. disease of, 289. morum, 273, 327, 435. 437- direction of rotation of, 284. parasite t)f, 434. papillifera var. carinata, Clepsine, 498. var. lineata, Clepsine. 493. Paracyclops, 59, 65. Paramaiciidce, 332. Paramaecium, 332. aurelia, 307, 313, 332. Parasite of Eudorina elegans, 435. of fishes, 504. of Hydra, 337. of Pandorina morum, 434. of Platydorina caudata, 425,434. Parasites of Asplanchna herrickii, 365- of the Unionidae, A Statistical Study of the, 399-418; s u m m a r y o f results reached, 417. comjiarison of infestation by different, 412. comparison of local in- festation by, 416. degree of infestation of in- dividual hosts by, 410, 411, 415. geographical distribution of, 414. relation of local conditions to number of, and to character of infestation, 417- situation of, and manner of infestatit)n, 404-407. specific distribution of, 409. effect of seasonal changes on, 414. parasitica, Hirudo, 480. parasitica — Continued. Placobdella, 480, 487, 488, 491, 492, 503- parens, Cyclops, 38, 41, 42. parvus, Lampsilis, 401,403,404,409, 410, 412, 413. Unio, 337, 403. patelliformis, Lecanium, 393. Patten, Wm.,on d i s t r i b u t i o n of Heterocope, 225. patina, Pterodina, 353, 378. Peck, J. I., The Sources of Marine Food, cited, 13. 21. pectinata.Synchaeta, 352, 354, 35 5,366. pectorale, Gonium, 437. Pedalion, 346, 355, 383. mirum, 355, 384. seasonal distribution of, 383. Pedalionidae, 359, 383. Pedetes, 368. saltator, 368. Pediastrum, 421. as food of rotifers, 351, 365. pediculis, Trichodina,337. Pelomyxa, 317. villosa, 317. Peloscolex, 456. variegatus, 456. pentagonus, Cyclops, 57. perarmatus, Cyclops, 59, 60. P e r g a n d e, Tlieo., descriptions of Coccidae by, cited, 390. Periclueta, 441. Peridinidie, 32(), 421. Peridinium, 307, 329. tabulatum, 313, 329, 421. Peritricha, 308, 309, 316, 337. perniciosus ? eucalyjiti, Aspidiotus, 396. Pfeffer, W., L oc omo tor i s ch e Richtungsliewegungen durch cliemische Reize, cited, 283. on locomotion of Gonium, 283. Phacus, 274, 326. longicauda, 313, 326. 58i Phacus Continued. pyrum, 313, 326. triquetur, 326. plialeratus, Cyclops, 2q, 30, 59, 63,65. Pliauk)mytilus as new genus for certain species of M y t i 1 a s p i s, 397- Plienacaspis as new genus fnr cer- tain species of Chionaspis, 398. Pliiladel])hia Academy of Sciences, 418. piiiladelphica, Astacobdella, 542. philadelphicus, Bdellodrilus, 542. Pliilliljs, C. E., g8. Pliilobdella, 509, 510, 511. floridana, 51 1. lumbricoid worm eaten In', 518. gracile, 511-518. alimentary canal, color, and habits of, 518. annuli and somites of, 515. diagnosis of, 511. food of, 518. general description and meas- urements of, 512-515. reproductive organs of, 517. philococcus, Mytilaspis, 397. Philodina, 363, 421. macrostyla, 363. megalotroclia, 363. roseola, type of troplii of, 345. seasonal distribution of, 352. tuberculata, 363. Philodinida;, 357, 359, 362. Phreoryctes emissarius, 442. Phreoryctida?, 442. found in Illinois, 442. Pliysa, Epistylis [ilicatilis found nn shells of, 339. Pickering, C, generic description of Scopiphora \agans, 263. Picronitic acid, formula for, 349. pilosus, Vermiculus, 446, 450, 452. Pilsbry, H. A., 418. piricola, Uiaspis, 398. Piscicola jiarasitic on small tish, 504. Piscicolaria, 504. piscinae, Diaptomus, 98, 109, 116, 118, 125, 181, 182. Placobdella, 480, 496. parasitica, 480-486, 487, 488, 491, 492, 503- alimentary canal and color of, 485. annuli and somites of, 482-484. compared with P. rugosa, 482. diagnosis of, 480. general description of, 400- 482. Iiabits of, 486. reproductive organs of, 484. rugosa, 481, 482, 484, 487-492. alimentary canal, color, and reproductive organs of, 491. amuili and somites of, 488-491. diagnosis and general descrip- tion of, 487. habits of, 492. Plagiola, capacity for infestation exliibited by, 414. donaciformis, 401, 403. parasites of, 409,410,412,416. elegans, 401, 403. parasites of, 405, 406, 409, 410, 412, 413, 416. securis, 401, 403. parasite of, 409. I^lagiotomidae, 333. plana, Anodonta, 403, 406. Planarians, 407. Plankton, centrifugal machine used in \H)lumetric determination of, 19, 20. description of apparatus used in obli(iue-haul method of collecting, 3 10. in pumping method of col- lecting, 13 16. 582 INDEX. Plankton Continued. enumerative or counting nu-thotl of determim'ng, 1 1. gra\imetric nu'tliod of dt'tt-i-niin- in- 1 8. and \olnnietric nietliod of de- determining, combined, 18. ol)litiue-haul method t)f collect- ing, difficulties en- countered in, 1 1, operation of, 2, 10. preservation and examination of, 17-21. pumping method of collecting, 2, 12-17. advantages of, 17. t)perati(-)n of, 16. quantitative examination of, 18. settling and centrifugal methods of volumetric determination of, 19, 20. Studies. 1. Methods and Ap- paratus in Use in Plank- ton Investigations at the B i o lo g i cal Experiment Station of the University of Illinois, 1-25. hil)liography in, 22-23. exi»lanation of plates in, 23 25- Studies. II. ( )n Pleodorina illinoi- sensis, a New Species from the Plankton of the Illinois River, 273-293. hibliograi)hy in, 291-292. ex}jlanation of plates in, 293. Studies. III. On Platydorina, a New (ienus of the Family \' o 1 \ oc i d if, fro m the Plankton of t li i- Illinois River, 4i() 440. explanation of plate in, 440. literature cited in, 437. variations in, at Havana, 111., Plankton— C't>«/'/;///^(^?'. vertical-haul method of collect- ing, 2. inapplicable in Station waters at Havana," 111., 3- work on the Illinois River and Adjacent waters, scope of, i. Planorbis, O p e r c u 1 a r i a nutans found on, 340. Plate, Ludwig, Beitriige zur Natur- geschichte der Rotatorien, cited, 367. on Brachionus bidens, 381. on Triarthra terminalis, 367. Platydorina, 436, 437. A new Genus of the Family \ol- vdcidie from the Plankton of the Illinois River, article on, 419-440. associates of, 420 421. caudata, 419, 437. arrangement of cells of, 426. characteristic features of col- ony t)f, 423. description of, 421 435. parasite of, 425, 434. si/e of colony of, 422, 425. S])ecitic characters of, 435. type of cells of, 425, 427. colors of, 422. discussion of term colony as a])- plied to, 433. explanation of plate in Kofoid's article on, 440. generic characters of, 435. literature cited in Kofoid's arti- cle on, 439. loconKJtion of, 430. systematic position and relation- ships of, 433. reproduction of, 432. platvptera eurvptera, Polvarthra, 367. Polyarthra, 340, 352,354, 355,367. 583 Pleodorina, 273, 277,286,327,419,420, 424, 425. 427, 432, 433, 434, 437. califoniica, 273. 274, 276, 279, 280, 281, 313, 328, 421, 437. locomotion and polarity of, 2(83. relationship of, 286. synoptic cliaracters of, 2qo. illinoisensis, 424, 432, 437. a New Species from the Plank- ton of the Illinois Rive r. Plankton Studies. II.. 273- biblit)graphy in Kofoid's ar- ticle on, 2QI-2Q2. description of, 274-281. disease of, 289. distribution of, 273. explanation of plates in Ko- foid's article on, 293. hypothetically considered a s stage in life cycle of Eudori- na, 286. locomotion of, 281-285. 43'- reproduction of, 287-289. syno])tic cliaracters of. 290. synoptic characters of, 2go. Pleurotrichinae, 336. plicata, Quadrula, 401,403, 408, 409, 410,412, 413, 316. plicatilis, Ejiistylis, 339, 342. ))licatus, Kmbolocephalus, 456. Unio, 403 Pkesoma, 357, 368. lenticulare, 368. lynceus, 354, 368. seasonal distribution of, 332. Ploima, 356, 357, 364, 421. pluvialis, Stephanospha?ra, 437. pocillum, Dinocharis. 332. 372 Podoplea, 105. polipinum, Carchesium, 338. Polyarthra, 274, 346, 366, 421. aptera, 367. platyptera, 334, 355, 367. euryptera, 367. Pol y, 358, 350, 377- pulchellus, Cycl<>|:)s, 29, 44. Pump, Thresher 'I'ank, used incol- h'Ctiiin (if i)lankt, 264. sicilis — Continued. van imperfectus, Diaptomus, 124, 158, 167, 169. siciluides, Diaptomus, q8, 100, 114, 121, 124, 137, 146, 154, 157, 165, 166, 181, 182, 183, 265. signatus, Cyclops, 29. van tenuicornis, Cyclops, 47. signicauda, Diaptomus, 98, 114, 120, 157, 159, 160, 164, 183. signicaudatus, Diaptomus, 164. similis, Diaptomus, 132, 182. Vorticella, 338. Simpson, C. T., 418. sinensis, Limnocaianus, 99, 229, 235 236, 237, 238, 245. singularis, Diplocardia, 442. Slipper animalcule, 332. Smith, Fmnk, i, 98, 228, 229, 303, 348, 479. List of the Pnitozoa and Mol- lusca observed in Lake St. Clair in the Summer of 1893, cited, 313. Notes on Species of North American OligochcCta. IL, cited, 447,462, 468,470, 471. Notes on Species of Nortli American 01igt)c!iceta. 111. List of Species found in Illi- nois, and Descriptions of Illi- nois Tubificida;, 441-458. Notes on Species of North American Oligochaeta. IV. On a New Lumbriculid Ge- nus from Florida, with addi- tional Notes o\\ the Nephrid- ial and Circulatsus, Lampsilis, 401, 403, 407, 408, 40(), 410, 411, 412, 413, 416. Unio, 403. Vermes, 356. Vermiculus, distinguishing char- acter of, 451. limosus, 451. pilosus, 446, 450. circulatory system of, 452. resemblance of K li i z o d r i 1 u s lacteus to, 450. vernalis, Cyclops, 2q, 64. Verrill, A. E., 518. description of colors of Glossiphoin'a complanata, cited, 4q3. on color of Dina ferxida, 537. Synopsis of Xortii American F r e s h - w a t e r Leeches, cited, 50q, 513, 527. \ errncosa, Diplocardia, 442. \illosa, Pelomyxa, 317. viridis, Amblyophis, 325. \i rid is — Continued. Cyclops, 2q, 30, 37, 41, 43, 48, 62, 63. 64. Euglena, 312, 313, 324, 325. Hydra, 337. Sacculus, 366. \ar. brevispinosus, Cyclops, 30, 41, 62, 63, 64. \ar. insectus, Cyclops, 31, 41, 62, 63, 64. X'ivipara, Epistylis plicatilis found on shells of, 339. Vohocida:', 327. New Genus of the family of, from the Plankton of the Illi- nois Ri\er, 41Q-440. \'ol\-ocina;, 419, 432, 434. keys to genera and species of the subfamily of, 435, 436-438. locomotion and polarity of, 431, 432. term colony as a])plied to the, 434- \'ol\-ocineie, 273, 282, 287. \'ol\dx, 141, 274, 278, 280, 285, 286, 28S, 301, 327, 410, 421, 431, 434, 437- as food of rotifers, 312, 351. aureus, 276, 287, 438. globator, 276, 285, 287, 312, 313, 327,438. as food of Asplaiichna prio- donta and A. herrickii, 365. locomotion and polarity of, 285, 431- W- Vorticella, 30Q, 310, 311, 312, 338, 33Q- campanula, 338. \'. microstoma, and \'. similis on or among Lenniaceit, 338. f.HHl of, 311. found on roots of Eemna and on fixed a(|uatic plants, 310. microstoma, 338. similis, ^(^8. 5Q3 XDrticfUiche, 311, 337. X'orticelliiia?, 337. vulgaris angulosa, Arcflla, 313,314. Arcella, 313, 314, 318. discoides, Arcella, 313. 314. 318. Rotifer, 350, 363. \y W'alkeriaiia floriger, Coccus lani- ger a synonym for, 3t)i. Ward, H. B., A Biological Exam- ination of Lake Michigan in tlie Traverse Bay Re- gion, cited, 2, 3, ]q. A New M e t li o d for the Qiiantitati\ e 1) e t ermina- tion of Plankton Hauls, cited. 18. Water-bloom, 324, 420. Water-snails, Epistylis plicatilis found on shells of, 339. Westwood, J. O., establishment of genus Diaptomus, 97. Wliitman, C. ()., The Leeches of Japan, cited, 509, 511. The Metamerism of Clepsine, cited, 479. Wier/.ejski, A description of C. annulatus ( =edax) cited, 35. wierzejskii, Diaptomus, loi, 107. Wills, A. W.,r)n the Structure and Life History of \'ol\i)x globator, cited, 276, 285. Wolcott, Robert H., determination of Atax collections by, 407. Worms, aquatic, species of Rhab- (lostyla found on, 340. ypsiiophorus, Atax, 408. Zacharias, ()., 98. Beobachtungen am Plankto'i des Gr. Ploner See ' s, cited, 3>3- Forschungsberichte a us der Biologischen Station /. u Pl()n, Theil I.-IV'., cited, 2. F a u n i s tische Mittheilungen, cited, 304. Teber die Wechselnde Quan- titiit des Planktons im Gros- sen Ploner See, cited, 18. zachariasi, Diaptomus, 99. Zograf, N., Essai d'Explication de I 'origine de la Faune des lacs de la Russie d ' Europe, cited, 226. Zoological Bulletin cited, 406. Zoologisches Centralhlatt cited, 226. Zoothamnium, 339. arliuscula, 331). ERRATA. Page 136, line 2, and i)age 182, line 17 from bottom, for \)jii read 'pj. Page 226, line 2, page 263, line 17 from liottom, and page 267, lines 2 and 15, for 'g8, read \)6. Page 233, line 15 from liottom, for 'S2 read '82a. Page 355, line 2 from bottom, for C. /^. Hudson read C. T. Hudson. Page 389, foot-note, for Vol. V. read Vol. //'. Page 457, line 5, for Ct'iirra read Gt^nus. 3 2044 106 261 217 Date Due -i^ee^ Jc?^ > > ^1 VSitk^vIV! ' ' ' .